Search Legislation

The Insolvency Rules 1986

 Help about what version

What Version

 Help about advanced features

Advanced Features

Status:

This version of this Instrument contains provisions that are prospective. Help about Status

Close

Status

The term provision is used to describe a definable element in a piece of legislation that has legislative effect – such as a Part, Chapter or section. A version of a provision is prospective either:

  1. where the provision (Part, Chapter or section) has never come into force or;
  2. where the text of the provision is subject to change, but no date has yet been appointed by the appropriate person or body for those changes to come into force.

Commencement Orders listed in the ‘Changes to Legislation’ box as not yet applied may bring this prospective version into force.

Status:

This revised version has been created from an electronic version contributed by Westlaw which was originally derived from the printed publication. Read more

Changes to legislation:

There are outstanding changes not yet made by the legislation.gov.uk editorial team to The Insolvency Rules 1986. Any changes that have already been made by the team appear in the content and are referenced with annotations. Help about Changes to Legislation

Close

Changes to Legislation

Revised legislation carried on this site may not be fully up to date. Changes and effects are recorded by our editorial team in lists which can be found in the ‘Changes to Legislation’ area. Where those effects have yet to be applied to the text of the legislation by the editorial team they are also listed alongside the legislation in the affected provisions. Use the ‘more’ link to open the changes and effects relevant to the provision you are viewing.

View outstanding changes

Changes and effects yet to be applied to :

Changes and effects yet to be applied to the whole Instrument associated Parts and Chapters:

Whole provisions yet to be inserted into this Instrument (including any effects on those provisions):

Prospective

INTRODUCTORY PROVISIONSE+W

Citation and commencementE+W

0.1.  These Rules may be cited as the Insolvency Rules 1986 and shall come into force on 29th December 1986.

Commencement Information

I1Rule 0.1 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Construction of principal referencesE+W

0.2.  In these Rules—

the Act” means the Insolvency Act 1986 (any reference to a numbered section being to a section of that Act);

the Companies Act” means the Companies Act 1985; and

the Rules” means the Insolvency Rules 1986.

Commencement Information

I2Rule 0.2 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

ExtentE+W

0.3.—(1) Parts 1, 2 and 4 of the Rules, and Parts 7 to 13 as they relate to company insolvency, apply in relation to companies which the courts in England and Wales have jurisdiction to wind up.

(2) Part 3 of the Rules applies to administrative receivers appointed otherwise than under section 51 (Scottish receivership).

(3) Parts 5 and 6 of the Rules, and Parts 7 to 13 as they relate to individual insolvency, extend to England and Wales only.

Commencement Information

I3Rule 0.3 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

THE FIRST GROUP OF PARTSE+W

PART 1E+WCOMPANY VOLUNTARY ARRANGEMENTS

CHAPTER 1E+WPRELIMINARY

Scope of this Part; interpretationE+W

1.1.—(1) The Rules in this Part apply where, pursuant to Part I of the Act, it is intended to make, and there is made, a proposal to a company and its creditors for a voluntary arrangement, that is to say, a composition in satisfaction of its debts or a scheme of arrangement of its affairs.

(2) In this Part—

(a)Chapter 2 applies, where the proposal for a voluntary arrangement is made by the directors of the company, and neither is the company in liquidation, nor is an administration order (under Part II of the Act) in force in relation to it;

(b)Chapter 3 applies where the company is in liquidation or an administration order is in force, and the proposal is made by the liquidator or (as the case may be) the administrator, he in either case being the nominee for the purposes of the proposal;

(c)Chapter 4 applies in the same case as Chapter 3, but where the nominee is an insolvency practitioner other than the liquidator or the administrator; and

(d)Chapters 5 and 6 apply in all the three cases mentioned in sub-paragraphs (a) to (c) above.

(3) In Chapters 3, 4 and 5, the liquidator or the administrator is referred to as “the responsible insolvency practitioner”.

Commencement Information

I4Rule 1.1 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

CHAPTER 2E+WPROPOSAL BY DIRECTORS

Preparation of proposalE+W

1.2.  The directors shall prepare for the intended nominee a proposal on which (with or without amendments to be made under Rule 1.3 below) to make his report to the court under section 2.

Commencement Information

I5Rule 1.2 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Contents of proposalE+W

1.3.—(1) The directors' proposal shall provide a short explanation why, in their opinion, a voluntary arrangement under Part I of the Act is desirable, and give reasons why the company's creditors may be expected to concur with such an arrangement.

(2) The following matters shall be stated, or otherwise dealt with, in the directors' proposal—

(a)the following matters, so far as within the directors' immediate knowledge—

(i)the company's assets, with an estimate of their respective values,

(ii)the extent (if any) to which the assets are charged in favour of creditors,

(iii)the extent (if any) to which particular assets are to be excluded from the voluntary arrangement;

(b)particulars of any property, other than assets of the company itself, which is proposed to be included in the arrangement, the source of such property and the terms on which it is to be made available for inclusion;

(c)the nature and amount of the company's liabilities (so far as within the directors' immediate knowledge), the manner in which they are proposed to be met, modified, postponed or otherwise dealt with by means of the arrangement, and (in particular)—

(i)how it is proposed to deal with preferential creditors (defined in section 4(7)) and creditors who are, or claim to be, secured,

(ii)how persons connected with the company (being creditors) are proposed to be treated under the arrangement, and

(iii)whether there are, to the directors' knowledge, any circumstances giving rise to the possibility, in the event that the company should go into liquidation, of claims under—

  • section 238 (transactions at an undervalue),

  • section 239 (preferences),

  • section 244 (extortionate credit transactions), or

  • section 245 (floating charges invalid);

and, where any such circumstances are present, whether, and if so how, it is proposed under the voluntary arrangement to make provision for wholly or partly indemnifying the company in respect of such claims;

(d)whether any, and if so what, guarantees have been given of the company's debts by other persons, specifying which (if any) of the guarantors are persons connected with the company;

(e)the proposed duration of the voluntary arrangement;

(f)the proposed dates of distributions to creditors, with estimates of their amounts;

(g)the amount proposed to be paid to the nominee (as such) by way of remuneration and expenses;

(h)the manner in which it is proposed that the supervisor of the arrangement should be remunerated, and his expenses defrayed;

(j)whether, for the purposes of the arrangement, any guarantees are to be offered by directors, or other persons, and whether (if so) any security is to be given or sought;

(k)the manner in which funds held for the purposes of the arrangement are to be banked, invested or otherwise dealt with pending distribution to creditors;

(l)the manner in which funds held for the purpose of payment to creditors, and not so paid on the termination of the arrangement, are to be dealt with;

(m)the manner in which the business of the company is proposed to be conducted during the course of the arrangement;

(n)details of any further credit facilities which it is intended to arrange for the company, and how the debts so arising are to be paid;

(o)the functions which are to be undertaken by the supervisor of the arrangement; and

(p)the name, address and qualification of the person proposed as supervisor of the voluntary arrangement, and confirmation that he is (so far as the directors are aware) qualified to act as an insolvency practitioner in relation to the company.

(3) With the agreement in writing of the nominee, the directors' proposal may be amended at any time up to delivery of the former's report to the court under section 2(2).

Commencement Information

I6Rule 1.3 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Notice to intended nomineeE+W

1.4.—(1) The directors shall give to the intended nominee written notice of their proposal.

(2) The notice, accompanied by a copy of the proposal, shall be delivered either to the nominee himself, or to a person authorised to take delivery of documents on his behalf.

(3) If the intended nominee agrees to act, he shall cause a copy of the notice to be endorsed to the effect that it has been received by him on a specified date; and the period of 28 days referred to in section 2(2) then runs from that date.

(4) The copy of the notice so endorsed shall be returned by the nominee forthwith to the directors at an address specified by them in the notice for that purpose.

Commencement Information

I7Rule 1.4 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Statement of affairsE+W

1.5.—(1) The directors shall, within 7 days after their proposal is delivered to the nominee, or within such longer time as he may allow, deliver to him a statement of the company's affairs.

(2) The statement shall comprise the following particulars (supplementing or amplifying, so far as is necessary for clarifying the state of the company's affairs, those already given in the directors' proposal)—

(a)a list of the company's assets, divided into such categories as are appropriate for easy identification, with estimated values assigned to each category;

(b)in the case of any property on which a claim against the company is wholly or partly secured, particulars of the claim and its amount, and of how and when the security was created;

(c)the names and addresses of the company's preferential creditors (defined in section 4(7)), with the amounts of their respective claims;

(d)the names and addresses of the company's unsecured creditors, with the amounts of their respective claims;

(e)particulars of any debts owed by or to the company to or by persons connected with it;

(f)the names and addresses of the company's members, with details of their respective shareholdings;

(g)such other particulars (if any) as the nominee may in writing require to be furnished for the purposes of making his report to the court on the directors' proposal.

(3) The statement of affairs shall be made up to a date not earlier than 2 weeks before the date of the notice to the nominee under Rule 1.4.

However, the nominee may allow an extension of that period to the nearest practicable date (not earlier than 2 months before the date of the notice under Rule 1.4); and if he does so, he shall give his reasons in his report to the court on the directors' proposal.

(4) The statement shall be certified as correct, to the best of their knowledge and belief, by two or more directors of the company, or by the company secretary and at least one director (other than the secretary himself).

Commencement Information

I8Rule 1.5 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Additional disclosure for assistance of nomineeE+W

1.6.—(1) If it appears to the nominee that he cannot properly prepare his report on the basis of information in the directors' proposal and statement of affairs, he may call on the directors to provide him with—

(a)further and better particulars as to the circumstances in which, and the reasons why, the company is insolvent or (as the case may be) threatened with insolvency;

(b)particulars of any previous proposals which have been made in respect of the company under Part I of the Act;

(c)any further information with respect to the company's affairs which the nominee thinks necessary for the purposes of his report.

(2) The nominee may call on the directors to inform him, with respect to any person who is, or at any time in the 2 years preceding the notice under Rule 1.4 has been, a director or officer of the company, whether and in what circumstances (in those 2 years or previously) that person—

(a)has been concerned in the affairs of any other company (whether or not incorporated in England and Wales) which has become insolvent, or

(b)has himself been adjudged bankrupt or entered into an arrangement with his creditors.

(3) For the purpose of enabling the nominee to consider their proposal and prepare his report on it, the directors must give him access to the company's accounts and records.

Commencement Information

I9Rule 1.6 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Nominee's report on the proposalE+W

1.7.—(1) With his report to the court under section 2 the nominee shall deliver—

(a)a copy of the directors' proposal (with amendments, if any, authorised under Rule 1.3(3)); and

(b)a copy or summary of the company's statement of affairs.

(2) If the nominee makes known his opinion that meetings of the company and its creditors should be summoned under section 3, his report shall have annexed to it his comments on the proposal.

If his opinion is otherwise, he shall give his reasons for that opinion.

(3) The court shall cause the nominee's report to be endorsed with the date on which it is filed in court. Any director, member or creditor of the company is entitled, at all reasonable times on any business day, to inspect the file.

(4) The nominee shall send a copy of his report, and of his comments (if any), to the company.

Commencement Information

I10Rule 1.7 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Replacement of nomineeE+W

1.8.  Where any person intends to apply to the court under section 2(4) for the nominee to be replaced, he shall give to the nominee at least 7 days' notice of his application.

Commencement Information

I11Rule 1.8 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Summoning of meetings under s. 3E+W

1.9.—(1) If in his report the nominee states that in his opinion meetings of the company and its creditors should be summoned to consider the directors' proposal, the date on which the meetings are to be held shall be not less than 14, nor more than 28, days from that on which the nominee's report is filed in court under Rule 1.7.

(2) Notices calling the meetings shall be sent by the nominee, at least 14 days before the day fixed for them to be held—

(a)in the case of the creditors' meeting, to all the creditors specified in the statement of affairs, and any other creditors of the company of whom he is otherwise aware; and

(b)in the case of the meeting of members of the company, to all persons who are, to the best of the nominee's belief, members of it.

(3) Each notice sent under this Rule shall specify the court to which the nominee's report under section 2 has been delivered and shall state the effect of Rule 1.19(1), (3) and (4) (requisite majorities (creditors)); and with each notice there shall be sent—

(a)a copy of the directors' proposal;

(b)a copy of the statement of affairs or, if the nominee thinks fit, a summary of it (the summary to include a list of creditors and the amount of their debts); and

(c)the nominee's comments on the proposal.

Commencement Information

I12Rule 1.9 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

CHAPTER 3E+WPROPOSAL BY ADMINISTRATOR OR LIQUIDATOR (HIMSELF THE NOMINEE)

Preparation of proposalE+W

1.10.—(1) The responsible insolvency practitioner's proposal shall specify—

(a)all such matters as under Rule 1.3 in Chapter 2 the directors of the company would be required to include in a proposal by them, and

(b)such other matters (if any) as the insolvency practitioner considers appropriate for ensuring that members and creditors of the company are enabled to reach an informed decision on the proposal.

(2) Where the company is being wound up by the court, the insolvency practitioner shall give notice of the proposal to the official receiver.

Commencement Information

I13Rule 1.10 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Summoning of meetings under s. 3E+W

1.11.—(1) The responsible insolvency practitioner shall fix a venue for the creditors' meeting and the company meeting, and give at least 14 days' notice of the meetings—

(a)in the case of the creditors' meeting, to all the creditors specified in the company's statement of affairs, and to any other creditors of whom the insolvency practitioner is aware; and

(b)in the case of the company meeting, to all persons who are, to the best of his belief, members of the company.

(2) Each notice sent out under this Rule shall state the effect of Rule 1.19(1), (3) and (4) (requisite majorities (creditors)); and with it there shall be sent—

(a)a copy of the responsible insolvency practitioner's proposal, and

(b)a copy of the statement of affairs or, if he thinks fit, a summary of it (the summary to include a list of creditors and the amounts of their debts).

Commencement Information

I14Rule 1.11 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

CHAPTER 4E+WPROPOSAL BY ADMINISTRATOR OR LIQUIDATOR (ANOTHER INSOLVENCY PRACTITIONER THE NOMINEE)

Preparation of proposal and notice to nomineeE+W

1.12.—(1) The responsible insolvency practitioner shall give notice to the intended nominee, and prepare his proposal for a voluntary arrangement, in the same manner as is required of the directors, in the case of a proposal by them, under Chapter 2.

(2) Rule 1.2 applies to the responsible insolvency practitioner as it applies to the directors; and Rule 1.4 applies as regards the action to be taken by the nominee.

(3) The content of the proposal shall be as required by Rule 1.3, reading references to the directors as referring to the responsible insolvency practitioner.

(4) Rule 1.6 applies in respect of the information to be furnished to the nominee, reading references to the directors as referring to the responsible insolvency practitioner.

(5) With the proposal the responsible insolvency practitioner shall provide a copy of the company's statement of affairs.

(6) Where the company is being wound up by the court, the responsible insolvency practitioner shall send a copy of the proposal to the official receiver, accompanied by the name and address of the insolvency practitioner who has agreed to act as nominee.

(7) Rules 1.7 to 1.9 apply as regards a proposal under this Chapter as they apply to a proposal under Chapter 2.

Commencement Information

I15Rule 1.12 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

CHAPTER 5E+WPROCEEDINGS ON A PROPOSAL MADE BY THE DIRECTORS, OR BY THE ADMINISTRATOR, OR BY THE LIQUIDATOR

SECTION A: MEETINGS OF COMPANY'S CREDITORS AND MEMBERSE+W
Summoning of meetingsE+W

1.13.—(1) Subject as follows, in fixing the venue for the creditors' meeting and the company meeting, the person summoning the meeting (“the convener”) shall have regard primarily to the convenience of the creditors.

(2) Meetings shall in each case be summoned for commencement between 10.00 and 16.00 hours on a business day.

(3) The meetings shall be held on the same day and in the same place, but the creditors' meeting shall be fixed for a time in advance of the company meeting.

(4) [[FORM 8.1]] With every notice summoning either meeting there shall be sent out forms of proxy.

Commencement Information

I16Rule 1.13 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

The chairman at meetingsE+W

1.14.—(1) Subject as follows, at both the creditors' meeting and the company meeting, and at any combined meeting, the convener shall be chairman.

(2) If for any reason he is unable to attend, he may nominate another person to act as chairman in his place; but a person so nominated must be either—

(a)a person qualified to act as an insolvency practitioner in relation to the company, or

(b)an employee of the convener or his firm who is experienced in insolvency matters.

Commencement Information

I17Rule 1.14 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

The chairman as proxy-holderE+W

1.15.  The chairman shall not by virtue of any proxy held by him vote to increase or reduce the amount of the remuneration or expenses of the nominee or the supervisor of the proposed arrangement, unless the proxy specifically directs him to vote in that way.

Commencement Information

I18Rule 1.15 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Attendance by company officersE+W

1.16.—(1) At least 14 days' notice to attend the meetings shall be given by the convener—

(a)to all directors of the company, and

(b)to any persons in whose case the convener thinks that their presence is required as being officers of the company, or as having been directors or officers of it at any time in the 2 years immediately preceding the date of the notice.

(2) The chairman may, if he thinks fit, exclude any present or former director or officer from attendance at a meeting, either completely or for any part of it; and this applies whether or not a notice under this Rule has been sent to the person excluded.

Commencement Information

I19Rule 1.16 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

SECTION B: VOTING RIGHTS AND MAJORITIESE+W
Voting rights (creditors)E+W

1.17.—(1) Subject as follows, every creditor who was given notice of the creditors' meeting is entitled to vote at the meeting or any adjournment of it.

(2) Votes are calculated according to the amount of the creditor's debt as at the date of the meeting or, where the company is being wound up or is subject to an administration order, the date of its going into liquidation or (as the case may be) of the administration order.

(3) A creditor shall not vote in respect of a debt for an unliquidated amount, or any debt whose value is not ascertained, except where the chairman agrees to put upon the debt an estimated minimum value for the purpose of entitlement to vote.

(4) At any creditors' meeting the chairman has power to admit or reject a creditor's claim for the purpose of his entitlement to vote, and the power is exercisable with respect to the whole or any part of the claim.

(5) The chairman's decision on a creditor's entitlement to vote is subject to appeal to the court by any creditor or member of the company.

(6) If the chairman is in doubt whether a claim should be admitted or rejected, he shall mark it as objected to and allow the creditor to vote, subject to his vote being subsequently declared invalid if the objection to the claim is sustained.

(7) If on an appeal the chairman's decision is reversed or varied, or a creditor's vote is declared invalid, the court may order another meeting to be summoned, or make such other order as it thinks just.

The court's power to make an order under this paragraph is exercisable only if it considers that the matter is such as gives rise to unfair prejudice or material irregularity.

(8) An application to the court by way of appeal against the chairman's decision shall not be made after the end of the period of 28 days beginning with the first day on which each of the reports required by section 4(6) has been made to the court.

(9) The chairman is not personally liable for any costs incurred by any person in respect of an appeal under this Rule.

Commencement Information

I20Rule 1.17 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Voting rights (members)E+W

1.18.—(1) Subject as follows, members of the company at their meeting vote according to the rights attaching to their shares respectively in accordance with the articles.

(2) Where no voting rights attach to a member's shares, he is nevertheless entitled to vote either for or against the proposal or any modification of it.

(3) References in this Rule to a person's shares include any other interest which he may have as a member of the company.

Commencement Information

I21Rule 1.18 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Requisite majorities (creditors)E+W

1.19.—(1) Subject as follows, at the creditors' meeting for any resolution to pass approving any proposal or modification there must be a majority in excess of three-quarters in value of the creditors present in person or by proxy and voting on the resolution.

(2) The same applies in respect of any other resolution proposed at the meeting, but substituting one-half for three-quarters.

(3) In the following cases there is to be left out of account a creditor's vote in respect of any claim or part of a claim—

(a)where written notice of the claim was not given, either at the meeting or before it, to the chairman or convener of the meeting;

(b)where the claim or part is secured;

(c)where the claim is in respect of a debt wholly or partly on, or secured by, a current bill of exchange or promissory note, unless the creditor is willing—

(i)to treat the liability to him on the bill or note of every person who is liable on it antecedently to the company, and against whom a bankruptcy order has not been made (or in the case of a company, which has not gone into liquidation), as a security in his hands, and

(ii)to estimate the value of the security and (for the purpose of entitlement to vote, but not of any distribution under the arrangement) to deduct it from his claim.

(4) Any resolution is invalid if those voting against it include more than half in value of the creditors, counting in these latter only those—

(a)to whom notice of the meeting was sent;

(b)whose votes are not to be left out of account under paragraph (3); and

(c)who are not, to the best of the chairman's belief, persons connected with the company.

(5) It is for the chairman of the meeting to decide whether under this Rule—

(a)a vote is to be left out of account in accordance with paragraph (3), or

(b)a person is a connected person for the purposes of paragraph (4)(c);

and in relation to the second of these two cases the chairman is entitled to rely on the information provided by the company's statement of affairs or otherwise in accordance with this Part of the Rules.

(6) If the chairman uses a proxy contrary to Rule 1.15, his vote with that proxy does not count towards any majority under this Rule.

(7) Paragraphs (5) to (9) of Rule 1.17 apply as regards an appeal against the decision of the chairman under this Rule.

Commencement Information

I22Rule 1.19 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Requisite majorities (members)E+W

1.20.—(1) Subject as follows, and to any express provision made in the articles, at a company meeting any resolution is to be regarded as passed if voted for by more than one-half of the members present in person or by proxy and voting on the resolution.

(2) In determining whether a majority for any resolution has been obtained, there is to be left out of account any vote cast in accordance with Rule 1.18(2).

(3) If the chairman uses a proxy contrary to Rule 1.15, his vote with that proxy does not count towards any majority under this Rule.

Commencement Information

I23Rule 1.20 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Proceedings to obtain agreement on the proposalE+W

1.21.—(1) On the day on which the meetings are held, they may from time to time be adjourned; and if the chairman thinks fit for the purpose of obtaining the simultaneous agreement of the meetings to the proposal (with the same modifications, if any), the meetings may be held together.

(2) If on that day the requisite majority for the approval of the voluntary arrangement (with the same modifications, if any) has not been obtained from both creditors and members of the company, the chairman may, and shall if it is so resolved, adjourn the meetings for not more than 14 days.

(3) If there are subsequently further adjournments, the final adjournment shall not be to a day later than 14 days after the date on which the meetings were originally held.

(4) There shall be no adjournment of either meeting unless the other is also adjourned to the same business day.

(5) In the case of a proposal by the directors, if the meetings are adjourned under paragraph (2), notice of the fact shall be given by the nominee forthwith to the court.

(6) If following any final adjournment of the meetings the proposal (with the same modifications, if any) is not agreed by both meetings, it is deemed rejected.

Commencement Information

I24Rule 1.21 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

SECTION C: IMPLEMENTATION OF THE ARRANGEMENTE+W
Resolutions to follow approvalE+W

1.22.—(1) If the voluntary arrangement is approved (with or without modifications) by the two meetings, a resolution may be taken by the creditors, where two or more insolvency practitioners are appointed to act as supervisor, on the question whether acts to be done in connection with the arrangement may be done by any one of them, or must be done by both or all.

(2) A resolution under paragraph (1) may be passed in anticipation of the approval of the voluntary arrangement by the company meeting if that meeting has not then been concluded.

(3) If at either meeting a resolution is moved for the appointment of some person other than the nominee to be supervisor of the arrangement, there must be produced to the chairman, at or before the meeting—

(a)that person's written consent to act (unless he is present and then and there signifies his consent), and

(b)his written confirmation that he is qualified to act as an insolvency practitioner in relation to the company.

Commencement Information

I25Rule 1.22 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Hand-over of property etc. to supervisorE+W

1.23.—(1) After the approval of the voluntary arrangement—

(a)the directors, or

(b)where the company is in liquidation or is subject to an administration order, and a person other than the responsible insolvency practitioner is appointed as supervisor of the voluntary arrangement, the insolvency practitioner,

shall forthwith do all that is required for putting the supervisor into possession of the assets included in the arrangement.

(2) Where the company is in liquidation or is subject to an administration order, the supervisor shall on taking possession of the assets discharge any balance due to the insolvency practitioner by way of remuneration or on account of—

(a)fees, costs, charges and expenses properly incurred and payable under the Act or the Rules, and

(b)any advances made in respect of the company, together with interest on such advances at the rate specified in section 17 of the Judgments Act 1838 at the date on which the company went into liquidation or (as the case may be) became subject to the administration order.

(3) Alternatively, the supervisor must, before taking possession, give the responsible insolvency practitioner a written undertaking to discharge any such balance out of the first realisation of assets.

(4) The insolvency practitioner has a charge on the assets included in the voluntary arrangement in respect of any sums due as above until they have been discharged, subject only to the deduction from realisations by the supervisor of the proper costs and expenses of such realisations.

(5) The supervisor shall from time to time out of the realisation of assets discharge all guarantees properly given by the responsible insolvency practitioner for the benefit of the company, and shall pay all the insolvency practitioner's expenses.

(6) References in this Rule to the responsible insolvency practitioner include, where a company is being wound up by the court, the official receiver, whether or not in his capacity as liquidator; and any sums due to the official receiver take priority over those due to a liquidator.

Commencement Information

I26Rule 1.23 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Report of meetingsE+W

1.24.—(1) A report of the meetings shall be prepared by the person who was chairman of them.

(2) The report shall—

(a)state whether the proposal for a voluntary arrangement was approved or rejected and, if approved, with what (if any) modifications;

(b)set out the resolutions which were taken at each meeting, and the decision on each one;

(c)list the creditors and members of the company (with their respective values) who were present or represented at the meetings, and how they voted on each resolution; and

(d)include such further information (if any) as the chairman thinks it appropriate to make known to the court.

(3) A copy of the chairman's report shall, within 4 days of the meetings being held, be filed in court; and the court shall cause that copy to be endorsed with the date of filing.

(4) In respect of each of the meetings, the persons to whom notice of its result is to be sent by the chairman under section 4(6) are all those who were sent notice of the meeting under this Part of the Rules.

The notice shall be sent immediately after a copy of the chairman's report is filed in court under paragraph (3).

(5) [[FORM 1.1]] If the voluntary arrangement has been approved by the meetings (whether or not in the form proposed), the supervisor shall forthwith send a copy of the chairman's report to the registrar of companies.

Commencement Information

I27Rule 1.24 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Revocation or suspension of the arrangementE+W

1.25.—(1) This Rule applies where the court makes an order of revocation or suspension under section 6.

(2) The person who applied for the order shall serve sealed copies of it—

(a)on the supervisor of the voluntary arrangement, and

(b)on the directors of the company or the administrator or liquidator (according to who made the proposal for the arrangement).

Service on the directors may be effected by service of a single copy of the order on the company at its registered office.

(3) If the order includes a direction by the court under section 6(4)(b) for any further meetings to be summoned, notice shall also be given (by the person who applied for the order) to whoever is, in accordance with the direction, required to summon the meetings.

(4) The directors or (as the case may be) the administrator or liquidator shall—

(a)forthwith after receiving a copy of the court's order, give notice of it to all persons who were sent notice of the creditors' and company meetings or who, not having been sent that notice, appear to be affected by the order;

(b)within 7 days of their receiving a copy of the order (or within such longer period as the court may allow), give notice to the court whether it is intended to make a revised proposal to the company and its creditors, or to invite re-consideration of the original proposal.

(5) [[FORM 1.2]] The person on whose application the order of revocation or suspension was made shall, within 7 days after the making of the order, deliver a copy of the order to the registrar of companies.

Commencement Information

I28Rule 1.25 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Supervisor's accounts and reportsE+W

1.26.—(1) Where the voluntary arrangement authorises or requires the supervisor—

(a)to carry on the business of the company or trade on its behalf or in its name, or

(b)to realise assets of the company, or

(c)otherwise to administer or dispose of any of its funds,

he shall keep accounts and records of his acts and dealings in and in connection with the arrangement, including in particular records of all receipts and payments of money.

(2) The supervisor shall, not less often than once in every 12 months beginning with the date of his appointment, prepare an abstract of such receipts and payments, and send copies of it, accompanied by his comments on the progress and efficacy of the arrangement, to—

(a)the court,

(b)the registrar of companies,

(c)[[FORM 1.3]] the company,

(d)all those of the company's creditors who are bound by the arrangement,

(e)subject to paragraph (5) below, the members of the company who are so bound, and

(f)if the company is not in liquidation, the company's auditors for the time being.

If in any period of 12 months he has made no payments and had no receipts, he shall at the end of that period send a statement to that effect to all those specified in sub-paragraphs (a) to (f) above.

(3) An abstract provided under paragraph (2) shall relate to a period beginning with the date of the supervisor's appointment or (as the case may be) the day following the end of the last period for which an abstract was prepared under this Rule; and copies of the abstract shall be sent out, as required by paragraph (2), within the 2 months following the end of the period to which the abstract relates.

(4) If the supervisor is not authorised as mentioned in paragraph (1), he shall, not less often than once in every 12 months beginning with the date of his appointment, send to all those specified in paragraph (2)(a) to (f) a report on the progress and efficacy of the voluntary arrangement.

(5) The court may, on application by the supervisor—

(a)dispense with the sending under this Rule of abstracts or reports to members of the company, either altogether or on the basis that the availability of the abstract or report to members is to be advertised by the supervisor in a specified manner;

(b)vary the dates on which the obligation to send abstracts or reports arises.

Commencement Information

I29Rule 1.26 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Production of accounts and records to Secretary of StateE+W

1.27.—(1) The Secretary of State may at any time during the course of the voluntary arrangement or after its completion require the supervisor to produce for inspection—

(a)his records and accounts in respect of the arrangement, and

(b)copies of abstracts and reports prepared in compliance with Rule 1.26.

(2) The Secretary of State may require production either at the premises of the supervisor or elsewhere; and it is the duty of the supervisor to comply with any requirement imposed on him under this Rule.

(3) The Secretary of State may cause any accounts and records produced to him under this Rule to be audited; and the supervisor shall give to the Secretary of State such further information and assistance as he needs for the purposes of his audit.

Commencement Information

I30Rule 1.27 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Fees, costs, charges and expensesE+W

1.28.—(1) The fees, costs, charges and expenses that may be incurred for any of the purposes of the voluntary arrangement are—

(a)any disbursements made by the nominee prior to the approval of the arrangement, and any remuneration for his services as such agreed between himself and the company (or, as the case may be, the administrator or liquidator);

(b)any fees, costs, charges or expenses which—

(i)are sanctioned by the terms of the arrangement, or

(ii)would be payable, or correspond to those which would be payable, in an administration or winding up.

Commencement Information

I31Rule 1.28 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Completion of the arrangementE+W

1.29.—(1) Not more than 28 days after the final completion of the voluntary arrangement, the supervisor shall send to all the creditors and members of the company who are bound by it a notice that the voluntary arrangement has been fully implemented.

(2) With the notice there shall be sent to each creditor and member a copy of a report by the supervisor summarising all receipts and payments made by him in pursuance of the arrangement, and explaining any difference in the actual implementation of it as compared with the proposal as approved by the creditors' and company meetings.

(3) [[FORM 1.4]] The supervisor shall, within the 28 days mentioned above, send to the registrar of companies and to the court a copy of the notice to creditors and members under paragraph (1), together with a copy of the report under paragraph (2).

(4) The court may, on application by the supervisor, extend the period of 28 days under paragraphs (1) and (3).

Commencement Information

I32Rule 1.29 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

CHAPTER 6E+WGENERAL

False representations, etcE+W

1.30.—(1) A person being a past or present officer of a company commits an offence if he makes any false representation or commits any other fraud for the purpose of obtaining the approval of the company's members or creditors to a proposal for a voluntary arrangement under Part I of the Act.

(2) For this purpose “officerincludes a shadow director.

(3) A person guilty of an offence under this Rule is liable to imprisonment or a fine, or both.

Commencement Information

I33Rule 1.30 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

PART 2E+WADMINISTRATION PROCEDURE

CHAPTER 1E+WAPPLICATION FOR, AND MAKING OF, THE ORDER

Affidavit to support petitionE+W

2.1.—(1) [[FORM 2.1]] Where it is proposed to apply to the court by petition for an administration order to be made in relation to a company, an affidavit complying with Rule 2.3 below must be prepared and sworn, with a view to its being filed in court in support of the petition.

(2) If the petition is to be presented by the company or by the directors, the affidavit must be made by one of the directors, or the secretary of the company, stating himself to make it on behalf of the company or, as the case may be, on behalf of the directors.

(3) If the petition is to be presented by creditors, the affidavit must be made by a person acting under the authority of them all, whether or not himself one of their number. In any case there must be stated in the affidavit the nature of his authority and the means of his knowledge of the matters to which the affidavit relates.

(4) If the petition is to be presented by the supervisor of a voluntary arrangement under Part I of the Act, it is to be treated as if it were a petition by the company.

Commencement Information

I34Rule 2.1 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Independent report on company's affairsE+W

2.2.—(1) There may be prepared, with a view to its being exhibited to the affidavit in support of the petition, a report by an independent person to the effect that the appointment of an administrator for the company is expedient.

(2) The report may be by the person proposed as administrator, or by any other person having adequate knowledge of the company's affairs, not being a director, secretary, manager, member, or employee of the company.

(3) The report shall specify the purposes which, in the opinion of the person preparing it, may be achieved for the company by the making of an administration order, being purposes particularly specified in section 8(3).

Commencement Information

I35Rule 2.2 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Contents of affidavitE+W

2.3.—(1) The affidavit shall state—

(a)the deponent's belief that the company is, or is likely to become, unable to pay its debts and the grounds of that belief; and

(b)which of the purposes specified in section 8(3) is expected to be achieved by the making of an administration order.

(2) There shall in the affidavit be provided a statement of the company's financial position, specifying (to the best of the deponent's knowledge and belief) assets and liabilities, including contingent and prospective liabilities.

(3) Details shall be given of any security known or believed to be held by creditors of the company, and whether in any case the security is such as to confer power on the holder to appoint an administrative receiver. If an administrative receiver has been appointed, that fact shall be stated.

(4) If any petition has been presented for the winding up of the company, details of it shall be given in the affidavit, so far as within the immediate knowledge of the deponent.

(5) If there are other matters which, in the opinion of those intending to present the petition for an administration order, will assist the court in deciding whether to make such an order, those matters (so far as lying within the knowledge or belief of the deponent) shall also be stated.

(6) If a report has been prepared for the company under Rule 2.2, that fact shall be stated. If not, an explanation shall be provided why not.

Commencement Information

I36Rule 2.3 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Form of petitionE+W

2.4.—(1) If presented by the company or by the directors, the petition shall state the name of the company and its address for service, which (in the absence of special reasons to the contrary) is that of the company's registered office.

(2) If presented by a single creditor, the petition shall state his name and address for service.

(3) If the petition is presented by the directors, it shall state that it is so presented under section 9; but from and after presentation it is to be treated for all purposes as the petition of the company.

(4) If the petition is presented by two or more creditors, it shall state that it is so presented (naming them); but from and after presentation it is to be treated for all purposes as the petition of one only of them, named in the petition as petitioning on behalf of himself and other creditors. An address for service for that one shall be specified.

(5) The petition shall specify the name and address of the person proposed to be appointed as administrator; and it shall be stated that, to the best of the petitioner's knowledge and belief, the person is qualified to act as an insolvency practitioner in relation to the company.

(6) There shall be exhibited to the affidavit in support of the petition—

(a)a copy of the petition;

(b)[[FORM 2.2]] a written consent by the proposed administrator to accept appointment, if an administration order is made; and

(c)if a report has been prepared under Rule 2.2, a copy of it.

Commencement Information

I37Rule 2.4 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Filing of petitionE+W

2.5.—(1) The petition and affidavit shall be filed in court, with a sufficient number of copies for service and use as provided by Rule 2.6.

(2) Each of the copies delivered shall have applied to it the seal of the court and be issued to the petitioner; and on each copy there shall be endorsed the date and time of filing.

(3) The court shall fix a venue for the hearing of the petition and this also shall be endorsed on each copy of the petition issued under paragraph (2).

(4) After the petition is filed, it is the duty of the petitioner to notify the court in writing of any winding-up petition presented against the company, as soon as he becomes aware of it.

Commencement Information

I38Rule 2.5 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Service of petitionE+W

2.6.—(1) In the following paragraphs of this Rule, references to the petition are to a copy of the petition issued by the court under Rule 2.5(2) together with the affidavit in support of it and the documents (other than the copy petition) exhibited to the affidavit.

(2) The petition shall be served—

(a)on any person who has appointed an administrative receiver for the company, or has the power to do so;

(b)if an administrative receiver has been appointed, on him;

(c)if there is pending a petition for the winding up of the company, on the petitioner (and also on the provisional liquidator, if any); and

(d)on the person proposed as administrator.

(3) If the petition for the making of an administration order is presented by creditors of the company, the petition shall be served on the company.

Commencement Information

I39Rule 2.6 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Manner in which service to be effectedE+W

2.7.—(1) Service of the petition in accordance with Rule 2.6 shall be effected by the petitioner, or his solicitor, or by a person instructed by him or his solicitor, not less than 5 days before the date fixed for the hearing.

(2) Service shall be effected as follows—

(a)on the company (subject to paragraph (3) below), by delivering the documents to its registered office;

(b)on any other person (subject to paragraph (4)), by delivering the documents to his proper address;

(c)in either case, in such other manner as the court may direct.

(3) If delivery to the company's registered office is not practicable, service may be effected by delivery to its last known principal place of business in England and Wales.

(4) For the purposes of paragraph (2)(b), a person's proper address is any which he has previously notified as his address for service; but if he has not notified any such address, service may be effected by delivery to his usual or last known address.

(5) Delivery of documents to any place or address may be made by leaving them there, or sending them by first class post.

Commencement Information

I40Rule 2.7 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Proof of serviceE+W

2.8.—(1) [[FORM 2.3]] Service of the petition shall be verified by affidavit, specifying the date on which, and the manner in which, service was effected.

(2) The affidavit, with a sealed copy of the petition exhibited to it, shall be filed in court forthwith after service, and in any event not less than one day before the hearing of the petition.

Commencement Information

I41Rule 2.8 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

The hearingE+W

2.9.—(1) At the hearing of the petition, any of the following may appear or be represented—

(a)the petitioner;

(b)the company;

(c)any person who has appointed an administrative receiver, or has the power to do so;

(d)if an administrative receiver has been appointed, he;

(e)any person who has presented a petition for the winding up of the company;

(f)the person proposed for appointment as administrator; and

(g)with the leave of the court, any other person who appears to have an interest justifying his appearance.

(2) [[FORM 2.4]] If the court makes an administration order, the costs of the petitioner, and of any person appearing whose costs are allowed by the court, are payable as an expense of the administration.

Commencement Information

I42Rule 2.9 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Notice and advertisement of administration orderE+W

2.10.—(1) If the court makes an administration order, it shall forthwith give notice to the person appointed as administrator.

(2) [[FORM 2.5]] Forthwith after the order is made, the administrator shall advertise its making once in the Gazette, and once in such newspaper as he thinks most appropriate for ensuring that the order comes to the notice of the company's creditors.

(3) The administrator shall also forthwith give notice of the making of the order—

(a)to any person who has appointed an administrative receiver, or has power to do so;

(b)if an administrative receiver has been appointed, to him;

(c)if there is pending a petition for the winding up of the company, to the petitioner (and also to the provisional liquidator, if any); and

(d)[[FORM 2.6]] to the registrar of companies.

(4) [[FORM 2.7]] Two sealed copies of the order shall be sent by the court to the administrator, one of which shall be sent by him to the registrar of companies in accordance with section 21(2).

(5) If under section 9(4) the court makes any other order, it shall give directions as to the persons to whom, and how, notice of it is to be given.

Commencement Information

I43Rule 2.10 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

CHAPTER 2E+WSTATEMENT OF AFFAIRS AND PROPOSALS TO CREDITORS

Notice requiring statement of affairsE+W

2.11.—(1) [[FORM 2.8]] If the administrator determines to require a statement of the company's affairs to be made out and submitted to him in accordance with section 22, he shall send notice to each of the persons whom he considers should be made responsible under that section, requiring them to prepare and submit the statement.

(2) The persons to whom the notice is sent are referred to in this Chapter as “the deponents”.

(3) The notice shall inform each of the deponents—

(a)of the names and addresses of all others (if any) to whom the same notice has been sent;

(b)of the time within which the statement must be delivered;

(c)of the effect of section 22(6) (penalty for non-compliance); and

(d)of the application to him, and to each of the other deponents, of section 235 (duty to provide information, and to attend on the administrator if required).

(4) The administrator shall, on request, furnish each deponent with instructions for the preparation of the statement and with the forms required for that purpose.

Commencement Information

I44Rule 2.11 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Verification and filingE+W

2.12.—(1) The statement of affairs shall be in FORM 2.9, [[FORM 2.9]] shall contain all the particulars required by that form and shall be verified by affidavit by the deponents (using the same form).

(2) The administrator may require any of the persons mentioned in section 22(3) to submit an affidavit of concurrence, stating that he concurs in the statement of affairs.

(3) An affidavit of concurrence may be qualified in respect of matters dealt with in the statement of affairs, where the maker of the affidavit is not in agreement with the deponents, or he considers the statement to be erroneous or misleading, or he is without the direct knowledge necessary for concurring with it.

(4) The statement of affairs shall be delivered to the administrator by the deponent making the affidavit of verification (or by one of them, if more than one), together with a copy of the verified statement.

(5) Every affidavit of concurrence shall be delivered by the person who makes it, together with a copy.

(6) The administrator shall file the verified copy of the statement, and the affidavits of concurrence (if any) in court.

Commencement Information

I45Rule 2.12 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Limited disclosureE+W

2.13.—(1) Where the administrator thinks that it would prejudice the conduct of the administration for the whole or part of the statement of affairs to be disclosed, he may apply to the court for an order of limited disclosure in respect of the statement, or any specified part of it.

(2) The court may on the application order that the statement or, as the case may be, the specified part of it, be not filed in court, or that it is to be filed separately and not be open to inspection otherwise than with leave of the court.

(3) The court's order may include directions as to the delivery of documents to the registrar of companies and the disclosure of relevant information to other persons.

Commencement Information

I46Rule 2.13 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Release from duty to submit statement of affairs; extension of timeE+W

2.14.—(1) The power of the administrator under section 22(5) to give a release from the obligation imposed by that section, or to grant an extension of time, may be exercised at the administrator's own discretion, or at the request of any deponent.

(2) A deponent may, if he requests a release or extension of time and it is refused by the administrator, apply to the court for it.

(3) The court may, if it thinks that no sufficient cause is shown for the application, dismiss it; but it shall not do so unless the applicant has had an opportunity to attend the court for an ex parte hearing, of which he has been given at least 7 days' notice.

If the application is not dismissed under this paragraph, the court shall fix a venue for it to be heard, and give notice to the deponent accordingly.

(4) The deponent shall, at least 14 days before the hearing, send to the administrator a notice stating the venue and accompanied by a copy of the application, and of any evidence which he (the deponent) intends to adduce in support of it.

(5) The administrator may appear and be heard on the application; and, whether or not he appears, he may file a written report of any matters which he considers ought to be drawn to the court's attention.

If such a report is filed, a copy of it shall be sent by the administrator to the deponent, not later than 5 days before the hearing.

(6) Sealed copies of any order made on the application shall be sent by the court to the deponent and the administrator.

(7) On any application under this Rule the applicant's costs shall be paid in any event by him and, unless the court otherwise orders, no allowance towards them shall be made out of the assets.

Commencement Information

I47Rule 2.14 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Expenses of statement of affairsE+W

2.15.—(1) A deponent making the statement of affairs and affidavit shall be allowed, and paid by the administrator out of his receipts, any expenses incurred by the deponent in so doing which the administrator considers reasonable.

(2) Any decision by the administrator under this Rule is subject to appeal to the court.

(3) Nothing in this Rule relieves a deponent from any obligation with respect to the preparation, verification and submission of the statement of affairs, or to the provision of information to the administrator.

Commencement Information

I48Rule 2.15 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Statement to be annexed to proposalsE+W

2.16.  There shall be annexed to the administrator's proposals, when sent to the registrar of companies under section 23 and laid before the creditors' meeting to be summoned under that section, a statement by him showing—

(a)details relating to his appointment as administrator, the purposes for which an administration order was applied for and made, and any subsequent variation of those purposes;

(b)the names of the directors and secretary of the company;

(c)an account of the circumstances giving rise to the application for an administration order;

(d)if a statement of affairs has been submitted, a copy or summary of it, with the administrator's comments, if any;

(e)if no statement of affairs has been submitted, details of the financial position of the company at the latest practicable date (which must, unless the court otherwise orders, be a date not earlier than that of the administration order);

(f)the manner in which the affairs of the company will be managed and its business financed, if the administrator's proposals are approved; and

(g)such other information (if any) as the administrator thinks necessary to enable creditors to decide whether or not to vote for the adoption of the proposals.

Commencement Information

I49Rule 2.16 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Notice to members of proposals to creditorsE+W

2.17.  The manner of publishing—

(a)under section 23(2)(b), notice to members of the administrator's proposals to creditors, and

(b)under section 25(3)(b), notice to members of substantial revisions of the proposals,

shall be by gazetting; and the notice shall also in either case be advertised once in the newspaper in which the administration order was advertised.

Commencement Information

I50Rule 2.17 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

CHAPTER 3E+WCREDITORS' AND COMPANY MEETINGS

SECTION A: CREDITORS' MEETINGSE+W
Meeting to consider administrator's proposalsE+W

2.18.—(1) Notice of the creditors' meeting to be summoned under section 23(1) shall be given to all the creditors of the company who are identified in the statement of affairs, or are known to the administrator and had claims against the company at the date of the administration order.

(2) Notice of the meeting shall also (unless the court otherwise directs) be given by advertisement in the newspaper in which the administration order was advertised.

(3) [[FORM 2.10]] . Notice to attend the meeting shall be sent out at the same time to any directors or officers of the company (including persons who have been directors or officers in the past) whose presence at the meeting is, in the administrator's opinion, required.

(4) If at the meeting there is not the requisite majority for approval of the administrator's proposals (with modifications, if any), the chairman may, and shall if a resolution is passed to that effect, adjourn the meeting for not more than 14 days.

Commencement Information

I51Rule 2.18 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Creditors' meetings generallyE+W

2.19.—(1) This Rule applies to creditors' meetings summoned by the administrator under—

(a)section 14(2)(b) (general power to summon meetings of creditors);

(b)section 17(3) (requisition by creditors; direction by the court);

(c)section 23(1) (to consider administrator's proposals); or

(d)section 25(2)(b) (to consider substantial revisions).

(2) In fixing the venue for the meeting, the administrator shall have regard to the convenience of creditors.

(3) The meeting shall be summoned for commencement between 10.00 and 16.00 hours on a business day, unless the court otherwise directs.

(4) [[FORM 2.11]] At least 21 days' notice of the meeting shall be given to all creditors who are known to the administrator and had claims against the company at the date of the administration order; and the notice shall specify the purpose of the meeting and contain a statement of the effect of Rule 2.22(1) (entitlement to vote).

(5) [[FORM 8.2]] With the notice summoning the meeting there shall be sent out forms of proxy.

(6) If within 30 minutes from the time fixed for commencement of the meeting there is no person present to act as chairman, the meeting stands adjourned to the same time and place in the following week or, if that is not a business day, to the business day immediately following.

(7) The meeting may from time to time be adjourned, if the chairman thinks fit, but not for more than 14 days from the date on which it was fixed to commence.

Commencement Information

I52Rule 2.19 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

The chairman at meetingsE+W

2.20.—(1) At any meeting of creditors summoned by the administrator, either he shall be chairman, or a person nominated by him in writing to act in his place.

(2) A person so nominated must be either—

(a)one who is qualified to act as an insolvency practitioner in relation to the company, or

(b)an employee of the administrator or his firm who is experienced in insolvency matters.

Commencement Information

I53Rule 2.20 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Meeting requisitioned by creditorsE+W

2.21.—(1) Any request by creditors to the administrator for a meeting of creditors to be summoned shall be accompanied by—

(a)a list of the creditors concurring with the request, showing the amounts of their respective claims in the administration;

(b)from each creditor concurring, written confirmation of his concurrence; and

(c)a statement of the purpose of the proposed meeting.

This paragraph does not apply if the requisitioning creditor's debt is alone sufficient, without the concurrence of other creditors.

(2) The administrator shall, if he considers the request to be properly made in accordance with section 17(3), fix a venue for the meeting, not more than 35 days from his receipt of the request, and give at least 21 days' notice of the meeting to creditors.

(3) The expenses of summoning and holding a meeting at the instance of any person other than the administrator shall be paid by that person, who shall deposit with the administrator security for their payment.

(4) The sum to be deposited shall be such as the administrator may determine, and he shall not act without the deposit having been made.

(5) The meeting may resolve that the expenses of summoning and holding it are to be payable out of the assets of the company, as an expense of the administration.

(6) To the extent that any deposit made under this Rule is not required for the payment of expenses of summoning and holding the meeting, it shall be repaid to the person who made it.

Commencement Information

I54Rule 2.21 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Entitlement to voteE+W

2.22.—(1) Subject as follows, at a meeting of creditors in administration proceedings a person is entitled to vote only if—

(a)he has given to the administrator, not later than 12.00 hours on the business day before the day fixed for the meeting, details in writing of the debt which he claims to be due to him from the company, and the claim has been duly admitted under the following provisions of this Rule, and

(b)there has been lodged with the administrator any proxy which he intends to be used on his behalf.

Details of the debt must include any calculation for the purposes of Rules 2.24 to 2.27.

(2) The chairman of the meeting may allow a creditor to vote, notwithstanding that he has failed to comply with paragraph (1)(a), if satisfied that the failure was due to circumstances beyond the creditor's control.

(3) The administrator or, if other, the chairman of the meeting may call for any document or other evidence to be produced to him, where he thinks it necessary for the purpose of substantiating the whole or any part of the claim.

(4) Votes are calculated according to the amount of a creditor's debt as at the date of the administration order, deducting any amounts paid in respect of the debt after that date.

(5) A creditor shall not vote in respect of a debt for an unliquidated amount, or any debt whose value is not ascertained, except where the chairman agrees to put upon the debt an estimated minimum value for the purpose of entitlement to vote and admits the claim for that purpose.

Commencement Information

I55Rule 2.22 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Admission and rejection of claimsE+W

2.23.—(1) At any creditors' meeting the chairman has power to admit or reject a creditor's claim for the purpose of his entitlement to vote; and the power is exercisable with respect to the whole or any part of the claim.

(2) The chairman's decision under this Rule, or in respect of any matter arising under Rule 2.22, is subject to appeal to the court by any creditor.

(3) If the chairman is in doubt whether a claim should be admitted or rejected, he shall mark it as objected to and allow the creditor to vote, subject to his vote being subsequently declared invalid if the objection to the claim is sustained.

(4) If on an appeal the chairman's decision is reversed or varied, or a creditor's vote is declared invalid, the court may order that another meeting be summoned, or make such other order as it thinks just.

(5) In the case of the meeting summoned under section 23 to consider the administrator's proposals, an application to the court by way of appeal under this Rule against a decision of the chairman shall not be made later than 28 days after the delivery of the administrator's report in accordance with section 24(4).

(6) Neither the administrator nor any person nominated by him to be chairman is personally liable for costs incurred by any person in respect of an appeal to the court under this Rule, unless the court makes an order to that effect.

Commencement Information

I56Rule 2.23 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Secured creditorsE+W

2.24.  At a meeting of creditors a secured creditor is entitled to vote only in respect of the balance (if any) of his debt after deducting the value of his security as estimated by him.

Commencement Information

I57Rule 2.24 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Holders of negotiable instrumentsE+W

2.25.  A creditor shall not vote in respect of a debt on, or secured by, a current bill of exchange or promissory note, unless he is willing—

(a)to treat the liability to him on the bill or note of every person who is liable on it antecedently to the company, and against whom a bankruptcy order has not been made (or, in the case of a company, which has not gone into liquidation), as a security in his hands, and

(b)to estimate the value of the security and, for the purpose of his entitlement to vote, to deduct it from his claim.

Commencement Information

I58Rule 2.25 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Retention of title creditorsE+W

2.26.  For the purpose of entitlement to vote at a creditors' meeting in administration proceedings, a seller of goods to the company under a retention of title agreement shall deduct from his claim the value, as estimated by him, of any rights arising under that agreement in respect of goods in possession of the company.

Commencement Information

I59Rule 2.26 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Hire-purchase, conditional sale and chattel leasing agreementsE+W

2.27.—(1) Subject as follows, an owner of goods under a hire-purchase or chattel leasing agreement, or a seller of goods under a conditional sale agreement, is entitled to vote in respect of the amount of the debt due and payable to him by the company as at the date of the administration order.

(2) In calculating the amount of any debt for this purpose, no account shall be taken of any amount attributable to the exercise of any right under the relevant agreement, so far as the right has become exercisable solely by virtue of the presentation of the petition for an administration order or any matter arising in consequence of that, or of the making of the order.

Commencement Information

I60Rule 2.27 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Resolutions and minutesE+W

2.28.—(1) At a creditors' meeting in administration proceedings, a resolution is passed when a majority (in value) of those present and voting, in person or by proxy, have voted in favour of it.

(2) The chairman of the meeting shall cause minutes of its proceedings to be entered in the company's minute book.

(3) The minutes shall include a list of the creditors who attended (personally or by proxy) and, if a creditors' committee has been established, the names and addresses of those elected to be members of the committee.

Commencement Information

I61Rule 2.28 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Administrator's reportE+W

2.29.  Any report by the administrator of the result of creditors' meetings held under section 23 or 25 shall have annexed to it details of the proposals which were considered by the meeting in question and of the modifications which were so considered.

Commencement Information

I62Rule 2.29 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Notices to creditorsE+W

2.30.—(1) [[FORM 2.12]] Within 14 days of the conclusion of a meeting of creditors to consider the administrator's proposals or revised proposals, the administrator shall send notice of the result of the meeting (including, where appropriate, details of the proposals as approved) to every creditor who received notice of the meeting under the Rules, and to any other creditor of whom the administrator has since become aware.

(2) Within 14 days of the end of every period of 6 months beginning with the date of approval of the administrator's proposals or revised proposals, the administrator shall send to all creditors of the company a report on the progress of the administration.

(3) On vacating office the administrator shall send to creditors a report on the administration up to that time.

This does not apply where the administration is immediately followed by the company going into liquidation, nor when the administrator is removed from office by the court or ceases to be qualified as an insolvency practitioner.

Commencement Information

I63Rule 2.30 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

SECTION B: COMPANY MEETINGSE+W
Venue and conduct of company meetingE+W

2.31.—(1) Where the administrator summons a meeting of members of the company, he shall fix a venue for it having regard to their convenience.

(2) The chairman of the meeting shall be the administrator or a person nominated by him in writing to act in his place.

(3) A person so nominated must be either—

(a)one who is qualified to act as an insolvency practitioner in relation to the company, or

(b)an employee of the administrator or his firm who is experienced in insolvency matters.

(4) If within 30 minutes from the time fixed for commencement of the meeting there is no person present to act as chairman, the meeting stands adjourned to the same time and place in the following week or, if that is not a business day, to the business day immediately following.

(5) Subject as above, the meeting shall be summoned and conducted as if it were a general meeting of the company summoned under the company's articles of association, and in accordance with the applicable provisions of the Companies Act.

(6) The chairman of the meeting shall cause minutes of its proceedings to be entered in the company's minute book.

Commencement Information

I64Rule 2.31 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

CHAPTER 4E+WTHE CREDITORS' COMMITTEE

Constitution of committeeE+W

2.32.—(1) Where it is resolved by a creditors' meeting to establish a creditors' committee for the purposes of the administration, the committee shall consist of at least 3 and not more than 5 creditors of the company elected at the meeting.

(2) Any creditor of the company is eligible to be a member of the committee, so long as his claim has not been rejected for the purpose of his entitlement to vote.

(3) A body corporate may be a member of the committee, but it cannot act as such otherwise than by a representative appointed under Rule 2.37 below.

Commencement Information

I65Rule 2.32 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Formalities of establishmentE+W

2.33.—(1) The creditors' committee does not come into being, and accordingly cannot act, until the administrator has issued a certificate of its due constitution.

(2) No person may act as a member of the committee unless and until he has agreed to do so; and the administrator's certificate of the committee's due constitution shall not issue unless and until at least 3 of the persons who are to be members of it have agreed to act.

(3) As and when the others (if any) agree to act, the administrator shall issue an amended certificate.

(4) [[FORM 2.13]] The certificate, and any amended certificate, shall be filed in court by the administrator.

(5) [[FORM 2.14]] If after the first establishment of the committee there is any change in its membership, the administrator shall report the change to the court.

Commencement Information

I66Rule 2.33 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Functions and meetings of the committeeE+W

2.34.—(1) The creditors' committee shall assist the administrator in discharging his functions, and act in relation to him in such manner as may be agreed from time to time.

(2) Subject as follows, meetings of the committee shall be held when and where determined by the administrator.

(3) The administrator shall call a first meeting of the committee not later than 3 months after its first establishment; and thereafter he shall call a meeting—

(a)if so requested by a member of the committee or his representative (the meeting then to be held within 21 days of the request being received by the administrator), and

(b)for a specified date, if the committee has previously resolved that a meeting be held on that date.

(4) The administrator shall give 7 days' written notice of the venue of any meeting to every member of the committee (or his representative designated for that purpose), unless in any case the requirement of notice has been waived by or on behalf of any member.

Waiver may be signified either at or or before the meeting.

Commencement Information

I67Rule 2.34 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

The chairman at meetingsE+W

2.35.—(1) Subject to Rule 2.44(3), the chairman at any meeting of the creditors' committee shall be the administrator or a person nominated by him in writing to act.

(2) A person so nominated must be either—

(a)one who is qualified to act as an insolvency practitioner in relation to the company, or

(b)an employee of the administrator or his firm who is experienced in insolvency matters.

Commencement Information

I68Rule 2.35 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

QuorumE+W

2.36.  A meeting of the committee is duly constituted if due notice of it has been given to all the members, and at least 2 members are present or represented.

Commencement Information

I69Rule 2.36 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Committee-members' representativesE+W

2.37.—(1) A member of the committee may, in relation to the business of the committee, be represented by another person duly authorised by him for that purpose.

(2) A person acting as a committee-member's representative must hold a letter of authority entitling him so to act (either generally or specially) and signed by or on behalf of the committee-member.

(3) The chairman at any meeting of the committee may call on a person claiming to act as a committee-member's representative to produce his letter of authority, and may exclude him if it appears that his authority is deficient.

(4) No member may be represented by a body corporate, or by a person who is an undischarged bankrupt, or is subject to a composition or arrangement with his creditors.

(5) No person shall—

(a)on the same committee, act at one and the same time as representative of more than one committee-member, or

(b)act both as a member of the committee and as representative of another member.

(6) Where a member's representative signs any document on the member's behalf, the fact that he so signs must be stated below his signature.

Commencement Information

I70Rule 2.37 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

ResignationE+W

2.38.  A member of the committee may resign by notice in writing delivered to the administrator.

Commencement Information

I71Rule 2.38 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Termination of membershipE+W

2.39.—(1) Membership of the creditors' committee is automatically terminated if the member—

(a)becomes bankrupt, or compounds or arranges with his creditors, or

(b)at 3 consecutive meetings of the committee is neither present nor represented (unless at the third of those meetings it is resolved that this Rule is not to apply in his case), or

(c)ceases to be, or is found never to have been, a creditor.

(2) However, if the cause of termination is the member's bankruptcy, his trustee in bankruptcy replaces him as a member of the committee.

Commencement Information

I72Rule 2.39 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

RemovalE+W

2.40.  A member of the committee may be removed by resolution at a meeting of creditors, at least 14 days' notice having been given of the intention to move that resolution.

Commencement Information

I73Rule 2.40 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

VacanciesE+W

2.41.—(1) The following applies if there is a vacancy in the membership of the creditors' committee.

(2) The vacancy need not be filled if the administrator and a majority of the remaining members of the committee so agree, provided that the total number of members does not fall below the minimum required under Rule 2.32.

(3) The administrator may appoint any creditor (being qualified under the Rules to be a member of the committee) to fill the vacancy, if a majority of the other members of the committee agree to the appointment, and the creditor concerned consents to act.

Commencement Information

I74Rule 2.41 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Procedure at meetingsE+W

2.42.—(1) At any meeting of the creditors' committee, each member of it (whether present himself, or by his representative) has one vote; and a resolution is passed when a majority of the members present or represented have voted in favour of it.

(2) Every resolution passed shall be recorded in writing, either separately or as part of the minutes of the meeting.

(3) A record of each resolution shall be signed by the chairman and placed in the company's minute book.

Commencement Information

I75Rule 2.42 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Resolutions by postE+W

2.43.—(1) In accordance with this Rule, the administrator may seek to obtain the agreement of members of the creditors' committee to a resolution by sending to every member (or his representative designated for the purpose) a copy of the proposed resolution.

(2) Where the administrator makes use of the procedure allowed by this Rule, he shall send out to members of the committee or their representatives (as the case may be) a statement incorporating the resolution to which their agreement is sought, each resolution (if more than one) being sent out in a separate document.

(3) Any member of the committee may, within 7 business days from the date of the administrator sending out a resolution, require him to summon a meeting of the committee to consider the matters raised by the resolution.

(4) In the absence of such a request, the resolution is deemed to have been passed by the committee if and when the administrator is notified in writing by a majority of the members that they concur with it.

(5) A copy of every resolution passed under this Rule, and a note that the committee's concurrence was obtained, shall be placed in the company's minute book.

Commencement Information

I76Rule 2.43 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Information from administratorE+W

2.44.—(1) Where the committee resolves to require the attendance of the administrator under section 26(2), the notice to him shall be in writing signed by the majority of the members of the committee for the time being. A member's representative may sign for him.

(2) The meeting at which the administrator's attendance is required shall be fixed by the committee for a business day, and shall be held at such time and place as he determines.

(3) Where the administrator so attends, the members of the committee may elect any one of their number to be chairman of the meeting, in place of the administrator or a nominee of his.

Commencement Information

I77Rule 2.44 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Expenses of membersE+W

2.45.—(1) Subject as follows, the administrator shall out of the assets of the company defray any reasonable travelling expenses directly incurred by members of the creditors' committee or their representatives in relation to their attendance at the committee's meetings, or otherwise on the committee's business, as an expense of the administration.

(2) Paragraph (1) does not apply to any meeting of the committee held within 3 months of a previous meeting, unless the meeting in question is summoned at the instance of the administrator.

Commencement Information

I78Rule 2.45 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Members' dealings with the companyE+W

2.46.—(1) Membership of the committee does not prevent a person from dealing with the company while the administration order is in force, provided that any transactions in the course of such dealings are in good faith and for value.

(2) The court may, on the application of any person interested, set aside any transaction which appears to it to be contrary to the requirements of this Rule, and may give such consequential directions as it thinks fit for compensating the company for any loss which it may have incurred in consequence of the transaction.

Commencement Information

I79Rule 2.46 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

CHAPTER 5E+WTHE ADMINISTRATOR

Fixing of remunerationE+W

2.47.—(1) The administrator is entitled to receive remuneration for his services as such.

(2) The remuneration shall be fixed either—

(a)as a percentage of the value of the property with which he has to deal, or

(b)by reference to the time properly given by the insolvency practitioner (as administrator) and his staff in attending to matters arising in the administration.

(3) It is for the creditors' committee (if there is one) to determine whether the remuneration is to be fixed under paragraph (2)(a) or (b) and, if under paragraph (2)(a), to determine any percentage to be applied as there mentioned.

(4) In arriving at that determination, the committee shall have regard to the following matters—

(a)the complexity (or otherwise) of the case,

(b)any respects in which, in connection with the company's affairs, there falls on the administrator any responsibility of an exceptional kind or degree,

(c)the effectiveness with which the administrator appears to be carrying out, or to have carried out, his duties as such, and

(d)the value and nature of the property with which he has to deal.

(5) If there is no creditors' committee, or the committee does not make the requisite determination, the administrator's remuneration may be fixed (in accordance with paragraph (2)) by a resolution of a meeting of creditors; and paragraph (4) applies to them as it does to the creditors' committee.

(6) If not fixed as above, the administrator's remuneration shall, on his application, be fixed by the court.

(7) Rule 4.128(2) and (3) in Part 4 of the Rules (remuneration of joint liquidators; solicitors' profit costs) applies to an administrator as it applies to a liquidator, with any necessary modifications.

Commencement Information

I80Rule 2.47 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Recourse to meeting of creditorsE+W

2.48.  If the administrator's remuneration has been fixed by the creditors' committee, and he considers the rate or amount to be insufficient, he may request that it be increased by resolution of the creditors.

Commencement Information

I81Rule 2.48 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Recourse to the courtE+W

2.49.—(1) If the administrator considers that the remuneration fixed for him by the creditors' committee, or by resolution of the creditors, is insufficient, he may apply to the court for an order increasing its amount or rate.

(2) The administrator shall give at least 14 days' notice of his application to the members of the creditors' committee; and the committee may nominate one or more members to appear or be represented, and to be heard, on the application.

(3) If there is no creditors' committee, the administrator's notice of his application shall be sent to such one or more of the company's creditors as the court may direct, which creditors may nominate one or more of their number to appear or be represented.

(4) The court may, if it appears to be a proper case, order the costs of the administrator's application, including the costs of any member of the creditors' committee appearing on it, or any creditor so appearing, to be paid as an expense of the administration.

Commencement Information

I82Rule 2.49 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Creditors' claim that remuneration is excessiveE+W

2.50.—(1) Any creditor of the company may, with the concurrence of at least 25 per cent. in value of the creditors (including himself), apply to the court for an order that the administrator's remuneration be reduced, on the grounds that it is, in all the circumstances, excessive.

(2) The court may, if it thinks that no sufficient cause is shown for a reduction, dismiss the application; but it shall not do so unless the applicant has had an opportunity to attend the court for an ex parte hearing, of which he has been given at least 7 days' notice.

If the application is not dismissed under this paragraph, the court shall fix a venue for it to be heard, and give notice to the applicant accordingly.

(3) The applicant shall, at least 14 days before the hearing, send to the administrator a notice stating the venue and accompanied by a copy of the application, and of any evidence which the applicant intends to adduce in support of it.

(4) If the court considers the application to be well-founded, it shall make and order fixing the remuneration at a reduced amount or rate.

(5) Unless the court orders otherwise, the costs of the application shall be paid by the applicant, and are not payable as an expense of the administration.

Commencement Information

I83Rule 2.50 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Disposal of charged property, etcE+W

2.51.—(1) The following applies where the administrator applies to the court under section 15(2) for authority to dispose of property of the company which is subject to a security, or goods in the possession of the company under an agreement, to which that subsection relates.

(2) The court shall fix a venue for the hearing of the application, and the administrator shall forthwith give notice of the venue to the person who is the holder of the security or, as the case may be, the owner under the agreement.

(3) If an order is made under section 15(2), the administrator shall forthwith give notice of it to that person or owner.

(4) The court shall send 2 sealed copies of the order to the administrator, who shall send one of them to that person or owner.

Commencement Information

I84Rule 2.51 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Abstract of receipts and paymentsE+W

2.52.—(1) The administrator shall—

(a)within 2 months after the end of 6 months from the date of his appointment, and of every subsequent period of 6 months, and

(b)within 2 months after he ceases to act as administrator,

[[FORM 2.15]] send to the court, and to the registrar of companies, and to each member of the creditors' committee, the requisite accounts of the receipts and payments of the company.

(2) The court may, on the administrator's application, extend the period of 2 months mentioned above.

(3) The accounts are to be in the form of an abstract showing—

(a)receipts and payments during the relevant period of 6 months, or

(b)where the administrator has ceased to act, receipts and payments during the period from the end of the last 6-month period to the time when he so ceased (alternatively, if there has been no previous abstract, receipts and payments in the period since his appointment as administrator).

(4) If the administrator makes default in complying with this Rule, he is liable to a fine and, for continued contravention, to a daily default fine.

Commencement Information

I85Rule 2.52 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

ResignationE+W

2.53.—(1) [[FORM 2.16]] The administrator may give notice of his resignation on grounds of ill health or because—

(a)he intends ceasing to be in practice as an insolvency practitioner, or

(b)there is some conflict of interest, or change of personal circumstances, which precludes or makes impracticable the further discharge by him of the duties of administrator.

(2) [[FORM 2.17]] The administrator may, with the leave of the court, give notice of his resignation on grounds other than those specified in paragraph (1).

(3) The administrator must give to the persons specified below at least 7 days' notice of his intention to resign, or to apply for the court's leave to do so—

(a)if there is a continuing administrator of the company, to him;

(b)if there is no such administrator, to the creditors' committee; and

(c)if there is no such administrator and no creditors' committee, to the company and its creditors.

Commencement Information

I86Rule 2.53 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Administrator deceasedE+W

2.54.—(1) Subject as follows, where the administrator has died, it is the duty of his personal representatives to give notice of the fact to the court, specifying the date of the death.

This does not apply if notice has been given under any of the following paragraphs of this Rule.

(2) If the deceased administrator was a partner in a firm, notice may be given by a partner in the firm who is qualified to act as an insolvency practitioner, or is a member of any body recognised by the Secretary of State for the authorisation of insolvency practitioners.

(3) Notice of the death may be given by any person producing to the court the relevant death certificate or a copy of it.

Commencement Information

I87Rule 2.54 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Order filling vacancyE+W

2.55.  Where the court makes an order filling a vacancy in the office of administrator, the same provisions apply in respect of giving notice of, and advertising, the order as in the case of the original appointment of an administrator.

Commencement Information

I88Rule 2.55 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

CHAPTER 6E+WVAT BAD DEBT RELIEF

Issue of certificate of insolvencyE+W

2.56.—(1) In accordance with this Rule, it is the duty of the administrator to issue a certificate in the terms of paragraph (b) of section 22(3) of the Value Added Tax Act 1983(a)(1) (which specifies the circumstances in which a company is deemed insolvent for the purposes of that section forthwith upon his forming the opinion described in that paragraph.

(2) There shall in the certificate be specified—

(a)the name of the company and its registered number;

(b)the name of the administrator and the date of his appointment;

(c)the date on which the certificate is issued.

(3) The certificate shall be intituled “CERTIFICATE OF INSOLVENCY FOR THE PURPOSES OF SECTION 22(3)(b) OF THE VALUE ADDED TAX ACT 1983”.

Commencement Information

I89Rule 2.56 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Notice to creditorsE+W

2.57.—(1) Notice of the issue of the certificate shall be given by the administrator within 3 months of his appointment or within 2 months of issuing the certificate, whichever is the later, to all of the company's unsecured creditors of whose address he is then aware and who have, to his knowledge, made supplies to the company, with a charge to value added tax, at any time before his appointment.

(2) Thereafter, he shall give the notice to any such creditor of whose address and supplies to the company he becomes aware.

(3) He is not under obligation to provide any creditor with a copy of the certificate.

Commencement Information

I90Rule 2.57 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Preservation of certificate with company's recordsE+W

2.58.—(1) The certificate shall be retained with the company's accounting records, and section 222 of the Companies Act (where and for how long records are to be kept) shall apply to the certificate as it applies to those records.

(2) It is the duty of the administrator, on vacating office, to bring this Rule to the attention of the directors or (as the case may be) any successor of his as administrator.

Commencement Information

I91Rule 2.58 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

PART 3E+WADMINISTRATIVE RECEIVERSHIP

CHAPTER 1E+WAPPOINTMENT OF ADMINISTRATIVE RECEIVER

Acceptance of appointmentE+W

3.1.—(1) Where a person is appointed as the sole or joint administrative receiver of a company's property under powers contained in an instrument, the appointee, if he accepts the appointment, shall within 7 days confirm his acceptance in writing to the appointer.

(2) If two or more persons are appointed jointly as administrative receivers, each of them shall confirm acceptance on his own behalf; but the appointment is effective only when all those jointly appointed have complied with this Rule.

(3) Confirmation under this Rule may be given on the appointee's behalf by a person whom he has duly authorised to give it.

(4) In confirming his acceptance, the appointee shall state—

(a)the time and date of his receipt of notice of the appointment, and

(b)the time and date of his acceptance.

Commencement Information

I92Rule 3.1 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Notice and advertisement of appointmentE+W

3.2.—(1) This Rule relates to the notice which a person is required by section 46(1) to send and publish, when appointed as administrative receiver.

(2) The following matters shall be stated in the notice—

(a)the registered name of the company, as at the date of the appointment, and its registered number;

(b)any other name with which the company has been registered in the 12 months preceding that date;

(c)any name under which the company has traded at any time in those 12 months, if substantially different from its then registered name;

(d)the name and address of the administrative receiver, and the date of his appointment;

(e)the name of the person by whom the appointment was made;

(f)the date of the instrument conferring the power under which the appointment was made, and a brief description of the instrument;

(g)a brief description of the assets of the company (if any) in respect of which the person appointed is not made the receiver.

(3) The administrative receiver shall cause notice of his appointment to be advertised once in the Gazette, and once in such newspaper as he thinks most appropriate for ensuring that it comes to the notice of the company's creditors.

(4) The advertisement shall state all the matters specified in subparagraphs (a) to (e) of paragraph (2) above.

Commencement Information

I93Rule 3.2 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

CHAPTER 2E+WSTATEMENT OF AFFAIRS AND REPORT TO CREDITORS

Notice requiring statement of affairsE+W

3.3.—(1) [[FORM 3.1]] If the administrative receiver determines to require a statement of the company's affairs to be made out and submitted to him in accordance with section 47, he shall send notice to each of the persons whom he considers should be made responsible under that section, requiring them to prepare and submit the statement.

(2) The persons to whom the notice is sent are referred to in this Chapter as “the deponents”.

(3) The notice shall inform each of the deponents—

(a)of the names and addresses of all others (if any) to whom the same notice has been sent;

(b)of the time within which the statement must be delivered;

(c)of the effect of section 47(6) (penalty for non-compliance); and

(d)of the application to him, and to each of the other deponents, of section 235 (duty to provide information, and to attend on the administrative receiver if required).

(4) The administrative receiver shall, on request, furnish each deponent with instructions for the preparation of the statement and with the forms required for that purpose.

Commencement Information

I94Rule 3.3 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Verification and filingE+W

3.4.—(1) [[FORM 3.2]] The statement of affairs shall be in Form 3.2, shall contain all the particulars required by that form and shall be verified by affidavit by the deponents (using the same form).

(2) The administrative receiver may require any of the persons mentioned in section 47(3) to submit an affidavit of concurrence, stating that he concurs in the statement of affairs.

(3) An affidavit of concurrence may be qualified in respect of matters dealt with in the statement of affairs, where the maker of the affidavit is not in agreement with the deponents, or he considers the statement to be erroneous or misleading, or he is without the direct knowledge necessary for concurring with it.

(4) The statement of affairs shall be delivered to the receiver by the deponent making the affidavit of verification (or by one of them, if more than one), together with a copy of the verified statement.

(5) Every affidavit of concurrence shall be delivered by the person who makes it, together with a copy.

(6) The administrative receiver shall retain the verified copy of the statement and the affidavits of concurrence (if any) as part of the records of the receivership.

Commencement Information

I95Rule 3.4 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Limited disclosureE+W

3.5.—(1) Where the administrative receiver thinks that it would prejudice the conduct of the receivership for the whole or part of the statement of affairs to be disclosed, he may apply to the court for an order of limited disclosure in respect of the statement or a specified part of it.

(2) The court may on the application order that the statement, or, as the case may be, the specified part of it, be not open to inspection otherwise than with leave of the court.

(3) The court's order may include directions as to the delivery of documents to the registrar of companies and the disclosure of relevant information to other persons.

Commencement Information

I96Rule 3.5 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Release from duty to submit statement of affairs; extension of timeE+W

3.6.—(1) The power of the administrative receiver under section 47(5) to give a release from the obligation imposed by that section, or to grant an extension of time, may be exercised at the receiver's own discretion, or at the request of any deponent.

(2) A deponent may, if he requests a release or extension of time and it is refused by the receiver, apply to the court for it.

(3) The court may, if it thinks that no sufficient cause is shown for the application, dismiss it; but it shall not do so unless the applicant has had an opportunity to attend the court for an ex parte hearing, of which he has been given at least 7 days' notice.

If the application is not dismissed under this paragraph, the court shall fix a venue for it to be heard, and give notice to the deponent accordingly.

(4) The deponent shall, at least 14 days before the hearing, send to the receiver a notice stating the venue and accompanied by a copy of the application, and of any evidence which he (the deponent) intends to adduce in support of it.

(5) The receiver may appear and be heard on the application; and, whether or not he appears he may file a written report of any matters which he considers ought to be drawn to the court's attention.

If such a report is filed, a copy of it shall be sent by the receiver to the deponent, not later than 5 days before the hearing.

(6) Sealed copies of any order made on the application shall be sent by the court to the deponent and the receiver.

(7) On any application under this Rule the applicant's costs shall be paid in any event by him and, unless the court otherwise orders, no allowance towards them shall be made out of the assets under the administrative receiver's control.

Commencement Information

I97Rule 3.6 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Expenses of statement of affairsE+W

3.7.—(1) A deponent making the statement of affairs and affidavit shall be allowed, and paid by the administrative receiver out of his receipts, any expenses incurred by the deponent in so doing which the receiver thinks reasonable.

(2) Any decision by the receiver under this Rule is subject to appeal to the court.

(3) Nothing in this Rule relieves a deponent from any obligation with respect to the preparation, verification and submission of the statement of affairs, or to the provision of information to the receiver.

Commencement Information

I98Rule 3.7 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Report to creditorsE+W

3.8.—(1) If under section 48(2) the administrative receiver determines not to send a copy of his report to creditors, but to publish notice under paragraph (b) of that subsection, the notice shall be published in the newspaper in which the receiver's appointment was advertised.

(2) If he proposes to apply to the court to dispense with the holding of the meeting of unsecured creditors (otherwise required by section 48(2)), he shall in his report to creditors or (as the case may be) in the notice published as above, state the venue fixed by the court for the hearing of the application.

(3) Subject to any order of the court under Rule 3.5, the copy of the receiver's report which under section 48(1) is to be sent to the registrar of companies shall have attached to it a copy of any statement of affairs under section 47, and copies of any affidavits of concurrence.

(4) [[FORM 3.3]] If the statement of affairs or affidavits of concurrence, if any, have not been submitted to the receiver by the time he sends a copy of his report to the registrar of companies, he shall send a copy of the statement and any affidavits of concurrence as soon thereafter as he receives them.

Commencement Information

I99Rule 3.8 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

CHAPTER 3E+WCREDITORS' MEETING

Procedure for summoning meeting under s.48(2)E+W

3.9.—(1) In fixing the venue for a meeting of creditors summoned under section 48(2), the administrative receiver shall have regard to the convenience of the persons who are invited to attend.

(2) The meeting shall be summoned for commencement between 10.00 and 16.00 hours on a business day, unless the court otherwise directs.

(3) At least 14 days' notice of the venue shall be given to all creditors of the company who are identified in the statement of affairs, or are known to the receiver and had claims against the company at the date of his appointment.

(4) [[FORM 8.3]] With the notice summoning the meeting there shall be sent out forms of proxy.

(5) The notice shall include a statement to the effect that creditors whose claims are wholly secured are not entitled to attend or be represented at the meeting.

(6) Notice of the venue shall also be published in the newspaper in which the receiver's appointment was advertised.

(7) The notice to creditors and the newspaper advertisement shall contain a statement of the effect of Rule 3.11(1) below (voting rights).

Commencement Information

I100Rule 3.9 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

The chairman at the meetingE+W

3.10.—(1) The chairman at the creditors' meeting shall be the receiver, or a person nominated by him in writing to act in his place.

(2) A person so nominated must be either—

(a)one who is qualified to act as an insolvency practitioner in relation to the company, or

(b)an employee of the receiver or his firm who is experienced in insolvency matters.

Commencement Information

I101Rule 3.10 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Voting rightsE+W

3.11.—(1) Subject as follows, at the creditors' meeting a person is entitled to vote only if—

(a)he has given to the receiver, not later than 12.00 hours on the business day before the day fixed for the meeting, details in writing of the debt that he claims to be due to him from the company, and the claim has been duly admitted under the following provisions of this Rule, and

(b)there has been lodged with the administrative receiver any proxy which the creditor intends to be used on his behalf.

(2) The chairman of the meeting may allow a creditor to vote, notwithstanding that he has failed to comply with paragraph (1)(a), if satisfied that the failure was due to circumstances beyond the creditor's control.

(3) The receiver or (if other) the chairman of the meeting may call for any document or other evidence to be produced to him where he thinks it necessary for the purpose of substantiating the whole or any part of the claim.

(4) Votes are calculated according to the amount of a creditor's debt as at the date of the appointment of the receiver, after deducting any amounts paid in respect of that debt after that date.

(5) A creditor shall not vote in respect of a debt for an unliquidated amount, or any debt whose value is not ascertained, except where the chairman agrees to put upon the debt an estimated minimum value for the purpose of entitlement to vote and admits the claim for that purpose.

(6) A secured creditor is entitled to vote only in respect of the balance (if any) of his debt after deducting the value of his security as estimated by him.

(7) A creditor shall not vote in respect of a debt on, or secured by, a current bill of exchange or promissory note, unless he is willing—

(a)to treat the liability to him on the bill or note of every person who is liable on it antecedently to the company, and against whom a bankruptcy order has not been made (or, in the case of a company, which has not gone into liquidation), as a security in his hands, and

(b)to estimate the value of the security and, for the purpose of his entitlement to vote, to deduct it from his claim.

Commencement Information

I102Rule 3.11 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Admission and rejection of claimE+W

3.12.—(1) At the creditors' meeting the chairman has power to admit or reject a creditor's claim for the purpose of his entitlement to vote; and the power is exercisable with respect to the whole or any part of the claim.

(2) The chairman's decision under this Rule, or in respect of any matter arising under Rule 3.11, is subject to appeal to the court by any creditor.

(3) If the chairman is in doubt whether a claim should be admitted or rejected, he shall mark it as objected to and allow the creditor to vote, subject to his vote being subsequently declared invalid if the objection to the claim is sustained.

(4) If on an appeal the chairman's decision is reversed or varied, or a creditor's vote is declared invalid, the court may order that another meeting be summoned, or make such other order as it thinks just.

(5) Neither the receiver nor any person nominated by him to be chairman is personally liable for costs incurred by any person in respect of an appeal to the court under this Rule, unless the court makes an order to that effect.

Commencement Information

I103Rule 3.12 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

QuorumE+W

3.13.—(1) The creditors' meeting is not competent to act unless there are present in person or by proxy at least 3 creditors (or all of the creditors, if their number does not exceed 3), being in either case entitled to vote.

(2) One person constitutes a quorum if—

(a)he is himself a creditor or representative under section 375 of the Companies Act, with entitlement to vote, and he holds a number of proxies sufficient to ensure that, with his own vote, paragraph (1) is complied with, or

(b)being the chairman or any other person, he holds that number of proxies.

Commencement Information

I104Rule 3.13 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

AdjournmentE+W

3.14.—(1) The creditors' meeting shall not be adjourned, even if no quorum is present, unless the chairman decides that it is desirable; and in that case he shall adjourn it to such date, time and place as he thinks fit.

(2) Rule 3.9(1) and (2) applies, with necessary modifications, to any adjourned meeting.

(3) If there is no quorum, and the meeting is not adjourned, it is deemed to have been duly summoned and held.

Commencement Information

I105Rule 3.14 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Resolutions and minutesE+W

3.15.—(1) At the creditors' meeting, a resolution is passed when a majority (in value) of those present and voting in person or by proxy have voted in favour of it.

(2) The chairman of the meeting shall cause a record to be made of the proceedings, and kept as part of the records of the receivership.

(3) The record shall include a list of the creditors who attended (personally or by proxy) and, if a creditors' committee has been established, the names and addresses of those elected to be members of the committee.

Commencement Information

I106Rule 3.15 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

CHAPTER 4E+WTHE CREDITORS' COMMITTEE

Constitution of committeeE+W

3.16.—(1) Where it is resolved by the creditors' meeting to establish a creditors' committee, the committee shall consist of at least 3 and not more than 5 creditors of the company elected at the meeting.

(2) Any creditor of the company is eligible to be a member of the committee, so long as his claim has not been rejected for the purpose of his entitlement to vote.

(3) A body corporate may be a member of the committee, but it cannot act as such otherwise than by a representative appointed under Rule 3.21 below.

Commencement Information

I107Rule 3.16 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Formalities of establishmentE+W

3.17.—(1) The creditors' committee does not come into being, and accordingly cannot act, until the administrative receiver has issued a certificate of its due constitution.

(2) No person may act as a member of the committee unless and until he has agreed to do so; and the receiver's certificate of the committee's due constitution shall not issue unless and until at least 3 of the persons who are to be members of it have agreed to act.

(3) As and when the others (if any) agree to act, the receiver shall issue an amended certificate.

(4) [[FORM 3.4]] The certificate, and any amended certificate, shall be sent by the receiver to the registrar of companies.

(5) [[FORM 3.5]] If, after the first establishment of the committee, there is any change in its membership, the receiver shall report the change to the registrar of companies.

Commencement Information

I108Rule 3.17 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Functions and meetings of the committeeE+W

3.18.—(1) The creditors' committee shall assist the administrative receiver in discharging his functions, and act in relation to him in such manner as may be agreed from time to time.

(2) Subject as follows, meetings of the committee shall be held when and where determined by the receiver.

(3) The receiver shall call a first meeting of the committee not later than 3 months after its establishment; and thereafter he shall call a meeting—

(a)if requested by a member of the committee or his representative (the meeting then to be held within 21 days of the request being received by the receiver), and

(b)for a specified date, if the committee has previously resolved that a meeting be held on that date.

(4) The receiver shall give 7 days' written notice of the venue of any meeting to every member (or his representative designated for that purpose), unless in any case the requirement of notice has been waived by or on behalf of any member.

Waiver may be signified either at or before the meeting.

Commencement Information

I109Rule 3.18 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

The chairman at meetingsE+W

3.19.—(1) Subject to Rule 3.28(3), the chairman at any meeting of the creditors' committee shall be the administrative receiver, or a person nominated by him in writing to act.

(2) A person so nominated must be either—

(a)one who is qualified to act as an insolvency practitioner in relation to the company, or

(b)an employee of the receiver or his firm who is experienced in insolvency matters.

Commencement Information

I110Rule 3.19 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

QuorumE+W

3.20.  A meeting of the committee is duly constituted if due notice has been given to all the members, and at least 2 members are present or represented.

Commencement Information

I111Rule 3.20 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Committee-members' representativesE+W

3.21.—(1) A member of the committee may, in relation to the business of the committee, be represented by another person duly authorised by him for that purpose.

(2) A person acting as a committee-member's representative must hold a letter of authority entitling him so to act (either generally or specially) and signed by or on behalf of the committee-member.

(3) The chairman at any meeting of the committee may call on a person claiming to act as a committee-member's representative to produce his letter of authority, and may exclude him if it appears that his authority is deficient.

(4) No member may be represented by a body corporate, or by a person who is an undischarged bankrupt, or is subject to a composition or arrangement with his creditors.

(5) No person shall—

(a)on the same committee, act at one and the same time as representative of more than one committee-member, or

(b)act both as a member of the committee and as representative of another member.

(6) Where a member's representative signs any document on the member's behalf, the fact that he so signs must be stated below his signature.

Commencement Information

I112Rule 3.21 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

ResignationE+W

3.22.  A member of the committee may resign by notice in writing delivered to the administrative receiver.

Commencement Information

I113Rule 3.22 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Termination of membershipE+W

3.23.—(1) Membership of the creditors' committee is automatically terminated if the member—

(a)becomes bankrupt, or compounds or arranges with his creditors, or

(b)at 3 consecutive meetings of the committee is neither present nor represented (unless at the third of those meetings it is resolved that this Rule is not to apply in his case), or

(c)ceases to be, or is found never to have been, a creditor.

(2) However, if the cause of termination is the member's bankruptcy, his trustee in bankruptcy replaces him as a member of the committee.

Commencement Information

I114Rule 3.23 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

RemovalE+W

3.24.  A member of the committee may be removed by resolution at a meeting of creditors, at least 14 days' notice having been given of the intention to move that resolution.

Commencement Information

I115Rule 3.24 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

VacanciesE+W

3.25.—(1) The following applies if there is a vacancy in the membership of the creditors' committee.

(2) The vacancy need not be filled if the administrative receiver and a majority of the remaining members of the committee so agree, provided that the total number of members does not fall below the minimum required under Rule 3.16.

(3) The receiver may appoint any creditor (being qualified under the Rules to be a member of the committee) to fill the vacancy, if a majority of the other members of the committee agree to the appointment and the creditor concerned consents to act.

Commencement Information

I116Rule 3.25 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Procedure at meetingsE+W

3.26.—(1) At any meeting of the committee, each member of it (whether present himself or by his representative) has one vote; and a resolution is passed when a majority of the members present or represented have voted in favour of it.

(2) Every resolution passed shall be recorded in writing, either separately or as part of the minutes of the meeting.

(3) A record of each resolution shall be signed by the chairman and kept as part of the records of the receivership.

Commencement Information

I117Rule 3.26 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Resolutions by postE+W

3.27.—(1) In accordance with this Rule, the administrative receiver may seek to obtain the agreement of members of the creditors' committee to a resolution by sending to every member (or his representative designated for the purpose) a copy of the proposed resolution.

(2) Where the receiver makes use of the procedure allowed by this Rule, he shall send out to members of the committee or their representatives (as the case may be) a statement incorporating the resolution to which their agreement is sought, each resolution (if more than one) being sent out in a separate document.

(3) Any member of the committee may, within 7 business days from the date of the receiver sending out a resolution, require him to summon a meeting of the committee to consider the matters raised by the resolution.

(4) In the absence of such a request, the resolution is deemed to have been passed by the committee if and when the receiver is notified in writing by a majority of the members that they concur with it.

(5) A copy of every resolution passed under this Rule, and a note that the committee's concurrence was obtained, shall be kept with the records of the receivership.

Commencement Information

I118Rule 3.27 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Information from receiverE+W

3.28.—(1) Where the committee resolves to require the attendance of the administrative receiver under section 49(2), the notice to him shall be in writing signed by the majority of the members of the committee for the time being. A member's representative may sign for him.

(2) The meeting at which the receiver's attendance is required shall be fixed by the committee for a business day, and shall be held at such time and place as he determines.

(3) Where the receiver so attends, the members of the committee may elect any one of their number to be chairman of the meeting, in place of the receiver or any nominee of his.

Commencement Information

I119Rule 3.28 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Expenses of membersE+W

3.29.—(1) Subject as follows, the administrative receiver shall out of the assets of the company defray any reasonable travelling expenses directly incurred by members of the creditors' committee or their representatives in relation to their attendance at the committee's meetings, or otherwise on the committee's business, as an expense of the receivership.

(2) Paragraph (1) does not apply to any meeting of the committee held within 3 months of a previous meeting, unless the meeting in question is summoned at the instance of the administrative receiver.

Commencement Information

I120Rule 3.29 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Members' dealings with the companyE+W

3.30.—(1) Membership of the committee does not prevent a person from dealing with the company while the receiver is acting, provided that any transactions in the course of such dealings are entered into in good faith and for value.

(2) The court may, on the application of any person interested, set aside a transaction which appears to it to be contrary to the requirements of this Rule, and may give such consequential directions as it thinks fit for compensating the company for any loss which it may have incurred in consequence of the transaction.

Commencement Information

I121Rule 3.30 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

CHAPTER 5E+WTHE ADMINISTRATIVE RECEIVER (MISCELLANEOUS)

Disposal of charged propertyE+W

3.31.—(1) The following applies where the administrative receiver applies to the court under section 43(1) for authority to dispose of property of the company which is subject to a security.

(2) The court shall fix a venue for the hearing of the application, and the receiver shall forthwith give notice of the venue to the person who is the holder of the security.

(3) If an order is made under section 43(1), the receiver shall forthwith give notice of it to that person.

(4) The court shall send 2 sealed copies of the order to the receiver, who shall send one of them to that person.

Commencement Information

I122Rule 3.31 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Abstract of receipts and paymentsE+W

3.32.—(1) The administrative receiver shall—

(a)within 2 months after the end of 12 months from the date of his appointment, and of every subsequent period of 12 months, and

(b)within 2 months after he ceases to act as administrative receiver,

[[FORM 3.6]] send to the registrar of companies, to the company and to the person by whom he was appointed, and to each member of the creditors' committee (if there is one), the requisite accounts of his receipts and payments as receiver.

(2) The court may, on the receiver's application, extend the period of 2 months referred to in paragraph (1).

(3) The accounts are to be in the form of an abstract showing—

(a)receipts and payments during the relevant period of 12 months, or

(b)where the receiver has ceased to act, receipts and payments during the period from the end of the last 12-month period to the time when he so ceased (alternatively, if there has been no previous abstract, receipts and payments in the period since his appointment as administrative receiver).

(4) This Rule is without prejudice to the receiver's duty to render proper accounts required otherwise than as above.

(5) If the administrative receiver makes default in complying with this Rule, he is liable to a fine and, for continued contravention, to a daily default fine.

Commencement Information

I123Rule 3.32 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

ResignationE+W

3.33.—(1) Subject as follows, before resigning his office the administrative receiver shall give at least 7 days' notice of his intention to do so to—

(a)the person by whom he was appointed, and

(b)the company or, if it is then in liquidation, its liquidator.

(2) A notice given under this Rule shall specify the date on which the receiver intends his resignation to take effect.

(3) No notice is necessary if the receiver resigns in consequence of the making of an administration order.

Commencement Information

I124Rule 3.33 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Receiver deceasedE+W

3.34.  If the administrative receiver dies, the person by whom he was appointed shall, forthwith on his becoming aware of the death, give notice of it to—

(a)[[FORM 3.7]] the registrar of companies, and

(b)the company or, if it is in liquidation, the liquidator.

Commencement Information

I125Rule 3.34 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Vacation of officeE+W

3.35.—(1) The administrative receiver, on vacating office on completion of the receivership, or in consequence of his ceasing to be qualified as an insolvency practitioner, shall forthwith give notice of his doing so—

(a)if the company is in liquidation, to the liquidator, and

(b)in any case, to the members of the creditors' committee (if any).

(2) Where the receiver's office is vacated, the notice to the registrar of companies which is required by section 45(4) may be given by means of an indorsement on the notice required by section 405(2) of the Companies Act (notice for the purposes of the register of charges).

Commencement Information

I126Rule 3.35 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

CHAPTER 6E+WVAT BAD DEBT RELIEF

Issue of certificate of insolvencyE+W

3.36.—(1) In accordance with this Rule, it is the duty of the administrative receiver to issue a certificate in the terms of paragraph (b) of section 22(3) of the Value Added Tax Act 1983(2) (which specifies the circumstances in which a company is deemed insolvent for the purposes of that section) forthwith upon his forming the opinion described in that paragraph.

(2) There shall in the certificate be specified—

(a)the name of the company and its registered number;

(b)the name of the administrative receiver and the date of his appointment; and

(c)the date on which the certificate is issued.

(3) The certificate shall be intituled “CERTIFICATE OF INSOLVENCY FOR THE PURPOSES OF SECTION 22(3)(b) OF THE VALUE ADDED TAX ACT 1983”.

Commencement Information

I127Rule 3.36 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Notice to creditorsE+W

3.37.—(1) Notice of the issue of the certificate shall be given by the administrative receiver within 3 months of his appointment or within 2 months of issuing the certificate, whichever is the later, to all of the company's unsecured creditors of whose address he is then aware and who have, to his knowledge, made supplies to the company, with a charge to value added tax, at any time before his appointment.

(2) Thereafter, he shall give the notice to any such creditor of whose address and supplies to the company he becomes aware.

(3) He is not under obligation to provide any creditor with a copy of the certificate.

Commencement Information

I128Rule 3.37 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Preservation of certificate with company's recordsE+W

3.38.—(1) The certificate shall be retained with the company's accounting records, and section 222 of the Companies Act (where and for how long records are to be kept) shall apply to the certificate as it applies to those records.

(2) It is the duty of the administrative receiver, on vacating office, to bring this Rule to the attention of the directors or (as the case may be) any successor of his as receiver.

Commencement Information

I129Rule 3.38 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

PART 4E+WCOMPANIES WINDING UP

CHAPTER 1E+WTHE SCHEME OF THIS PART OF THE RULES

Voluntary winding up; winding up by the courtE+W

4.1.—(1) In a members' voluntary winding up, the Rules in this Part do not apply, except as follows—

(a)Chapters 9 (proof of debts in a liquidation), 10(secured creditors) and 18(special manager) apply wherever, and in the same way as, they apply in a creditors' voluntary winding up;

(b)Section B of Chapter 8 (additional provisions concerning meetings in relation to Bank of England and Deposit Protection Board) applies in the winding up of recognised banks, etc., whether members' or creditors' voluntary or by the court;

(c)Section F of Chapter 11 (the liquidator) applies only in a members' voluntary winding up, and not otherwise;

(d)Section G of that Chapter (court's power to set aside certain transactions; rule against solicitation) applies in any winding up, whether members' or creditors' voluntary or by the court; and

(e)Section B of Chapter 21 (liquidator's statements) applies in the same way as it applies in a creditors' voluntary winding up.

(2) Subject as follows, the Rules in this Part apply both in a creditors' voluntary winding up and in a winding up by the court; and for this purpose a winding up is treated as a creditors' voluntary if, and from the time when, the liquidator forms the opinion that the company will be unable to pay its debts in full, and determines accordingly to summon a creditors' meeting under section 95.

(3) The following Chapters, or Sections of Chapters, of this Part do not apply in a creditors' voluntary winding up—

  • Chapter 2—The statutory demand;

  • Chapter 3—Petition to winding-up order;

  • Chapter 4—Petition by contributories;

  • Chapter 5—Provisional liquidator;

  • Chapter 13—The liquidation committee where winding up follows immediately on administration;

  • Chapter 16—Settlement of list of contributories;

  • Chapter 17—Calls;

  • Chapter 19—Public examination of company officers and others; and

  • Chapter 21 (Section A)—Return of capital.

(4) Where at the head of any Rule, or at the end of any paragraph of a Rule, there appear the words “(NO CVL APPLICATION)”, this signifies that the Rule or, as the case may be, the paragraph does not apply in a creditors' voluntary winding up.

However, this does not affect the court's power to make orders under section 112 (exercise in relation to voluntary winding up of powers available in winding up by the court).

(5) Where to any Rule or paragraph there is given a number incorporating the letter “CVL”, that signifies that the Rule or (as the case may be) the paragraph applies in a creditors' voluntary winding up, and not in a winding up by the court.

Commencement Information

I130Rule 4.1 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Winding up by the court: the various forms of petitionE+W

4.2.—(1) Insofar as the Rules in this Part apply to winding up by the court, they apply (subject as follows) whether the petition for winding up is presented under any of the several paragraphs of section 122(1), namely—

  • paragraph (a)—company special resolution for winding up by the court;

  • paragraph (b)—public company without certificate under section 117 of the Companies Act;

  • paragraph (c)—old public company;

  • paragraph (d)—company not commencing business after formation, or suspending business;

  • paragraph (e)—number of company's members reduced below 2;

  • paragraph (f)—company unable to pay its debts;

  • paragraph (g)—court's power under the “just and equitable” rule,

or under any enactment enabling the presentation of a winding-up petition.

(2) Except as provided by the following two paragraphs or by any particular Rule, the Rules apply whether the petition for winding up is presented by the company, the directors, one or more creditors, one or more contributories, the Secretary of State, the official receiver, or any person entitled under any enactment to present such a petition.

(3) Chapter 2 (statutory demand) has no application except in relation to an unpaid creditor of the company satisfying section 123(1)(a) (the first of the two cases specified, in relation to England and Wales, of the company being deemed unable to pay its debts within section 122(1)(f)) or section 222(1) (the equivalent provision in relation to unregistered companies).

(4) Chapter 3 (petition to winding-up order) has no application to a petition for winding up presented by one or more contributories; and in relation to a petition so presented Chapter 4 has effect.

Commencement Information

I131Rule 4.2 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Time-limitsE+W

4.3.  Where by any provision of the Act or the Rules about winding up, the time for doing anything is limited, the court may extend the time, either before or after it has expired, on such terms, if any, as it thinks fit.

Commencement Information

I132Rule 4.3 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

CHAPTER 2E+WTHE STATUTORY DEMAND (NO CVL APPLICATION)

PreliminaryE+W

4.4.—(1) This Chapter does not apply where a petition for the winding up of a company is presented under section 124 on or after the date on which the Rules come into force and the petition is based on failure to comply with a written demand served on the company before that date.

(2) A written demand served by a creditor on a company under section 123(1)(a) (registered companies) or 222(1)(a) (unregistered companies) is known in winding-up proceedings as “the statutory demand”.

(3) The statutory demand must be dated, and be signed either by the creditor himself or by a person stating himself to be authorised to make the demand on the creditor's behalf.

Commencement Information

I133Rule 4.4 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Form and content of statutory demandE+W

4.5.—(1) [[FORM 4.1]] The statutory demand must state the amount of the debt and the consideration for it (or, if there is no consideration, the way in which it arises).

(2) If the amount claimed in the demand includes—

(a)any charge by way of interest not previously notified to the company as included in its liability, or

(b)any other charge accruing from time to time,

the amount or rate of the charge must be separately identified, and the grounds on which payment of it is claimed must be stated.

In either case the amount claimed must be limited to that which has accrued due at the date of the demand.

Commencement Information

I134Rule 4.5 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Information to be given in statutory demandE+W

4.6.—(1) The statutory demand must include an explanation to the company of the following matters—

(a)the purpose of the demand, and the fact that, if the demand is not complied with, proceedings may be instituted for the winding up of the company;

(b)the time within which it must be complied with, if that consequence is to be avoided; and

(c)the methods of compliance which are open to the company.

(2) Information must be provided for the company as to how an officer or representative of it may enter into communication with one or more named individuals, with a view to securing or compounding for the debt to the creditor's satisfaction.

In the case of any individual so named in the demand, his address and telephone number (if any) must be given.

Commencement Information

I135Rule 4.6 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

CHAPTER 3E+WPETITION TO WINDING-UP ORDER (NO CVL APPLICATION) (NO APPLICATION TO PETITION BY CONTRIBUTORIES)

Presentation and filing of petitionE+W

4.7.—(1) [[FORM 4.2] [FORM 4.3]] The petition, verified by affidavit in accordance with Rule 4.12 below, shall be filed in court.

(2) No petition shall be filed unless there is produced with it the receipt for the deposit payable on presentation.

(3) If the petitioner is other than the company itself, there shall be delivered with the petition—

(a)one copy for service on the company, and

(b)one copy to be exhibited to the affidavit verifying service.

(4) There shall in any case be delivered with the petition—

(a)if the company is in course of being wound up voluntarily, and a liquidator has been appointed, one copy of the petition to be sent to him;

(b)if an administration order is in force in relation to the company, one copy to be sent to the administrator;

(c)if an administrative receiver has been appointed in relation to the company, one copy to be sent to him;

(d)if there is in force for the company a voluntary arrangement under Part I of the Act, one copy for the supervisor of the arrangement; and

(e)if the company is—

(i)a recognised bank or licensed institution within the meaning of the Banking Act 1979, or

(ii)an institution to which sections 16 and 18 of that Act apply as if it were licensed,

and the petitioner is not the Bank of England, one copy to be sent to the Bank.

(5) Each of the copies delivered shall have applied to it the seal of the court, and shall be issued to the petitioner.

(6) The court shall fix a venue for the hearing of the petition; and this shall be endorsed on any copy issued to the petitioner under paragraph (5).

Commencement Information

I136Rule 4.7 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Service of petitionE+W

4.8.—(1) The following paragraphs apply as regards service of the petition on the company (where the petitioner is other than the company itself); and references to the petition are to a copy of the petition bearing the seal of the court in which it is presented.

(2) Subject as follows, the petition shall be served at the company's registered office, that is to say—

(a)the place which is specified, in the company's statement delivered under section 10 of the Companies Act as the intended situation of its registered office on incorporation, or

(b)if notice has been given by the company to the registrar of companies under section 287 of that Act (change of registered office), the place specified in that notice or, as the case may be, in the last such notice.

(3) Service of the petition at the registered office may be effected in any of the following ways—

(a)it may be handed to a person who there and then acknowledges himself to be, or to the best of the server's knowledge, information and belief is, a director or other officer, or employee, of the company; or

(b)it may be handed to a person who there and then acknowledges himself to be authorised to accept service of documents on the company's behalf; or

(c)in the absence of any such person as is mentioned in sub-paragraph (a) or (b), it may be deposited at or about the registered office in such a way that it is likely to come to the notice of a person attending at the office.

(4) If for any reason service at the registered office is not practicable, or the company has no registered office, or it is an unregistered company, the petition may be served at the company's last known principal place of business in England and Wales, or at some place in England and Wales at which it has carried on business, by handing it to such a person as is mentioned in paragraph (3)(a) or (b) above.

(5) In the case of an oversea company, service may be effected in any manner provided for by section 695 of the Companies Act.

(6) If for any reason it is impracticable to effect service as provided by paragraphs (2) to (5), the petition may be served in such other manner as the court may direct.

(7) Application for leave of the court under paragraph (6) may be made ex parte, on affidavit stating what steps have been taken to comply with paragraphs (2) to (5), and the reasons why it is impracticable to effect service as there provided.

Commencement Information

I137Rule 4.8 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Proof of serviceE+W

4.9.—(1) [[FORM 4.4] [FORM 4.5]] Service of the petition shall be proved by affidavit, specifying the manner of service.

(2) The affidavit shall have exhibited to it—

(a)a sealed copy of the petition, and

(b)if substituted service has been ordered, a sealed copy of the order;

and it shall be filed in court immediately after service.

Commencement Information

I138Rule 4.9 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Other persons to receive copies of petitionE+W

4.10.—(1) If to the petitioner's knowledge the company is in course of being wound up voluntarily, a copy of the petition shall be sent by him to the liquidator.

(2) If to the petitioner's knowledge an administrative receiver has been appointed in relation to the company, or an administration order is in force in relation to it, a copy of the petition shall be sent by him to the receiver or, as the case may be, the administrator.

(3) If to the petitioner's knowledge there is in force for the company a voluntary arrangement under Part I of the Act, a copy of the petition shall be sent by him to the supervisor of the voluntary arrangement.

(4) If the company is a recognised bank or a licensed institution within the meaning of the Banking Act 1979, or an institution to which sections 16 and 18 of that Act apply as if it were a licensed institution, a copy of the petition shall be sent by the petitioner to the Bank of England.

This does not apply if the petitioner is the Bank of England itself.

(5) A copy of the petition which is required by this Rule to be sent shall be despatched on the next business day after the day on which the petition is served on the company.

Commencement Information

I139Rule 4.10 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Advertisement of petitionE+W

4.11.—(1) [[FORM 4.6]] Unless the court otherwise directs, the petition shall be advertised once in the Gazette.

(2) The advertisement must be made to appear—

(a)if the petitioner is the company itself, not less than 7 business days before the day appointed for the hearing, and

(b)otherwise, not less than 7 business days after service of the petition on the company, nor less than 7 business days before the day so appointed.

(3) The court may, if compliance with paragraph (2) is not reasonably practicable, direct that advertisement of the petition be made to appear in a specified London morning newspaper, or other newspaper, instead of in the Gazette.

(4) The advertisement of the petition must state—

(a)the name of the company and the address of its registered office, or—

(i)in the case of an unregistered company, the address of its principal place of business;

(ii)in the case of an oversea company, the address at which service of the petition was effected;

(b)the name and address of the petitioner;

(c)where the petitioner is the company itself, the address of its registered office or, in the case of an unregistered company, of its principal place of business;

(d)the date on which the petition was presented;

(e)the venue fixed for the hearing of the petition;

(f)the name and address of the petitioner's solicitor (if any); and

(g)that any person intending to appear at the hearing (whether to support or oppose the petition) must give notice of his intention in accordance with Rule 4.16.

(5) If the petition is not duly advertised in accordance with this Rule, the court may dismiss it.

Commencement Information

I140Rule 4.11 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Verification of petitionE+W

4.12.—(1) [[FORM 4.2] [FORM 4.3]] The petition shall be verified by an affidavit that the statements in the petition are true, or are true to the best of the deponent's knowledge, information and belief.

(2) If the petition is in respect of debts due to different creditors, the debts to each creditor must be separately verified.

(3) The petition shall be exhibited to the affidavit verifying it.

(4) The affidavit shall be made—

(a)by the petitioner (or if there are two or more petitioners, any one of them), or

(b)by some person such as a director, company secretary or similar company officer, or a solicitor, who has been concerned in the matters giving rise to the presentation of the petition, or

(c)by some responsible person who is duly authorised to make the affidavit and has the requisite knowledge of those matters.

(5) Where the deponent is not the petitioner himself, or one of the petitioners, he must in the affidavit identify himself and state—

(a)the capacity in which, and the authority by which, he makes it, and

(b)the means of his knowledge of the matters sworn to in the affidavit.

(6) The affidavit is prima facie evidence of the statements in the petition to which it relates.

(7) An affidavit verifying more than one petition shall include in its title the names of the companies to which it relates and shall set out, in respect of each company, the statements relied on by the petitioner; and a clear and legible photocopy of the affidavit shall be filed with each petition which it verifies.

Commencement Information

I141Rule 4.12 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Persons entitled to copy of petitionE+W

4.13.  Every director, contributory or creditor of the company is entitled to be furnished by the solicitor for the petitioner (or by the petitioner himself, if acting in person) with a copy of the petition within 2 days after requiring it, on payment of the appropriate fee.

Commencement Information

I142Rule 4.13 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Certificate of complianceE+W

4.14.—(1) [[FORM 4.7]] The petitioner or his solicitor shall, at least 5 days before the hearing of the petition, file in court a certificate of compliance with the Rules relating to service and advertisement.

(2) The certificate shall show—

(a)the date of presentation of the petition,

(b)the date fixed for the hearing, and

(c)the date or dates on which the petition was served and advertised in compliance with the Rules.

A copy of the advertisement of the petition shall be filed in court with the certificate.

(3) Non-compliance with this Rule is a ground on which the court may, if it thinks fit, dismiss the petition.

Commencement Information

I143Rule 4.14 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Leave for petitioner to withdrawE+W

4.15.  If at least 5 days before the hearing the petitioner, on an ex parte application, satisfies the court that—

(a)the petition has not been advertised, and

(b)no notices (whether in support or in opposition) have been received by him with reference to the petition, and

(c)the company consents to an order being made under this Rule,

[[FORM 4.8]] the court may order that the petitioner has leave to withdraw the petition on such terms as to costs as the parties may agree.

Commencement Information

I144Rule 4.15 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Notice of appearanceE+W

4.16.—(1) [[FORM 4.9]] Every person who intends to appear on the hearing of the petition shall give to the petitioner notice of his intention in accordance with this Rule.

(2) The notice shall specify—

(a)the name and address of the person giving it, and any telephone number and reference which may be required for communication with him or with any other person (to be also specified in the notice) authorised to speak or act on his behalf;

(b)whether his intention is to support or oppose the petition; and

(c)the amount and nature of his debt.

(3) The notice shall be sent to the petitioner at the address shown for him in the court records, or in the advertisement of the petition required by Rule 4.11; or it may be sent to his solicitor.

(4) The notice shall be sent so as to reach the addressee not later than 16.00 hours on the business day before that which is appointed for the hearing (or, where the hearing has been adjourned, for the adjourned hearing).

(5) A person failing to comply with this Rule may appear on the hearing of the petition only with the leave of the court.

Commencement Information

I145Rule 4.16 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

List of appearancesE+W

4.17.—(1) [[FORM 4.10]] The petitioner shall prepare for the court a list of the persons (if any) who have given notice under Rule 4.16, specifying their names and addresses and (if known to him) their respective solicitors.

(2) Against the name of each creditor in the list it shall be stated whether his intention is to support the petition, or to oppose it.

(3) On the day appointed for the hearing of the petition, a copy of the list shall be handed to the court before the commencement of the hearing.

(4) If any leave is given under Rule 4.16(5), the petitioner shall add to the list the same particulars in respect of the person to whom leave has been given.

Commencement Information

I146Rule 4.17 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Affidavit in oppositionE+W

4.18.—(1) If the company intends to oppose the petition, its affidavit in opposition shall be filed in court not less than 7 days before the date fixed for the hearing.

(2) A copy of the affidavit shall be sent by the company to the petitioner, forthwith after filing.

Commencement Information

I147Rule 4.18 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Substitution of creditor or contributory for petitionerE+W

4.19.—(1) This Rule applies where a person petitions and is subsequently found not entitled to do so, or where the petitioner—

(a)fails to advertise his petition within the time prescribed by the Rules or such extended time as the court may allow, or

(b)consents to withdraw his petition, or to allow it to be dismissed, consents to an adjournment, or fails to appear in support of his petition when it is called on in court on the day originally fixed for the hearing, or on a day to which it is adjourned, or

(c)appears, but does not apply for an order in the terms of the prayer of his petition.

(2) The court may, on such terms as it thinks just, substitute as petitioner any creditor or contributory who in its opinion would have a right to present a petition, and who is desirous of prosecuting it.

(3) An order of the court under this Rule may, where a petitioner fails to advertise his petition within the time prescribed by these Rules, or consents to withdraw his petition, be made at any time.

Commencement Information

I148Rule 4.19 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Notice and settling of winding-up orderE+W

4.20.—(1) [[FORM 4.11][FORM 4.12][FORM 4.13]] When a winding-up order has been made, the court shall forthwith give notice of the fact to the official receiver.

(2) The petitioner and every other person who has appeared on the hearing of the petition shall, not later than the business day following that on which the order is made, leave at the court all the documents required for enabling the order to be completed forthwith.

(3) It is not necessary for the court to appoint a venue for any person to attend to settle the order, unless in any particular case the special circumstances make an appointment necessary.

Commencement Information

I149Rule 4.20 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Transmission and advertisement of orderE+W

4.21.—(1) When the winding-up order has been made, 3 copies of it, sealed with the seal of the court, shall be sent forthwith by the court to the official receiver.

(2) The official receiver shall cause a sealed copy of the order to be served on the company by prepaid letter addressed to it at its registered office (if any) or, if there is no registered office, at its principal or last known principal place of business.

Alternatively, the order may be served on such other person or persons, or in such other manner, as the court directs.

(3) The official receiver shall forward to the registrar of companies the copy of the order which by section 130(1) is directed to be so forwarded by the company.

(4) The official receiver shall forthwith—

(a)cause the order to be gazetted, and

(b)advertise the order in such local newspaper as the official receiver may select.

Commencement Information

I150Rule 4.21 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

CHAPTER 4E+WPETITION BY CONTRIBUTORIES (NO CVL APPLICATION)

Presentation and service of petitionE+W

4.22.—(1) [[FORM 4.14]] The petition shall specify the grounds on which it is presented and the nature of the relief which is sought by the petitioner, and shall be filed in court with one copy for service under this Rule.

(2) The court shall fix a hearing for a day (“the return day”) on which, unless the court otherwise directs, the petitioner and the company shall attend before the registrar in chambers for directions to be given in relation to the procedure on the petition.

(3) On fixing the return day, the court shall return to the petitioner a sealed copy of the petition for service, endorsed with the return day and time of hearing.

(4) The petitioner shall, at least 14 days before the return day, serve a sealed copy of the petition on the company.

Commencement Information

I151Rule 4.22 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Return of petitionE+W

4.23.—(1) On the return day, or at any time after it, the court shall give such directions as it thinks appropriate with respect to the following matters—

(a)service of the petition, whether in connection with the venue for a further hearing, or for any other purpose;

(b)whether particulars of claim and defence are to be delivered, and generally as to the procedure on the petition;

(c)whether, and if so by what means, the petition is to be advertised;

(d)the manner in which any evidence is to be adduced at any hearing before the judge and in particular (but without prejudice to the generality of the above) as to—

(i)the taking of evidence wholly or in part by affidavit or orally;

(ii)the cross-examination of any deponents to affidavits;

(iii)the matters to be dealt with in evidence;

(e)any other matter affecting the procedure on the petition or in connection with the hearing and disposal of the petition.

(2) In giving directions under paragraph (1)(a), the court shall have regard to whether any of the persons specified in Rule 4.10 should be served with a copy of the petition.

Commencement Information

I152Rule 4.23 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Application of Rules in Chapter 3E+W

4.24.  The following Rules in Chapter 3 apply, with the necessary modifications—

  • Rule 4.16 (notice of appearance);

  • Rule 4.17 (list of appearances);

  • Rule 4.20 (notice and settling of winding-up order); and

  • Rule 4.21 (transmission and advertisement of order).

Commencement Information

I153Rule 4.24 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

CHAPTER 5E+WPROVISIONAL LIQUIDATOR (NO CVL APPLICATION)

Appointment of provisional liquidatorE+W

4.25.—(1) An application to the court for the appointment of a provisional liquidator under section 135 may be made by the petitioner, or by a creditor of the company, or by a contributory, or by the company itself, or by the Secretary of State, or by any person who under any enactment would be entitled to present a petition for the winding up of the company.

(2) The application must be supported by an affidavit stating—

(a)the grounds on which it is proposed that a provisional liquidator should be appointed;

(b)if some person other than the official receiver is proposed to be appointed, that the person has consented to act and, to the best of the applicant's belief, is qualified to act as an insolvency practitioner in relation to the company;

(c)whether or not the official receiver has been informed of the application and, if so, has been furnished with a copy of it;

(d)whether to the applicant's knowledge—

(i)there has been proposed or is in force for the company a voluntary arrangement under Part I of the Act, or

(ii)an administrator or administrative receiver is acting in relation to the company, or

(iii)a liquidator has been appointed for its voluntary winding up; and

(e)the applicant's estimate of the value of the assets in respect of which the provisional liquidator is to be appointed.

(3) The applicant shall send copies of the application and of the affidavit in support to the official receiver, who may attend the hearing and make any representations which he thinks appropriate.

If for any reason it is not practicable to comply with this paragraph, the official receiver must be informed of the application in sufficient time for him to be able to attend.

(4) The court may on the application, if satisfied that sufficient grounds are shown for the appointment, make it on such terms as it thinks fit.

Commencement Information

I154Rule 4.25 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Order of appointmentE+W

4.26.—(1) [[FORM 4.15]] The order appointing the provisional liquidator shall specify the functions to be carried out by him in relation to the company's affairs.

(2) The court shall, forthwith after the order is made, send sealed copies of the order as follows—

(a)if the official receiver is appointed, two copies to him;

(b)if a person other than the official receiver is appointed—

(i)two copies to that person, and

(ii)one copy to the official receiver;

(c)if there is an administrative receiver acting in relation to the company, one copy to him.

(3) Of the two copies of the order sent to the official receiver under paragraph (2)(a), or to another person under paragraph (2)(b)(i), one shall in each case be sent by the recipient to the company or, if a liquidator has been appointed for the company's voluntary winding up, to him.

Commencement Information

I155Rule 4.26 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

DepositE+W

4.27.—(1) Before an order appointing the official receiver as provisional liquidator is issued, the applicant for it shall deposit with him, or otherwise secure to his satisfaction, such sum as the court directs to cover the official receiver's remuneration and expenses.

(2) If the sum deposited or secured subsequently proves to be insufficient, the court may, on application by the official receiver, order that an additional sum be deposited or secured. If the order is not complied with within 2 days after service of it on the person to whom it is directed, the court may discharge the order appointing the provisional liquidator.

(3) If a winding-up order is made after a provisional liquidator has been appointed, any money deposited under this Rule shall (unless it is required by reason of insufficiency of assets for payment of remuneration and expenses of the provisional liquidator) be repaid to the person depositing it (or as that person may direct) out of the assets, in the prescribed order of priority.

Commencement Information

I156Rule 4.27 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

SecurityE+W

4.28.—(1) The following applies where an insolvency practitioner is appointed to be provisional liquidator under section 135.

(2) The cost of providing the security required under the Act shall be paid in the first instance by the provisional liquidator; but—

(a)if a winding-up order is not made, the person so appointed is entitled to be reimbursed out of the property of the company, and the court may make an order on the company accordingly, and

(b)if a winding-up order is made, he is entitled to be reimbursed out of the assets in the prescribed order of priority.

Commencement Information

I157Rule 4.28 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Failure to give or keep up securityE+W

4.29.—(1) If the provisional liquidator fails to give or keep up his security, the court may remove him, and make such order as it thinks fit as to costs.

(2) If an order is made under this Rule removing the provisional liquidator, or discharging the order appointing him, the court shall give directions as to whether any, and if so what, steps should be taken for the appointment of another person in his place.

Commencement Information

I158Rule 4.29 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

RemunerationE+W

4.30.—(1) The remuneration of the provisional liquidator (other than the official receiver) shall be fixed by the court from time to time on his application.

(2) In fixing his remuneration, the court shall take into account—

(a)the time properly given by him (as provisional liquidator) and his staff in attending to the company's affairs;

(b)the complexity (or otherwise) of the case;

(c)any respects in which, in connection with the company's affairs, there falls on the provisional liquidator any responsibility of an exceptional kind or degree;

(d)the effectiveness with which the provisional liquidator appears to be carrying out, or to have carried out, his duties; and

(e)the value and nature of the property with which he has to deal.

(3) The provisional liquidator's remuneration (whether the official receiver or another) shall be paid to him, and the amount of any expenses incurred by him reimbursed—

(a)if a winding-up order is not made, out of the property of the company (and the court may make an order on the company accordingly), and

(b)if a winding-up order is made, out of the assets, in the prescribed order of priority,

or, in either case (the relevant funds being insufficient), out of the deposit under Rule 4.27.

(4) Where a person other than the official receiver has been appointed provisional liquidator, and the official receiver has taken any steps for the purpose of obtaining a statement of affairs or has performed any other duty under the Rules, he shall pay the official receiver such sum (if any) as the court may direct.

Commencement Information

I159Rule 4.30 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Termination of appointmentE+W

4.31.—(1) The appointment of the provisional liquidator may be terminated by the court on his application, or on that of any of the persons specified in Rule 4.25(1).

(2) If the provisional liquidator's appointment terminates, in consequence of the dismissal of the winding-up petition or otherwise, the court may give such directions as it thinks fit with respect to the accounts of his administration or any other matters which it thinks appropriate.

(3) The court may under paragraph (2)—

(a)direct that any expenses properly incurred by the provisional liquidator during the period of his appointment, including any remuneration to which he is entitled, be paid out of the property of the company, and

(b)authorise him to retain out of that property such sums as are required for meeting those expenses.

Alternatively, the court may make such order as it thinks fit with respect to those matters.

Commencement Information

I160Rule 4.31 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

CHAPTER 6E+WSTATEMENT OF AFFAIRS AND OTHER INFORMATION

Notice requiring statement of affairsE+W

4.32.  (NO CVL APPLICATION)

(1) The following applies where the official receiver determines[[FORM 4.16]] to require a statement of the company's affairs to be made out and submitted to him in accordance with section 131.

(2) He shall send notice to each of the persons whom he considers should be made responsible under that section, requiring them to prepare and submit the statement.

(3) The persons to whom that notice is sent are referred to in this Chapter as “the deponents”.

(4) The notice shall inform each of the deponents—

(a)of the names and addresses of all others (if any) to whom the same notice has been sent;

(b)of the time within which the statement must be delivered;

(c)of the effect of section 131(7) (penalty for non-compliance); and

(d)of the application to him, and to each of the other deponents, of section 235 (duty to provide information, and to attend on the official receiver if required).

(5) The official receiver shall, on request, furnish a deponent with instructions for the preparation of the statement and with the forms required for that purpose.

Commencement Information

I161Rule 4.32 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Verification and filingE+W

4.33.  (NO CVL APPLICATION)

(1) [[FORM 4.17]] The statement of affairs shall be in Form 4.17, shall contain all the particulars required by that form and shall be verified by affidavit by the deponents (using the same form).

(2) The official receiver may require any of the persons mentioned in section 131(3) to submit an affidavit of concurrence, stating that he concurs in the statement of affairs.

(3) An affidavit of concurrence made under paragraph (2) may be qualified in respect of matters dealt with in the statement of affairs, where the maker of the affidavit is not in agreement with the deponents, or he considers the statement to be erroneous or misleading, or he is without the direct knowledge necessary for concurring in the statement.

(4) The statement of affairs shall be delivered to the official receiver by the deponent making the affidavit of verification (or by one of them, if more than one), together with a copy of the verified statement.

(5) Every affidavit of concurrence shall be delivered to the official receiver by the person who makes it, together with a copy.

(6) The official receiver shall file the verified copy of the statement and the affidavits of concurrence (if any) in court.

(7) The affidavit may be sworn before an official receiver or a deputy official receiver, or before an officer of the Department or the court duly authorised in that behalf.

Commencement Information

I162Rule 4.33 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Statement of affairsE+W

4.34-CVL.—(1) [[FORM 4.18][FORM 4.19]] This Rule applies with respect to the statement of affairs made out by the liquidator under section 95(3) or (as the case may be) by the directors under section 99(1).

(2) [[FORM 4.20]] Where it is made out by the liquidator, the statement of affairs shall be delivered by him to the registrar of companies within 7 days after the creditors' meeting summoned under section 95(2).

(3) [[FORM 4.20]] Where it is made out by the directors under section 99(1), the statement of affairs shall be delivered by them to the liquidator, when appointed; and he shall, within 7 days, deliver it to the registrar of companies.

Commencement Information

I163Rule 4.34CVL in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Limited disclosureE+W

4.35.  (NO CVL APPLICATION)

(1) Where the official receiver thinks that it would prejudice the conduct of the liquidation for the whole or part of the statement of affairs to be disclosed, he may apply to the court for an order of limited disclosure in respect of the statement, or any specified part of it.

(2) The court may on the application order that the statement or, as the case may be, the specified part of it be not filed, or that it is to be filed separately and not be open to inspection otherwise than with leave of the court.

Commencement Information

I164Rule 4.35 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Release from duty to submit statement of affairs; extension of timeE+W

4.36.  (NO CVL APPLICATION)

(1) The power of the official receiver under section 131(5) to give a release from the obligation imposed by that section, or to grant an extension of time, may be exercised at the official receiver's own discretion, or at the request of any deponent.

(2) A deponent may, if he requests a release or extension of time and it is refused by the official receiver, apply to the court for it.

(3) The court may, if it thinks that no sufficient cause is shown for the application dismiss it; but it shall not do so unless the applicant has had an opportunity to attend the court for an ex parte hearing, of which he has been given at least 7 days' notice.

If the application is not dismissed under this paragraph, the court shall fix a venue for it to be heard, and give notice to the deponent accordingly.

(4) The deponent shall, at least 14 days before the hearing, send to the official receiver a notice stating the venue and accompanied by a copy of the application, and of any evidence which he (the deponent) intends to adduce in support of it.

(5) The official receiver may appear and be heard on the application; and, whether or not he appears, he may file a written report of any matters which he considers ought to be drawn to the court's attention.

If such a report is filed, a copy of it shall be sent by the official receiver to the deponent, not later than 5 days before the hearing.

(6) Sealed copies of any order made on the application shall be sent by the court to the deponent and the official receiver.

(7) On any application under this Rule the applicant's costs shall be paid in any event by him and, unless the court otherwise orders, no allowance towards them shall be made out of the assets.

Commencement Information

I165Rule 4.36 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Expenses of statement of affairsE+W

4.37.  (NO CVL APPLICATION)

(1) If any deponent cannot himself prepare a proper statement of affairs, the official receiver may, at the expense of the assets, employ some person or persons to assist in the preparation of the statement.

(2) At the request of any deponent, made on the grounds that he cannot himself prepare a proper statement, the official receiver may authorise an allowance, payable out of the assets, towards expenses to be incurred by the deponent in employing some person or persons to assist him in preparing it.

(3) Any such request by the deponent shall be accompanied by an estimate of the expenses involved; and the official receiver shall only authorise the employment of a named person or a named firm, being in either case approved by him.

(4) An authorisation given by the official receiver under this Rule shall be subject to such conditions (if any) as he thinks fit to impose with respect to the manner in which any person may obtain access to relevant books and papers.

(5) Nothing in this Rule relieves a deponent from any obligation with respect to the preparation, verification and submission of the statement of affairs, or to the provision of information to the official receiver or the liquidator.

(6) Any payment out of the assets under this Rule shall be made in the prescribed order of priority.

(7) Paragraphs (2) to (6) of this Rule may be applied, on application to the official receiver by any deponent, in relation to the making of an affidavit of concurrence.

Commencement Information

I166Rule 4.37 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Expenses of statement of affairsE+W

4.38-CVL.—(1) Payment may be made out of the company's assets, either before or after the commencement of the winding up, of any reasonable and necessary expenses of preparing the statement of affairs under section 99.

Any such payment is an expense of the liquidation.

(2) Where such a payment is made before the commencement of the winding up, the director presiding at the creditors' meeting held under section 98 shall inform the meeting of the amount of the payment and the identity of the person to whom it was made.

(3) The liquidator appointed under section 100 may make such a payment (subject to the next paragraph); but if there is a liquidation committee, he must give the committee at least 7 days' notice of his intention to make it.

(4) Such a payment shall not be made by the liquidator to himself, or to any associate of his, otherwise than with the approval of the liquidation committee, the creditors, or the court.

(5) This Rule is without prejudice to the powers of the court under Rule 4.219 (voluntary winding up superseded by winding up by the court).

Commencement Information

I167Rule 4.38CVL in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Submission of accountsE+W

4.39.  (NO CVL APPLICATION)

(1) Any of the persons specified in section 235(3) shall, at the request of the official receiver, furnish him with accounts of the company of such nature, as at such date, and for such period, as he may specify.

(2) The period specified may begin from a date up to 3 years preceding the date of the presentation of the winding-up petition, or from an earlier date to which audited accounts of the company were last prepared.

(3) The court may, on the official receiver's application, require accounts for any earlier period.

(4) Rule 4.37 applies (with the necessary modifications) in relation to accounts to be furnished under this Rule as it applies in relation to the statement of affairs.

(5) The accounts shall, if the official receiver so requires, be verified by affidavit and (whether or not so verified) delivered to him within 21 days of the request under paragraph (1), or such longer period as he may allow.

(6) Two copies of the accounts and (where required) the affidavit shall be delivered to the official receiver by whoever is required to furnish them; and the official receiver shall file one copy in court (with the affidavit, if any).

Commencement Information

I168Rule 4.39 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Submission of accountsE+W

4.40-CVL.—(1) Any of the persons specified in section 235(3) shall, at the request of the liquidator, furnish him with accounts of the company of such nature, as at such date, and for such period, as he may specify.

(2) The specified period for the accounts may begin from a date up to 3 years preceding the date of the resolution for winding up, or from an earlier date to which audited accounts of the company were last prepared.

(3) The accounts shall, if the liquidator so requires, be verified by affidavit and (whether or not so verified) delivered to him, with the affidavit if required, within 21 days from the request under paragraph (1), or such longer period as he may allow.

Commencement Information

I169Rule 4.40CVL in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Expenses of preparing accountsE+W

4.41-CVL.—(1) Where a person is required under Rule 4.40-CVL to furnish accounts, the liquidator may, with the sanction of the liquidation committee (if there is one) and at the expense of the assets, employ some person or persons to assist in the preparation of the accounts.

(2) At the request of the person subject to the requirement, the liquidator may, with that sanction, authorise an allowance, payable out of the assets, towards expenses to be incurred by that person in employing others to assist him in preparing the accounts.

(3) Any such request shall be accompanied by an estimate of the expenses involved; and the liquidator shall only authorise the employment of a named person or a named firm, being in either case approved by him.

Commencement Information

I170Rule 4.41CVL in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Further disclosureE+W

4.42.  (NO CVL APPLICATION)

(1) The official receiver may at any time require the deponents, or any one or more of them, to submit (in writing) further information amplifying, modifying or explaining any matter contained in the statement of affairs, or in accounts submitted in pursuance of the Act or the Rules.

(2) The information shall, if the official receiver so directs, be verified by affidavit, and (whether or not so verified) delivered to him within 21 days of the requirement under paragraph (1), or such longer period as he may allow.

(3) Two copies of the documents containing the information and (where verification is directed) the affidavit shall be delivered by the deponent to the official receiver, who shall file one copy in court (with the affidavit, if any).

Commencement Information

I171Rule 4.42 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

CHAPTER 7E+WINFORMATION TO CREDITORS AND CONTRIBUTORIES

Reports by official receiverE+W

4.43.  (NO CVL APPLICATION)

The official receiver shall, at least once after the making of the winding-up order, send a report to creditors and contributories with respect to the proceedings in the winding up, and the state of the company's affairs.

Commencement Information

I172Rule 4.43 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Meaning of “creditors”E+W

4.44.  Any reference in this Chapter to creditors is to creditors of the company who are known to the official receiver or (as the case may be) the liquidator or, where a statement of the company's affairs has been submitted, are identified in the statement.

Commencement Information

I173Rule 4.44 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Report where statement of affairs lodgedE+W

4.45.  (NO CVL APPLICATION)

(1) Where a statement of affairs has been submitted and filed in court, the official receiver shall send out to creditors and contributories a report containing a summary of the statement and such observations (if any) as he thinks fit to make with respect to it, or to the affairs of the company in general.

(2) The official receiver need not comply with paragraph (1) if he has previously reported to creditors and contributories with respect to the company's affairs (so far as known to him) and he is of opinion that there are no additional matters which ought to be brought to their attention.

Commencement Information

I174Rule 4.45 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Statement of affairs dispensed withE+W

4.46.  (NO CVL APPLICATION)

(1) This Rule applies where, in the company's case, release from the obligation to submit a statement of affairs has been granted by the official receiver or the court.

(2) As soon as may be after the release has been granted, the official receiver shall send to creditors and contributories a report containing a summary of the company's affairs (so far as within his knowledge), and his observations (if any) with respect to it, or to the affairs of the company in general.

(3) The official receiver need not comply with paragraph (2) if he has previously reported to creditors and contributories with respect to the company's affairs (so far as known to him) and he is of opinion that there are no additional matters which ought to be brought to their attention.

Commencement Information

I175Rule 4.46 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

General rule as to reportingE+W

4.47.  (NO CVL APPLICATION)

(1) The court may, on the official receiver's application, relieve him of any duty imposed on him by this Chapter, or authorise him to carry out the duty in a way other than there required.

(2) In considering whether to act under this Rule, the court shall have regard to the cost of carrying out the duty, to the amount of the assets available, and to the extent of the interest of creditors or contributories, or any particular class of them.

Commencement Information

I176Rule 4.47 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Winding up stayedE+W

4.48.  (NO CVL APPLICATION)

(1) If proceedings in the winding up are stayed by order of the court, any duty of the official receiver to send reports under the preceding Rules in this Chapter ceases.

(2) Where the court grants a stay, it may include in its order such requirements on the company as it thinks fit with a view to bringing the stay to the notice of creditors and contributories.

Commencement Information

I177Rule 4.48 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Information to creditors and contributoriesE+W

4.49-CVL.  The liquidator shall, within 28 days of a meeting held under section 95 or 98, send to creditors and contributories of the company—

(a)a copy or summary of the statement of affairs, and

(b)a report of the proceedings at the meeting.

Commencement Information

I178Rule 4.49CVL in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

CHAPTER 8E+WMEETINGS OF CREDITORS AND CONTRIBUTORIES

SECTION A: RULES OF GENERAL APPLICATIONE+W
First meetingsE+W

4.50.  (NO CVL APPLICATION)

(1) If under section 136(5) the official receiver decides to summon meetings of the company's creditors and contributories for the purpose of nominating a person to be liquidator in place of himself, he shall fix a venue for each meeting, in neither case more than 4 months from the date of the winding-up order.

(2) When for each meeting a venue has been fixed, notice of the meetings shall be given to the court and—

(a)in the case of the creditors' meeting, to every creditor who is known to the official receiver or is identified in the company's statement of affairs; and

(b)in the case of the contributories' meeting, to every person appearing (by the company's books or otherwise) to be a contributory of the company.

(3) Notice to the court shall be given forthwith, and the other notices shall be given at least 21 days before the date fixed for each meeting respectively.

(4) The notice to creditors shall specify a time and date, not more than 4 days before the date fixed for the meeting, by which they must lodge proofs and (if applicable) proxies, in order to be entitled to vote at the meeting; and the same applies in respect of contributories and their proxies.

(5) Notice of the meetings shall also be given by public advertisement.

(6) [[FORM 4.21]] Where the official receiver receives a request by creditors under section 136(5)(c) for meetings of creditors and contributories to be summoned, and it appears to him that the request is properly made in accordance with the Act, he shall—

(a)withdraw any notices previously given by him under section 136(5)(b) (that he has decided not to summon such meetings),

(b)fix the venue of each meeting for not more than 3 months from his receipt of the creditors' request, and

(c)act in accordance with paragraphs (2) to (5) above, as if he had decided under section 136 to summon the meetings.

(7) Meetings summoned by the official receiver under this Rule are known respectively as “the first meeting of creditors” and “the first meeting of contributories”, and jointly as “the first meetings in the liquidation”.

(8) Where the company is a recognised bank or licensed institution under the Banking Act 1979, or an institution to which sections 16 and 18 of that Act apply as if it were a licensed institution, additional notices are required by Rule 4.72.

Commencement Information

I179Rule 4.50 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

First meeting of creditorsE+W

4.51-CVL.—(1) This Rule applies in the case of a meeting of creditors summoned by the liquidator under section 95 (where, in what starts as a members' voluntary winding up, he forms the opinion that the company will be unable to pay its debts) or a meeting under section 98 (first meeting of creditors in a creditors' voluntary winding up).

(2) The notice summoning the meeting shall specify a venue for the meeting and the time (not earlier than 12.00 hours on the business day before the day fixed for the meeting) by which, and the place at which, creditors must lodge proofs and (if applicable) proxies.

(3) Where the company is a recognised bank or licensed institution under the Banking Act 1979, or an institution to which sections 16 and 18 of that Act apply as if it were a licensed institution, additional notices are required by Rule 4.72.

Commencement Information

I180Rule 4.51CVL in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Business at first meetings in the liquidationE+W

4.52.  (NO CVL APPLICATION)

(1) At the first meeting of creditors, no resolutions shall be taken other than the following—

(a)a resolution to appoint a named insolvency practitioner to be liquidator, or two or more insolvency practitioners as joint liquidators;

(b)a resolution to establish a liquidation committee;

(c)(unless it has been resolved to establish a liquidation committee) a resolution specifying the terms on which the liquidator is to be remunerated, or to defer consideration of that matter;

(d)(if, and only if, two or more persons are appointed to act jointly as liquidator) a resolution specifying whether acts are to be done by both or all of them, or by only one;

(e)(where the meeting has been requisitioned under section 136), a resolution authorising payment out of the assets, as an expense of the liquidation, of the cost of summoning and holding the meeting and any meeting of contributories so requistioned and held;

(f)a resolution to adjourn the meeting for not more than 3 weeks;

(g)any other resolution which the chairman thinks it right to allow for special reasons.

(2) The same applies as regards the first meeting of contributories, but that meeting shall not pass any resolution to the effect of paragraph (1)(c) or (e).

(3) At neither meeting shall any resolution be proposed which has for its object the appointment of the official receiver as liquidator.

Commencement Information

I181Rule 4.52 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Business at meeting under s. 95 or 98E+W

4.53-CVL.  Rule 4.52(1), except sub-paragraph (e), applies to a creditors' meeting under section 95 or 98.

Commencement Information

I182Rule 4.53CVL in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

General power to call meetingsE+W

4.54.—(1) The official receiver or the liquidator may at any time summon and conduct meetings of creditors or of contributories for the purpose of ascertaining their wishes in all matters relating to the liquidation; and in relation to any meeting summoned under the Act or the Rules, the person summoning it is referred to as “the convener”.

(2) When (in either case) a venue for the meeting has been fixed, notice of it shall be given by the convener—

(a)[[FORM 4.22]] in the case of a creditors' meeting, to every creditor who is known to him or is identified in the company's statement of affairs; and

(b)[[FORM 4.23]] in the case of a meeting of contributories, to every person appearing (by the company's books or otherwise) to be a contributory of the company.

(3) Notice of the meeting shall be given at least 21 days before the date fixed for it, and shall specify the purpose of the meeting.

(4) The notice shall specify a time and date, not more than 4 days before the date fixed for the meeting, by which, and the place at which, creditors must lodge proofs and proxies, in order to be entitled to vote at the meeting; and the same applies in respect of contributories and their proxies.

(NO CVL APPLICATION)

(5-CVL) The notice shall specify a time and date, not more than 4 days before that fixed for the meeting, by which, and the place at which, creditors (if not individuals attending in person) must lodge proxies, in order to be entitled to vote at the meeting.

(6) Additional notice of the meeting may be given by public advertisement if the convener thinks fit, and shall be so given if the court orders.

Commencement Information

I183Rule 4.54 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

The chairman at meetingsE+W

4.55.  (NO CVL APPLICATION)

(1) This Rule applies both to a meeting of creditors and to a meeting of contributories.

(2) Where the convener of the meeting is the official receiver, he, or a person nominated by him, shall be chairman.

A nomination under this paragraph shall be in writing, unless the nominee is another official receiver or a deputy official receiver.

(3) Where the convener is other than the official receiver, the chairman shall be he, or a person nominated in writing by him.

A person nominated under this paragraph must be either—

(a)one who is qualified to act as an insolvency practitioner in relation to the company, or

(b)an employee of the liquidator or his firm who is experienced in insolvency matters.

Commencement Information

I184Rule 4.55 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

The chairman at meetingsE+W

4.56-CVL.—(1) This Rule applies both to a meeting of creditors (except a meeting under section 98) and to a meeting of contributories.

(2) The liquidator, or a person nominated by him in writing to act, shall be chairman of the meeting.

A person nominated under this paragraph must be either—

(a)one who is qualified to act as an insolvency practitioner in relation to the company, or

(b)an employee of the liquidator or his firm who is experienced in insolvency matters.

Commencement Information

I185Rule 4.56CVL in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Requisitioned meetingsE+W

4.57.—(1) [[FORM 4.21]] Any request by creditors to the liquidator (whether or not the official receiver) for a meeting of creditors or contributories, or meetings of both, to be summoned shall be accompanied by—

(a)a list of the creditors concurring with the request and the amount of their respective claims in the winding up;

(b)from each creditor concurring, written confirmation of his concurrence; and

(c)a statement of the purpose of the proposed meeting.

Sub-paragraphs (a) and (b) do not apply if the requisitioning creditor's debt is alone sufficient, without the concurrence of other creditors.

(2) The liquidator shall, if he considers the request to be properly made in accordance with the Act, fix a venue for the meeting, not more than 35 days from his receipt of the request.

(3) The liquidator shall give 21 days' notice of the meeting, and the venue for it, to creditors.

(4) [[FORM 4.24]] Paragraphs (1) to (3) above apply to the requisitioning by contributories of contributories' meetings, with the following modifications—

(a)for the reference in paragraph (1)(a) to the creditors' respective claims substitute the contributories' respective values (being the amounts for which they may vote at any meeting); and

(b)the persons to be given notice under paragraph (3) are those appearing (by the company's books or otherwise) to be contributories of the company.

(NO CVL APPLICATION)

Commencement Information

I186Rule 4.57 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Attendance at meetings of company's personnelE+W

4.58.—(1) This Rule applies to meetings of creditors and to meetings of contributories.

(2) Whenever a meeting is summoned, the convener shall give at least 21 days' notice to such of the company's personnel as he thinks should be told of, or be present at, the meeting.

The company's personnel” means the persons referred to in paragraphs (a) to (d) of section 235(3) (present and past officers, employees, etc.).

(3) If the meeting is adjourned, the chairman of the meeting shall, unless for any reason he thinks it unnecessary or impracticable, give notice of the adjournment to such (if any) of the company's personnel as he considers appropriate, being persons who were not themselves present at the meeting.

(4) The convener may, if he thinks fit, give notice to any one or more of the company's personnel that he is, or they are, required to be present at the meeting, or to be in attendance.

(5) In the case of any meeting, any one or more of the company's personnel, and any other persons, may be admitted, but—

(a)they must have given reasonable notice of their wish to be present, and

(b)it is a matter for the chairman's discretion whether they are to be admitted or not, and his decision is final as to what (if any) intervention may be made by any of them.

(6) If it is desired to put questions to any one of the company's personnel who is not present, the chairman may adjourn the meeting with a view to obtaining his attendance.

(7) Where one of the company's personnel is present at a meeting, only such questions may be put to him as the chairman may in his discretion allow.

Commencement Information

I187Rule 4.58 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Notice of meetings by advertisement onlyE+W

4.59.—(1) In the case of any meeting of creditors or contributories to be held under the Act or the Rules, the court may order that notice of the meeting be given by public advertisement, and not by individual notice to the persons concerned.

(2) In considering whether to act under this Rule, the court shall have regard to the cost of public advertisement, to the amount of the assets available, and to the extent of the interest of creditors or of contributories, or any particular class of either of them.

Commencement Information

I188Rule 4.59 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

VenueE+W

4.60.—(1) In fixing the venue for a meeting of creditors or contributories, the convener shall have regard to the convenience of the persons (other than whoever is to be chairman) who are invited to attend.

(2) Meetings shall in all cases be summoned for commencement between the hours of 10.00 and 16.00 hours on a business day, unless the court otherwise directs.

(3) [[FORM 8.4] or [FORM 8.5]] With every notice summoning a meeting of creditors or contributories there shall be sent out forms of proxy.

Commencement Information

I189Rule 4.60 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Expenses of summoning meetingsE+W

4.61.—(1) Subject as follows, the expenses of summoning and holding a meeting of creditors or contributories at the instance of any person other than the official receiver or the liquidator shall be paid by that person, who shall deposit with the liquidator security for their payment.

(2) The sum to be deposited shall be such as the official receiver or liquidator (as the case may be) determines to be appropriate; and neither shall act without the deposit having been made.

(3) Where a meeting of creditors is so summoned, it may vote that the expenses of summoning and holding it, and of summoning and holding any meeting of contributories requisitioned at the same time, shall be payable out of the assets, as an expense of the liquidation.

(4) Where a meeting of contributories is summoned on the requisition of contributories, it may vote that the expenses of summoning and holding it shall be payable out of the assets, but subject to the right of creditors to be paid in full, with interest.

(5) To the extent that any deposit made under this Rule is not required for the payment of expenses of summoning and holding a meeting, it shall be repaid to the person who made it.

Commencement Information

I190Rule 4.61 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Expenses of meeting under s. 98E+W

4.62-CVL.—(1) Payment may be made out of the company's assets, either before or after the commencement of the winding up, of any reasonable and necessary expenses incurred in connection with the summoning, advertisement and holding of a creditors' meeting under section 98.

Any such payment is an expense of the liquidation.

(2) Where such payments are made before the commencement of the winding up, the director presiding at the creditors' meeting shall inform the meeting of their amount and the identity of the persons to whom they were made.

(3) The liquidator appointed under section 100 may make such a payment (subject to the next paragraph); but if there is a liquidation committee, he must give the committee at least 7 days' notice of his intention to make the payment.

(4) Such a payment shall not be made by the liquidator to himself, or to any associate of his, otherwise than with the approval of the liquidation committee, the creditors, or the court.

(5) This Rule is without prejudice to the powers of the court under Rule 4.219 (voluntary winding up superseded by winding up by the court).

Commencement Information

I191Rule 4.62CVL in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

ResolutionsE+W

4.63.—(1) At a meeting of creditors or contributories, a resolution is passed when a majority (in value) of those present and voting, in person or by proxy, have voted in favour of the resolution.

The value of contributories is determined by reference to the number of votes conferred on each contributory by the company's articles.

(2) In the case of a resolution for the appointment of a liquidator—

(a)if on any vote there are two nominees for appointment, the person who obtains the most support is appointed;

(b)if there are three or more nominees, and one of them has a clear majority over both or all the others together, that one is appointed; and

(c)in any other case, the chairman of the meeting shall continue to take votes (disregarding at each vote any nominee who has withdrawn and, if no nominee has withdrawn, the nominee who obtained the least support last time), until a clear majority is obtained for any one nominee.

(3) The chairman may at any time put to the meeting a resolution for the joint appointment of any two or more nominees.

(4) Where a resolution is proposed which affects a person in respect of his remuneration or conduct as liquidator, or as proposed or former liquidator, the vote of that person, and of any partner or employee of his, shall not be reckoned in the majority required for passing the resolution.

This paragraph applies with respect to a vote given by a person either as creditor or contributory or as proxy for a creditor or a contributory (but subject to Rule 8.6 in Part 8 of the Rules).

Commencement Information

I192Rule 4.63 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Chairman of meeting as proxy-holderE+W

4.64.  Where the chairman at a meeting of creditors or contributories holds a proxy which requires him to vote for a particular resolution, and no other person proposes that resolution—

(a)he shall himself propose it, unless he considers that there is good reason for not doing so, and

(b)if he does not propose it, he shall forthwith after the meeting notify his principal of the reason why not.

Commencement Information

I193Rule 4.64 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Suspension and adjournmentE+W

4.65.—(1) This Rule applies to meetings of creditors and to meetings of contributories.

(2) Once only in the course of any meeting, the chairman may, in his discretion and without an adjournment, declare the meeting suspended for any period up to one hour.

(3) The chairman at any meeting may in his discretion, and shall if the meeting so resolves, adjourn it to such time and place as seems to him to be appropriate in the circumstances.

This is subject to Rule 4.113(3) in a case where the liquidator or his nominee is chairman, and a resolution has been proposed for the liquidator's removal.

(4) If within a period of 30 minutes from the time appointed for the commencement of a meeting a quorum is not present, then by virtue of this Rule the meeting stands adjourned to such time and place as may be appointed by the chairman.

(5) An adjournment under this Rule shall not be for a period of more than 21 days; and Rule 4.60(1) and (2) applies.

(6) If there is no person present to act as chairman, some other person present (being entitled to vote) may make the appointment under paragraph (4), with the agreement of others present (being persons so entitled).

Failing agreement, the adjournment shall be to the same time and place in the next following week or, if that is not a business day, to the business day immediately following.

(7) Where a meeting is adjourned under this Rule, proofs and proxies may be used if lodged at any time up to midday on the business day immediately before the adjourned meeting.

Commencement Information

I194Rule 4.65 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

QuorumE+W

4.66.—(1) A meeting is not competent to act, in the absence of a quorum, for any purpose except—

(a)the election of a chairman,

(b)in the case of a creditors' meeting, the admission by the chairman of proofs for the purpose of entitlement of creditors to vote, and

(c)the adjournment of the meeting.

(NO CVL APPLICATION)

(2-CVL) A meeting is not competent to act, in the absence of a quorum, for any purpose except the election of a chairman, or the adjournment of the meeting.

(3) Subject to paragraph (4), a quorum is—

(a)in the case of a creditors' meeting, at least 3 creditors entitled to vote, or all the creditors so entitled, if their number does not exceed 3;

(b)in the case of a meeting of contributories, at least 2 contributories so entitled, or all the contributories, if their number does not exceed 2.

The references to creditors and contributories are to those present in person or by proxy, or duly represented under section 375 of the Companies Act.

(4) One person present constitutes a quorum if—

(a)he is himself a creditor or representative under section 375 of the Companies Act or (as the case may be) a contributory with entitlement to vote and he holds a number of proxies sufficient to ensure that, with his own vote, paragraph (3) is complied with, or

(b)being the chairman or any other person, he holds that number of proxies.

Commencement Information

I195Rule 4.66 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Entitlement to vote (creditors)E+W

4.67.—(1) Subject as follows in this Rule and the next, at a meeting of creditors a person is entitled to vote as a creditor only if—

(a)there has been duly lodged (in a winding up by the court by the time and date stated in the notice of the meeting) a proof of the debt claimed to be due to him from the company, and the claim has been admitted under Rule 4.70 for the purpose of entitlement to vote, and

(b)there has been lodged, by the time and date stated in the notice of the meeting, any proxy requisite for that entitlement.

(2) The court may, in exceptional circumstances, by order declare the creditors, or any class of them, entitled to vote at creditors' meetings, without being required to prove their debts.

Where a creditor is so entitled, the court may, on the application of the liquidator, make such consequential orders as it thinks fit (as for example an order treating a creditor as having proved his debt for the purpose of permitting payment of dividend).

(3) A creditor shall not vote in respect of a debt for an unliquidated amount, or any debt whose value is not ascertained, except where the chairman agrees to put upon the debt an estimated minimum value for the purpose of entitlement to vote and admits his proof for that purpose.

(4) A secured creditor is entitled to vote only in respect of the balance (if any) of his debt after deducting the value of his security as estimated by him.

(5) A creditor shall not vote in respect of a debt on, or secured by, a current bill of exchange or promissory note, unless he is willing—

(a)to treat the liability to him on the bill or note of every person who is liable on it antecedently to the company, and against whom a bankruptcy order has not been made (or, in the case of a company, which has not gone into liquidation), as a security in his hands, and

(b)to estimate the value of the security and (for the purpose of entitlement to vote, but not for dividend) to deduct it from his proof.

Commencement Information

I196Rule 4.67 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Chairman's discretion to allow voteE+W

4.68-CVL.  At a creditors' meeting, the chairman may allow a creditor to vote, notwithstanding that he has failed to comply with Rule 4.67(1)(a), if satisfied that the failure was due to circumstances beyond the creditor's control.

Commencement Information

I197Rule 4.68CVL in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Entitlement to vote (contributories)E+W

4.69.  At a meeting of contributories, voting rights are as at a general meeting of the company, subject to any provision in the articles affecting entitlement to vote, either generally or at a time when the company is in liquidation.

Commencement Information

I198Rule 4.69 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Admission and rejection of proof (creditors' meeting)E+W

4.70.—(1) At any creditors' meeting the chairman has power to admit or reject a creditor's proof for the purpose of his entitlement to vote; and the power is exercisable with respect to the whole or any part of the proof.

(2) The chairman's decision under this Rule, or in respect of any matter arising under Rule 4.67, is subject to appeal to the court by any creditor or contributory.

(3) If the chairman is in doubt whether a proof should be admitted or rejected, he shall mark it as objected to and allow the creditor to vote, subject to his vote being subsequently declared invalid if the objection to the proof is sustained.

(4) If on an appeal the chairman's decision is reversed or varied, or a creditor's vote is declared invalid, the court may order that another meeting be summoned, or make such other order as it thinks just.

(5) Neither the official receiver, nor any person nominated by him to be chairman, is personally liable for costs incurred by any person in respect of an application under this Rule; and the chairman (if other than the official receiver or a person so nominated) is not so liable unless the court makes an order to that effect.

(NO CVL APPLICATION)

(6-CVL) The liquidator or his nominee as chairman is not personally liable for costs incurred by any person in respect of an application under this Rule, unless the court makes an order to that effect.

Commencement Information

I199Rule 4.70 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Record of proceedingsE+W

4.71.—(1) At any meeting, the chairman shall cause minutes of the proceedings to be kept. The minutes shall be signed by him, and retained as part of the records of the liquidation.

(2) The chairman shall also cause to be made up and kept a list of all the creditors or, as the case may be, contributories who attended the meeting.

(3) The minutes of the meeting shall include a record of every resolution passed.

(4) It is the chairman's duty to see to it that particulars of all such resolutions, certified by him, are filed in court not more than 21 days after the date of the meeting.

(NO CVL APPLICATION)

Commencement Information

I200Rule 4.71 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

SECTION B: WINDING UP OF RECOGNISED BANKS, ETCE+W
Additional provisions as regards certain meetingsE+W

4.72.—(1) This Rule applies where a company goes, or proposes to go, into liquidation and it is—

(a)a recognised bank or licensed institution within the meaning of the Banking Act 1979, or

(b)an institution to which sections 16 and 18 of that Act apply as if it were a licensed institution.

(2) Notice of any meeting of the company at which it is intended to propose a resolution for its winding up shall be given by the directors to the Bank of England and to the Deposit Protection Board.

(3) Notice to the Bank and the Board shall be the same as given to members of the company.

(4) Where a creditors' meeting is summoned by the liquidator under section 95 or, in a creditors' voluntary winding up, is summoned under section 98, the same notice of the meeting must be given to the Bank and the Board as is given to creditors under Rule 4.51-CVL.

(5) Where the company is being wound up by the court, notice of the first meetings of creditors and contributories shall be given to the Bank and the Board by the official receiver.

(6) Where in the winding up (whether voluntary or by the court) a meeting of creditors or contributories or of the company is summoned for the purpose of—

(a)receiving the liquidator's resignation, or

(b)removing the liquidator, or

(c)appointing a new liquidator,

the person summoning the meeting and giving notice of it shall also give notice to the Bank and the Board.

(7) The Board is entitled to be represented at any meeting of which it is required by this Rule to be given notice; and Schedule 1 to the Rules has effect with respect to the voting rights of the Board at such a meeting.

Commencement Information

I201Rule 4.72 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

CHAPTER 9E+WPROOF OF DEBTS IN A LIQUIDATION

SECTION A: PROCEDURE FOR PROVINGE+W
Meaning of “prove”E+W

4.73.—(1) Where a company is being wound up by the court, a person claiming to be a creditor of the company and wishing to recover his debt in whole or in part must (subject to any order of the court under Rule 4.67(2)) submit his claim in writing to the liquidator. (NO CVL APPLICATION)

(2-CVL) In a voluntary winding up (whether members' or creditors') the liquidator may require a person claiming to be a creditor of the company and wishing to recover his debt in whole or in part, to submit the claim in writing to him.

(3) A creditor who claims (whether or not in writing) is referred to as “proving” for his debt; and a document by which he seeks to establish his claim is his “proof”.

(4) [[FORM 4.25]] Subject to the next paragraph, a proof must be in the form known as “proof of debt” (whether the form prescribed by the Rules, or a substantially similar form), which shall be made out by or under the directions of the creditor, and signed by him or a person authorised in that behalf. (NO CVL APPLICATION)

(5) Where a debt is due to a Minister of the Crown or a Government Department, the proof need not be in that form, provided that there are shown all such particulars of the debt as are required in the form used by other creditors, and as are relevant in the circumstances. (NO CVL APPLICATION)

(6-CVL) The creditor's proof may be in any form.

(7) In certain circumstances, specified below in this Chapter, the proof must be in the form of an affidavit.

Commencement Information

I202Rule 4.73 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Supply of formsE+W

4.74.  (NO CVL APPLICATION)

(1) Forms of proof shall be sent out by the liquidator to every creditor of the company who is known to him, or is identified in the company's statement of affairs.

(2) The forms shall accompany (whichever is first)—

(a)the notice to creditors under section 136(5)(b) (official receiver's decision not to call meetings of creditors and contributories), or

(b)the first notice calling a meeting of creditors, or

(c)where a liquidator is appointed by the court, the notice of his appointment sent by him to creditors.

(3) Where, with the leave of the court under Rule 4.102(5), the liquidator advertises his appointment, he shall send proofs to the creditors within 4 months after the date of the winding-up order.

(4) The above paragraphs of this Rule are subject to any order of the court dispensing with the requirement to send out forms of proof, or altering the time at which the forms are to be sent.

Commencement Information

I203Rule 4.74 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Contents of proofE+W

4.75.  (NO CVL APPLICATION)

(1) The following matters shall be stated in a creditor's proof of debt—

(a)the creditor's name and address;

(b)the total amount of his claim as at the date on which the company went into liquidation;

(c)whether or not that amount includes outstanding uncapitalised interest;

(d)whether or not the claim includes value added tax;

(e)whether the whole or any part of the debt falls within any (and if so which) of the categories of preferential debts under section 386 of, and Schedule 6 to, the Act (as read with Schedule 3 to the Social Security Pensions Act 1975);

(f)particulars of how and when the debt was incurred by the company;

(g)particulars of any security held, the date when it was given and the value which the creditor puts upon it; and

(h)the name, address and authority of the person signing the proof (if other than the creditor himself).

(2) There shall be specified in the proof any documents by reference to which the debt can be substantiated; but (subject as follows) it is not essential that such documents be attached to the proof or submitted with it.

(3) The liquidator, or the chairman or convener of any meeting, may call for any document or other evidence to be produced to him, where he thinks it necessary for the purpose of substantiating the whole or any part of the claim made in the proof.

Commencement Information

I204Rule 4.75 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Particulars of creditor's claimE+W

4.76-CVL.  The liquidator, or the convener or chairman of any meeting, may, if he thinks it necessary for the purpose of clarifying or substantiating the whole or any part of a creditor's claim made in his proof, call for details of any matter specified in paragraphs (a) to (h) of Rule 4.75(1), or for the production to him of such documentary or other evidence as he may require.

Commencement Information

I205Rule 4.76CVL in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Claim established by affidavitE+W

4.77.—(1) [[FORM 4.26]] The liquidator may, if he thinks it necessary, require a claim of debt to be verified by means of an affidavit, for which purpose there shall be used the form known as “affidavit of debt”, or a substantially similar form.

(2) An affidavit may be required notwithstanding that a proof of debt has already been lodged.

(3) The affidavit may be sworn before an official receiver or deputy official receiver, or before an officer of the Department or of the court duly authorised in that behalf. (NO CVL APPLICATION)

Commencement Information

I206Rule 4.77 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Cost of provingE+W

4.78.—(1) Subject as follows, every creditor bears the cost of proving his own debt, including such as may be incurred in providing documents or evidence under Rule 4.75(3) or 4.76-CVL.

(2) Costs incurred by the liquidator in estimating the quantum of a debt under Rule 4.86 (debts not bearing a certain value) are payable out of the assets, as an expense of the liquidation.

(3) Paragraphs (1) and (2) apply unless the court otherwise orders.

Commencement Information

I207Rule 4.78 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Liquidator to allow inspection of proofsE+W

4.79.  The liquidator shall, so long as proofs lodged with him are in his hands, allow them to be inspected, at all reasonable times on any business day, by any of the following persons—

(a)any creditor who has submitted his proof of debt (unless his proof has been wholly rejected for purposes of dividend or otherwise);

(b)any contributory of the company;

(c)any person acting on behalf of either of the above.

Commencement Information

I208Rule 4.79 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Transmission of proofs to liquidatorE+W

4.80.  (NO CVL APPLICATION)

(1) Where a liquidator is appointed, the official receiver shall forthwith transmit to him all the proofs which he has so far received, together with an itemised list of them.

(2) The liquidator shall sign the list by way of receipt for the proofs, and return it to the official receiver.

(3) From then on, all proofs of debt shall be sent to the liquidator, and retained by him.

Commencement Information

I209Rule 4.80 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

New liquidator appointedE+W

4.81.—(1) If a new liquidator is appointed in place of another, the former liquidator shall transmit to him all proofs which he has received, together with an itemised list of them.

(2) The new liquidator shall sign the list by way of receipt for the proofs, and return it to his predecessor.

Commencement Information

I210Rule 4.81 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Admission and rejection of proofs for dividendE+W

4.82.—(1) A proof may be admitted for dividend either for the whole amount claimed by the creditor, or for part of that amount.

(2) If the liquidator rejects a proof in whole or in part, he shall prepare a written statement of his reasons for doing so, and send it forthwith to the creditor.

Commencement Information

I211Rule 4.82 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Appeal against decision on proofE+W

4.83.—(1) If a creditor is dissatisfied with the liquidator's decision with respect to his proof (including any decision on the question of preference), he may apply to the court for the decision to be reversed or varied.

The application must be made within 21 days of his receiving the statement sent under Rule 4.82(2).

(2) A contributory or any other creditor may, if dissatisfied with the liquidator's decision admitting or rejecting the whole or any part of a proof, make such an application within 21 days of becoming aware of the liquidator's decision.

(3) Where application is made to the court under this Rule, the court shall fix a venue for the application to be heard, notice of which shall be sent by the applicant to the creditor who lodged the proof in question (if it is not himself) and to the liquidator.

(4) The liquidator shall, on receipt of the notice, file in court the relevant proof, together (if appropriate) with a copy of the statement sent under Rule 4.82(2).

(5) After the application has been heard and determined, the proof shall, unless it has been wholly disallowed, be returned by the court to the liquidator.

(6) The official receiver is not personally liable for costs incurred by any person in respect of an application under this Rule; and the liquidator (if other than the official receiver) is not so liable unless the court makes an order to that effect.

Commencement Information

I212Rule 4.83 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Withdrawal or variation of proofE+W

4.84.  A creditor's proof may at any time, by agreement between himself and the liquidator, be withdrawn or varied as to the amount claimed.

Commencement Information

I213Rule 4.84 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Expunging of proof by the courtE+W

4.85.—(1) The court may expunge a proof or reduce the amount claimed—

(a)on the liquidator's application, where he thinks that the proof has been improperly admitted, or ought to be reduced; or

(b)on the application of a creditor, if the liquidator declines to interfere in the matter.

(2) Where application is made to the court under this Rule, the court shall fix a venue for the application to be heard, notice of which shall be sent by the applicant—

(a)in the case of an application by the liquidator, to the creditor who made the proof, and

(b)in the case of an application by a creditor, to the liquidator and to the creditor who made the proof (if not himself).

Commencement Information

I214Rule 4.85 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

SECTION B: QUANTIFICATION OF CLAIME+W
Estimate of quantumE+W

4.86.—(1) The liquidator shall estimate the value of any debt which, by reason of its being subject to any contingency or for any other reason, does not bear a certain value; and he may revise any estimate previously made, if he thinks fit by reference to any change of circumstances or to information becoming available to him.

He shall inform the creditor as to his estimate and any revision of it.

(2) Where the value of a debt is estimated under this Rule, or by the court under section 168(3) or (5), the amount provable in the winding up in the case of that debt is that of the estimate for the time being.

Commencement Information

I215Rule 4.86 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Negotiable instruments, etcE+W

4.87.  Unless the liquidator allows, a proof in respect of money owed on a bill of exchange, promissory note, cheque or other negotiable instrument or security cannot be admitted unless there is produced the instrument or security itself or a copy of it, certified by the creditor or his authorised representative to be a true copy.

Commencement Information

I216Rule 4.87 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Secured creditorsE+W

4.88.—(1) If a secured creditor realises his security, he may prove for the balance of his debt, after deducting the amount realised.

(2) If a secured creditor voluntarily surrenders his security for the general benefit of creditors, he may prove for his whole debt, as if it were unsecured.

Commencement Information

I217Rule 4.88 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

DiscountsE+W

4.89.  There shall in every case be deducted from the claim all trade and other discounts which would have been available to the company but for its liquidation, except any discount for immediate, early or cash settlement.

Commencement Information

I218Rule 4.89 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Mutual credit and set-offE+W

4.90.—(1) This Rule applies where, before the company goes into liquidation there have been mutual credits, mutual debts or other mutual dealings between the company and any creditor of the company proving or claiming to prove for a debt in the liquidation.

(2) An account shall be taken of what is due from each party to the other in respect of the mutual dealings, and the sums due from one party shall be set off against the sums due from the other.

(3) Sums due from the company to another party shall not be included in the account taken under paragraph (2) if that other party had notice at the time they became due that a meeting of creditors had been summoned under section 98 or (as the case may be) a petition for the winding up of the company was pending.

(4) Only the balance (if any) of the account is provable in the liquidation. Alternatively (as the case may be) the amount shall be paid to the liquidator as part of the assets.

Commencement Information

I219Rule 4.90 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Debt in foreign currencyE+W

4.91.—(1) For the purpose of proving a debt incurred or payable in a currency other than sterling, the amount of the debt shall be converted into sterling at the official exchange rate prevailing on the date when the company went into liquidation.

(2) “The official exchange rate” is the middle market rate at the Bank of England, as published for the date in question. In the absence of any such published rate, it is such rate as the court determines.

Commencement Information

I220Rule 4.91 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Payments of a periodical natureE+W

4.92.—(1) In the case of rent and other payments of a periodical nature, the creditor may prove for any amounts due and unpaid up to the date when the company went into liquidation.

(2) Where at that date any payment was accruing due, the creditor may prove for so much as would have fallen due at that date, if accruing from day to day.

Commencement Information

I221Rule 4.92 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

InterestE+W

4.93.—(1) Where a debt proved in the liquidation bears interest, that interest is provable as part of the debt except in so far as it is payable in respect of any period after the company went into liquidation.

(2) In the following circumstances the creditor's claim may include interest on the debt for periods before the company went into liquidation, although not previously reserved or agreed.

(3) If the debt is due by virtue of a written instrument, and payable at a certain time, interest may be claimed for the period from that time to the date when the company went into liquidation.

(4) If the debt is due otherwise, interest may only be claimed if, before that date, a demand for payment of the debt was made in writing by or on behalf of the creditor, and notice given that interest would be payable from the date of the demand to the date of payment.

(5) Interest under paragraph (4) may only be claimed for the period from the date of the demand to that of the company's going into liquidation.

(6) The rate of interest to be claimed under paragraph (3) or (4) of this Rule is the rate specified in section 17 of the Judgments Act 1838 on the date when the company went into liquidation, except that, where the case falls within paragraph (4), the rate is that specified in the notice there referred to, not exceeding the rate under the Judgments Act mentioned above.

Commencement Information

I222Rule 4.93 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Debt payable at future timeE+W

4.94.  A creditor may prove for a debt of which payment was not yet due on the date when the company went into liquidation, but subject to Rule 11.13 in Part 11 of the Rules (adjustment of dividend where payment made before time).

Commencement Information

I223Rule 4.94 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

CHAPTER 10E+WSECURED CREDITORS

Value of securityE+W

4.95.—(1) A secured creditor may, with the agreement of the liquidator or the leave of the court, at any time alter the value which he has, in his proof of debt, put upon his security.

(2) However, if a secured creditor—

(a)being the petitioner, has in the petition put a value on his security, or

(b)has voted in respect of the unsecured balance of his debt,

he may re-value his security only with leave of the court. (NO CVL APPLICATION)

Commencement Information

I224Rule 4.95 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Surrender for non-disclosureE+W

4.96.—(1) If a secured creditor omits to disclose his security in his proof of debt, he shall surrender his security for the general benefit of creditors, unless the court, on application by him, relieves him for the effect of this Rule on the ground that the omission was inadvertent or the result of honest mistake.

(2) If the court grants that relief, it may require or allow the creditor's proof of debt to be amended, on such terms as may be just.

Commencement Information

I225Rule 4.96 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Redemption by liquidatorE+W

4.97.—(1) The liquidator may at any time give notice to a creditor whose debt is secured that he proposes, at the expiration of 28 days from the date of the notice, to redeem the security at the value put upon it in the creditor's proof.

(2) The creditor then has 21 days (or such longer period as the liquidator may allow) in which, if he so wishes, to exercise his right to revalue his security (with the leave of the court, where Rule 4.95(2) applies).

If the creditor re-values his security, the liquidator may only redeem at the new value.

(3) If the liquidator redeems the security, the cost of transferring it is payable out of the assets.

(4) A secured creditor may at any time, by a notice in writing, call on the liquidator to elect whether he will or will not exercise his power to redeem the security at the value then placed on it; and the liquidator then has 6 months in which to exercise the power or determine not to exercise it.

Commencement Information

I226Rule 4.97 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Test of security's valueE+W

4.98.—(1) Subject as follows, the liquidator, if he is dissatisfied with the value which a secured creditor puts on his security (whether in his proof or by way of re-valuation under Rule 4.97), may require any property comprised in the security to be offered for sale.

(2) The terms of sale shall be such as may be agreed, or as the court may direct; and if the sale is by auction, the liquidator on behalf of the company, and the creditor on his own behalf, may appear and bid.

Commencement Information

I227Rule 4.98 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Realisation of security by creditorE+W

4.99.  If a creditor who has valued his security subsequently realises it (whether or not at the instance of the liquidator)—

(a)the net amount realised shall be substituted for the value previously put by the creditor on the security, and

(b)that amount shall be treated in all respects as an amended valuation made by him.

Commencement Information

I228Rule 4.99 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

CHAPTER 11E+WTHE LIQUIDATOR

SECTION A: APPOINTMENT AND ASSOCIATED FORMALITIESE+W
Appointment by creditors or contributoriesE+W

4.100.  (NO CVL APPLICATION)

(1) This Rule applies where a person is appointed as liquidator either by a meeting of creditors or by a meeting of contributories.

(2) [[FORM 4.27] [FORM 4.28]] The chairman of the meeting shall certify the appointment, but not unless and until the person appointed has provided him with a written statement to the effect that he is an insolvency practitioner, duly qualified under the Act to be the liquidator, and that he consents so to act.

(3) Where the chairman of the meeting is not the official receiver, he shall send the certificate to him.

(4) The official receiver shall in any case file a copy of the certificate in court; and the liquidator's appointment is effective as from the date on which the official receiver files the copy certificate in court, that date to be endorsed on the copy certificate.

(5) The certificate, so endorsed, shall be sent by the official receiver to the liquidator.

Commencement Information

I229Rule 4.100 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Appointment by creditors or by the companyE+W

4.101-CVL.—(1) This Rule applies where a person is appointed as liquidator either by a meeting of creditors or by a meeting of the company.

(2) [[FORM 4.27] [FORM 4.28]] Subject as follows, the chairman of the meeting shall certify the appointment, but not unless and until the person appointed has provided him with a written statement to the effect that he is an insolvency practitioner, duly qualified under the Act to be the liquidator, and that he consents so to act; the liquidator's appointment is effective from the date of the certificate.

(3) The chairman shall send the certificate forthwith to the liquidator, who shall keep it as part of the records of the liquidation.

(4) Paragraphs (2) and (3) need not be complied with in the case of a liquidator appointed by a company meeting and replaced by another liquidator appointed on the same day by a creditors' meeting.

Commencement Information

I230Rule 4.101CVL in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Appointment by the courtE+W

4.102.  (NO CVL APPLICATION)

(1) [[FORM 4.29] [FORM 4.30]] This Rule applies where the liquidator is appointed by the court under section 139(4) (different persons nominated by creditors and contributories) or section 140 (liquidation following administration or voluntary arrangement).

(2) The court's order shall not issue unless and until the person appointed has filed in court a statement to the effect that he is an insolvency practitioner, duly qualified under the Act to be the liquidator, and that he consents so to act.

(3) Thereafter, the court shall send 2 copies of the order to the official receiver. One of the copies shall be sealed, and this shall be sent to the person appointed as liquidator.

(4) The liquidator's appointment takes effect from the date of the order.

(5) The liquidator shall, within 28 days of his appointment, give notice of it to all creditors and contributories of the company of whom he is aware in that period. Alternatively, if the court allows, he may advertise his appointment in accordance with the court's directions.

(6) In his notice or advertisement under this Rule the liquidator shall—

(a)state whether he proposes to summon meetings of creditors and contributories for the purpose of establishing a liquidation committee, or proposes to summon only a meeting of creditors for that purpose, and

(b)if he does not propose to summon any such meeting, set out the powers of the creditors under the Act to require him to summon one.

Commencement Information

I231Rule 4.102 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Appointment by the courtE+W

4.103-CVL.—(1) [[FORM 4.29] [FORM 4.30]] This Rule applies where the liquidator is appointed by the court under section 100(3) or 108.

(2) The court's order shall not issue unless and until the person appointed has filed in court a statement to the effect that he is an insolvency practitioner, duly qualified under the Act to be the liquidator, and that he consents so to act.

(3) Thereafter, the court shall send a sealed copy of the order to the liquidator, whose appointment takes effect from the date of the order.

(4) Not later than 28 days from his appointment, the liquidator shall give notice of it to all creditors of the company of whom he is aware in that period. Alternatively, if the court allows, he may advertise his appointment in accordance with the court's directions.

Commencement Information

I232Rule 4.103CVL in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Appointment by Secretary of StateE+W

4.104.  (NO CVL APPLICATION)

(1) This Rule applies where the official receiver applies to the Secretary of State to appoint a liquidator in place of himself, or refers to the Secretary of State the need for an appointment.

(2) If the Secretary of State makes an appointment, he shall send two copies of the certificate of appointment to the official receiver, who shall transmit one such copy to the person appointed, and file the other in court.

(3) The certificate shall specify the date from which the liquidator's appointment is to be effective.

Commencement Information

I233Rule 4.104 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Authentication of liquidator's appointmentE+W

4.105.  A copy of the certificate of the liquidator's appointment or (as the case may be) a sealed copy of the court's order, may in any proceedings be adduced as proof that the person appointed is duly authorised to exercise the powers and perform the duties of liquidator in the company's winding up.

Commencement Information

I234Rule 4.105 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Appointment to be advertised and registeredE+W

4.106.—(1) Subject as follows, where the liquidator is appointed by a creditors' or contributories' meeting, or by a meeting of the company, he shall, on receiving his certificate of appointment, give notice of his appointment in such newspaper as he thinks most appropriate for ensuring that it comes to the notice of the company's creditors and contributories.

(2-CVL) Paragraph (1) need not be complied with in the case of a liquidator appointed by a company meeting and replaced by another liquidator appointed on the same day by a creditors' meeting.

(3) The expense of giving notice under this Rule shall be borne in the first instance by the liquidator; but he is entitled to be reimbursed out of the assets, as an expense of the liquidation.

The same applies also in the case of the notice or advertisement required where the appointment is made by the court or the Secretary of State.

(4) [[FORM 4.31]] In the case of a winding up by the court, the liquidator shall also forthwith notify his appointment to the registrar of companies.

This applies however the liquidator is appointed.

Commencement Information

I235Rule 4.106 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Hand-over of assets to liquidatorE+W

4.107.  (NO CVL APPLICATION)

(1) This Rule applies only where the liquidator is appointed in succession to the official receiver acting as liquidator.

(2) When the liquidator's appointment takes effect, the official receiver shall forthwith do all that is required for putting him into possession of the assets.

(3) On taking possession of the assets, the liquidator shall discharge any balance due to the official receiver on account of—

(a)expenses properly incurred by him and payable under the Act or the Rules, and

(b)any advances made by him in respect of the assets, together with interest on such advances at the rate specified in section 17 of the Judgments Act 1838 at the date of the winding-up order.

(4) Alternatively, the liquidator may (before taking office) give to the official receiver a written undertaking to discharge any such balance out of the first realisation of assets.

(5) The official receiver has a charge on the assets in respect of any sums due to him under paragraph (3). But, where the liquidator has realised assets with a view to making those payments, the official receiver's charge does not extend in respect of sums deductible by the liquidator from the proceeds of realisation, as being expenses properly incurred therein.

(6) The liquidator shall from time to time out of the realisation of assets discharge all guarantees properly given by the official receiver for the benefit of the estate, and shall pay all the official receiver's expenses.

(7) The official receiver shall give to the liquidator all such information relating to the affairs of the company and the course of the winding up as he (the official receiver) considers to be reasonably required for the effective discharge by the liquidator of his duties as such.

(8) The liquidator shall also be furnished with a copy of any report made by the official receiver under Chapter 7 of this Part of the Rules.

Commencement Information

I236Rule 4.107 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

SECTION B: RESIGNATION AND REMOVAL; VACATION OF OFFICEE+W
Creditors' meeting to receive liquidator's resignationE+W

4.108.—(1) [[FORM 4.22]] Before resigning his office, the liquidator must call a meeting of creditors for the purpose of receiving his resignation. The notice summoning the meeting shall indicate that this is the purpose, or one of the purposes, of it, and shall draw the attention of creditors to Rule 4.121 or, as the case may be, Rule 4.122-CVL with respect to the liquidator's release.

(2) A copy of the notice shall at the same time also be sent to the official receiver. (NO CVL APPLICATION)

(3) The notice to creditors under paragraph (1) must be accompanied by an account of the liquidator's administration of the winding up, including—

(a)a summary of his receipts and payments, and

(b)a statement by him that he has reconciled his account with that which is held by the Secretary of State in respect of the winding up.

(4) Subject as follows, the liquidator may only proceed under this Rule on grounds of ill health or because—

(a)he intends ceasing to be in practice as an insolvency practitioner, or

(b)there is some conflict of interest or change of personal circumstances which precludes or makes impracticable the further discharge by him of the duties of liquidator.

(5) Where two or more persons are acting as liquidator jointly, any one of them may proceed under this Rule (without prejudice to the continuation in office of the other or others) on the ground that, in his opinion and that of the other or others, it is no longer expedient that there should continue to be the present number of joint liquidators.

Commencement Information

I237Rule 4.108 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Action following acceptance of resignationE+W

4.109.  (NO CVL APPLICATION)

(1) This Rule applies where a meeting is summoned to receive the liquidator's resignation.

(2) If the chairman of the meeting is other than the official receiver, and there is passed at the meeting any of the following resolutions—

(a)that the liquidator's resignation be accepted,

(b)that a new liquidator be appointed,

(c)that the resigning liquidator be not given his release,

the chairman shall, within 3 days, send to the official receiver a copy of the resolution.

If it has been resolved to accept the liquidator's resignation, the chairman shall send to the official receiver a certificate to that effect.

(3) If the creditors have resolved to appoint a new liquidator, the certificate of his appointment shall also be sent to the official receiver within that time; and Rule 4.100 shall be complied with in respect of it.

(4) [[FORM 4.32]] If the liquidator's resignation is accepted, the notice of it required by section 172(6) shall be given by him forthwith after the meeting; and he shall send a copy of the notice to the official receiver.

The notice shall be accompanied by a copy of the account sent to creditors under Rule 4.108(3).

(5) The official receiver shall file a copy of the notice in court.

(6) The liquidator's resignation is effective as from the date on which the official receiver files the copy notice in court, that date to be endorsed on the copy notice.

Commencement Information

I238Rule 4.109 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Action following acceptance of resignationE+W

4.110-CVL.—(1) This Rule applies where a meeting is summoned to receive the liquidator's resignation.

(2) [[FORM 4.33]] If his resignation is accepted, the notice of it required by section 171(5) shall be given by him forthwith after the meeting.

(3) Where a new liquidator is appointed in place of the one who has resigned, the certificate of his appointment shall be delivered forthwith by the chairman of the meeting to the new liquidator.

Commencement Information

I239Rule 4.110CVL in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Leave to resign granted by the courtE+W

4.111.—(1) [[FORM 4.34]] If at a creditors' meeting summoned to accept the liquidator's resignation it is resolved that it be not accepted, the court may, on the liquidator's application, make an order giving him leave to resign.

(2) The court's order may include such provision as it thinks fit with respect to matters arising in connection with the resignation, and shall determine the date from which the liquidator's release is effective.

(3) The court shall send two sealed copies of the order to the liquidator, who shall send one of the copies forthwith to the official receiver. (NO CVL APPLICATION)

(4-CVL) [[FORM 4.35]] The court shall send two sealed copies of the order to the liquidator, who shall forthwith send one of them to the registrar of companies.

(5) [[FORM 4.36]] On sending notice of his resignation to the court, the liquidator shall send a copy of it to the official receiver. (NO CVL APPLICATION)

Commencement Information

I240Rule 4.111 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Advertisement of resignationE+W

4.112.  Where a new liquidator is appointed in place of one who has resigned, the former shall, in giving notice of his appointment, state that his predecessor has resigned and (if it be the case) that he has been given his release.

Commencement Information

I241Rule 4.112 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Meeting of creditors to remove liquidatorE+W

4.113.  (NO CVL APPLICATION)

(1) [[FORM 4.22]] Where a meeting of creditors is summoned for the purpose of removing the liquidator, the notice summoning it shall indicate that this is the purpose, or one of the purposes, of the meeting; and the notice shall draw the attention of creditors to section 174(4) with respect to the liquidator's release.

(2) A copy of the notice shall at the same time also be sent to the official receiver.

(3) At the meeting, a person other than the liquidator or his nominee may be elected to act as chairman; but if the liquidator or his nominee is chairman and a resolution has been proposed for the liquidator's removal, the chairman shall not adjourn the meeting without the consent of at least one-half (in value) of the creditors present (in person or by proxy) and entitled to vote.

(4) Where the chairman of the meeting is other than the official receiver, and there is passed at the meeting any of the following resolutions—

(a)that the liquidator be removed,

(b)that a new liquidator be appointed,

(c)that the removed liquidator be not given his release,

the chairman shall, within 3 days, send to the official receiver a copy of the resolution.

[[FORM 4.37]] If it has been resolved to remove the liquidator, the chairman shall send to the official receiver a certificate to that effect.

(5) If the creditors have resolved to appoint a new liquidator, the certificate of his appointment shall also be sent to the official receiver within that time; and Rule 4.100 above shall be complied with in respect of it.

Commencement Information

I242Rule 4.113 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Meeting of creditors to remove liquidatorE+W

4.114-CVL.—(1) A meeting held under section 171(2)(b) for the removal of the liquidator shall be summoned by him if requested by 25 per cent. in value of the company's creditors, excluding those who are connected with it.

(2) [[FORM 4.22]] The notice summoning the meeting shall indicate that the removal of the liquidator is the purpose, or one of the purposes, of the meeting; and the notice shall draw the attention of creditors to section 173(2) with respect to the liquidator's release.

(3) At the meeting, a person other than the liquidator or his nominee may be elected to act as chairman; but if the liquidator or his nominee is chairman and a resolution has been proposed for the liquidator's removal, the chairman shall not adjourn the meeting without the consent of at least one-half (in value) of the creditors present (in person or by proxy) and entitled to vote.

Commencement Information

I243Rule 4.114CVL in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Court's power to regulate meetings under Rules 4.113, 4.114-CVLE+W

4.115.  Where a meeting under Rule 4.113 or 4.114-CVL is to be held, or is proposed to be summoned, the court may, on the application of any creditor, give directions as to the mode of summoning it, the sending out and return of forms of proxy, the conduct of the meeting, and any other matter which appears to the court to require regulation or control under this Rule.

Commencement Information

I244Rule 4.115 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Procedure on removalE+W

4.116.  (NO CVL APPLICATION)

(1) Where the creditors have resolved that the liquidator be removed, the official receiver shall file in court the certificate of removal.

(2) The resolution is effective as from the date on which the official receiver files the certificate of removal in court, and that date shall be endorsed on the certificate.

(3) A copy of the certificate, so endorsed, shall be sent by the official receiver to the liquidator who has been removed and, if a new liquidator has been appointed, to him.

(4) The official receiver shall not file the certificate in court unless and until the Secretary of State has certified to him that the removed liquidator has reconciled his account with that held by the Secretary of State in respect of the winding up.

Commencement Information

I245Rule 4.116 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Procedure on removalE+W

4.117-CVL.  Where the creditors have resolved that the liquidator be removed, the chairman of the creditors' meeting shall forthwith—

(a)[[FORM 4.38]] if at the meeting another liquidator was not appointed, send the certificate of the liquidator's removal to the registrar of companies, and

(b)otherwise, deliver the certificate to the new liquidator, who shall send it to the registrar.

Commencement Information

I246Rule 4.117CVL in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Advertisement of removalE+W

4.118.  Where a new liquidator is appointed in place of one removed, the former shall, in giving notice of his appointment, state that his predecessor has been removed and (if it be the case) that he has been given his release.

Commencement Information

I247Rule 4.118 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Removal of liquidator by the courtE+W

4.119.  (NO CVL APPLICATION)

(1) [[FORM 4.39]] This Rule applies where application is made to the court for the removal of the liquidator, or for an order directing the liquidator to summon a meeting of creditors for the purpose of removing him.

(2) The court may, if it thinks that no sufficient cause is shown for the application, dismiss it; but it shall not do so unless the applicant has had an opportunity to attend the court for an ex parte hearing, of which he has been given at least 7 days' notice.

If the application is not dismissed under this paragraph, the court shall fix a venue for it to be heard.

(3) The court may require the applicant to make a deposit or give security for the costs to be incurred by the liquidator on the application.

(4) The applicant shall, at least 14 days before the hearing, send to the liquidator and the official receiver a notice stating the venue and accompanied by a copy of the application, and of any evidence which he intends to adduce in support of it.

(5) Subject to any contrary order of the court, the costs of the application are not payable out of the assets.

(6) Where the court removes the liquidator—

(a)it shall send copies of the order of removal to him and to the official receiver;

(b)the order may include such provision as the court thinks fit with respect to matters arising in connection with the removal; and

(c)if the court appoints a new liquidator, Rule 4.102 applies.

Commencement Information

I248Rule 4.119 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Removal of liquidator by the courtE+W

4.120-CVL.—(1) [[FORM 4.39]] This Rule applies where application is made to the court for the removal of the liquidator, or for an order directing the liquidator to summon a creditors' meeting for the purpose of removing him.

(2) The court may, if it thinks that no sufficient cause is shown for the application, dismiss it; but it shall not do so unless the applicant has had an opportunity to attend the court for an ex parte hearing, of which he has been given at least 7 days' notice.

If the application is not dismissed under this paragraph, the court shall fix a venue for it to be heard.

(3) The court may require the applicant to make a deposit or give security for the costs to be incurred by the liquidator on the application.

(4) The applicant shall, at least 14 days before the hearing, send to the liquidator a notice stating the venue and accompanied by a copy of the application, and of any evidence which he intends to adduce in support of it.

(5) Subject to any contrary order of the court, the costs of the application are not payable out of the assets.

(6) Where the court removes the liquidator—

(a)[[FORM 4.40]] it shall send 2 copies of the order of removal to him, one to be sent by him forthwith to the registrar of companies, with notice of his ceasing to act;

(b)the order may include such provision as the court thinks fit with respect to matters arising in connection with the removal; and

(c)if the court appoints a new liquidator, Rule 4.103-CVL applies.

Commencement Information

I249Rule 4.120CVL in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Release of resigning or removed liquidatorE+W

4.121.  (NO CVL APPLICATION)

(1) Where the liquidator's resignation is accepted by a meeting of creditors which has not resolved against his release, he has his release from when his resignation is effective under Rule 4.109.

(2) Where the liquidator is removed by a meeting of creditors which has not resolved against his release, the fact of his release shall be stated in the certificate of removal.

(3) Where—

(a)the liquidator resigns, and the creditors' meeting called to receive his resignation has resolved against his release, or

(b)he is removed by a creditors' meeting which has so resolved, or is removed by the court,

[[FORM 4.41]] he must apply to the Secretary of State for his release.

(4) When the Secretary of State gives the release, he shall certify it accordingly, and send the certificate to the official receiver, to be filed in court.

(5) A copy of the certificate shall be sent by the Secretary of State to the former liquidator, whose release is effective from the date of the certificate.

Commencement Information

I250Rule 4.121 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Release of resigning or removed liquidatorE+W

4.122-CVL.—(1) [[FORM 4.40]] Where the liquidator's resignation is accepted by a meeting of creditors which has not resolved against his release, he has his release from when he gives notice of his resignation to the registrar of companies.

(2) Where the liquidator is removed by a creditors' meeting which has not resolved against his release, the fact of his release shall be stated in the certificate of removal.

(3) Where—

(a)the liquidator resigns, and the creditors' meeting called to receive his resignation has resolved against his release, or

(b)he is removed by a creditors' meeting which has so resolved, or is removed by the court,

[[FORM 4.41]] he must apply to the Secretary of State for his release.

(4) When the Secretary of State gives the release, he shall certify it accordingly, and send the certificate to the registrar of companies.

(5) A copy of the certificate shall be sent by the Secretary of State to the former liquidator, whose release is effective from the date of the certificate.

Commencement Information

I251Rule 4.122CVL in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Removal of liquidator by Secretary of StateE+W

4.123.  (NO CVL APPLICATION)

(1) If the Secretary of State decides to remove the liquidator, he shall before doing so notify the liquidator and the official receiver of his decision and the grounds of it, and specify a period within which the liquidator may make representations against implementation of the decision.

(2) If the Secretary of State directs the removal of the liquidator, he shall forthwith—

(a)file notice of his decision in court, and

(b)send notice to the liquidator and the official receiver.

(3) If the liquidator is removed by direction of the Secretary of State—

(a)Rule 4.121 applies as regards the liquidator obtaining his release, as if he had been removed by the court, and

(b)the court may make any such order in his case as it would have power to make if he had been so removed.

Commencement Information

I252Rule 4.123 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

SECTION C: RELEASE ON COMPLETION OF ADMINISTRATIONE+W
Release of official receiverE+W

4.124.  (NO CVL APPLICATION)

(1) The official receiver shall, before giving notice to the Secretary of State under section 174(3) (that the winding up is for practical purposes complete), send out notice of his intention to do so to all creditors who have proved their debts.

(2) The notice shall in each case be accompanied by a summary of the official receiver's receipts and payments as liquidator.

(3) The Secretary of State, when he has determined the date from which the official receiver is to have his release, shall give notice to the court that he has done so. The notice shall be accompanied by the summary referred to in paragraph (2).

Commencement Information

I253Rule 4.124 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Final meetingE+W

4.125.  (NO CVL APPLICATION)

(1) [[FORM 4.22]] Where the liquidator is other than the official receiver, he shall give at least 28 days' notice of the final meeting of creditors to be held under section 146. The notice shall be sent to all creditors who have proved their debts; and the liquidator shall cause it to be gazetted at least one month before the meeting is to be held.

(2) The liquidator's report laid before the meeting under that section shall contain an account of the liquidator's administration of the winding up, including—

(a)a summary of his receipts and payments, and

(b)a statement by him that he has reconciled his account with that which is held by the Secretary of State in respect of the winding up.

(3) At the final meeting, the creditors may question the liquidator with respect to any matter contained in his report, and may resolve against him having his release.

(4) [[FORM 4.42]] The liquidator shall give notice to the court that the final meeting has been held; and the notice shall state whether or not he has been given his release, and be accompanied by a copy of the report laid before the final meeting. A copy of the notice shall be sent by the liquidator to the official receiver.

(5) If there is no quorum present at the final meeting, the liquidator shall report to the court that a final meeting was summoned in accordance with the Rules, but there was no quorum present; and the final meeting is then deemed to have been held, and the creditors not to have resolved against the liquidator having his release.

(6) If the creditors at the final meeting have not so resolved, the liquidator is released when the notice under paragraph (4) is filed in court. If they have so resolved, the liquidator must obtain his release from the Secretary of State and Rule 4.121 applies accordingly.

Commencement Information

I254Rule 4.125 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Final meetingE+W

4.126-CVL.—(1) [[FORM 4.22]] The liquidator shall give at least 28 days' notice of the final meeting of creditors to be held under section 106. The notice shall be sent to all creditors who have proved their debts.

(2) At the final meeting, the creditors may question the liquidator with respect to any matter contained in the account required under the section, and may resolve against the liquidator having his release.

(3) Where the creditors have so resolved, he must obtain his release from the Secretary of State; and Rule 4.122-CVL applies accordingly.

Commencement Information

I255Rule 4.126CVL in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

SECTION D: REMUNERATIONE+W
Fixing of remunerationE+W

4.127.—(1) The liquidator is entitled to receive remuneration for his services as such.

(2) The remuneration shall be fixed either—

(a)as a percentage of the value of the assets which are realised or distributed, or of the one value and the other in combination, or

(b)by reference to the time properly given by the insolvency practitioner (as liquidator) and his staff in attending to matters arising in the winding up.

(3) Where the liquidator is other than the official receiver, it is for the liquidation committee (if there is one) to determine whether the remuneration is to be fixed under paragraph (2)(a) or (b) and, if under paragraph (2)(a), to determine any percentage to be applied as there mentioned.

(4) In arriving at that determination, the committee shall have regard to the following matters—

(a)the complexity (or otherwise) of the case,

(b)any respects in which, in connection with the winding up, there falls on the insolvency practitioner (as liquidator) any responsibility of an exceptional kind or degree,

(c)the effectiveness with which the insolvency practitioner appears to be carrying out, or to have carried out, his duties as liquidator, and

(d)the value and nature of the assets with which the liquidator has to deal.

(5) If there is no liquidation committee, or the committee does not make the requisite determination, the liquidator's remuneration may be fixed (in accordance with paragraph (2)) by a resolution of a meeting of creditors; and paragraph (4) applies to them as it does to the liquidation committee.

(6) If not fixed as above, the liquidator's remuneration shall be in accordance with the scale laid down for the official receiver by general regulations.

Commencement Information

I256Rule 4.127 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Other matters affecting remunerationE+W

4.128.—(1) Where the liquidator sells assets on behalf of a secured creditor, he is entitled to take for himself, out of the proceeds of sale, a sum by way of remuneration equivalent to that which is chargeable in corresponding circumstances by the official receiver under general regulations.

(2) Where there are joint liquidators, it is for them to agree between themselves as to how the remuneration payable should be apportioned. Any dispute arising between them may be referred—

(a)to the court, for settlement by order, or

(b)to the liquidation committee or a meeting of creditors, for settlement by resolution.

(3) If the liquidator is a solicitor and employs his own firm, or any partner in it, to act on behalf of the company, profit costs shall not be paid unless this is authorised by the liquidation committee, the creditors or the court.

Commencement Information

I257Rule 4.128 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Recourse of liquidator to meeting of creditorsE+W

4.129.  If the liquidator's remuneration has been fixed by the liquidation committee, and he considers the rate or amount to be insufficient, he may request that it be increased by resolution of the creditors.

Commencement Information

I258Rule 4.129 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Recourse to the courtE+W

4.130.—(1) If the liquidator considers that the remuneration fixed for him by the liquidation committee, or by resolution of the creditors, or as under Rule 4.127(6), is insufficient, he may apply to the court for an order increasing its amount or rate.

(2) The liquidator shall give at least 14 days' notice of his application to the members of the liquidation committee; and the committee may nominate one or more members to appear or be represented, and to be heard, on the application.

(3) If there is no liquidation committee, the liquidator's notice of his application shall be sent to such one or more of the company's creditors as the court may direct, which creditors may nominate one or more of their number to appear or be represented.

(4) The court may, if it appears to be a proper case, order the costs of the liquidator's application, including the costs of any member of the liquidation committee appearing on it, or any creditor so appearing, to be paid out of the assets.

Commencement Information

I259Rule 4.130 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Creditors' claim that remuneration is excessiveE+W

4.131.—(1) Any creditor of the company may, with the concurrence of at least 25 per cent. in value of the creditors (including himself), apply to the court for an order that the liquidator's remuneration be reduced, on the grounds that it is, in all the circumstances, excessive.

(2) The court may, if it thinks that no sufficient cause is shown for a reduction, dismiss the application; but it shall not do so unless the applicant has had an opportunity to attend the court for an ex parte hearing, of which he has been given at least 7 days' notice.

If the application is not dismissed under this paragraph, the court shall fix a venue for it to be heard, and give notice to the applicant accordingly.

(3) The applicant shall, at least 14 days before the hearing, send to the liquidator a notice stating the venue and accompanied by a copy of the application, and of any evidence which the applicant intends to adduce in support of it.

(4) If the court considers the application to be well-founded, it shall make an order fixing the remuneration at a reduced amount or rate.

(5) Unless the court orders otherwise, the costs of the application shall be paid by the applicant, and are not payable out of the assets.

Commencement Information

I260Rule 4.131 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

SECTION E: SUPPLEMENTARY PROVISIONSE+W
Liquidator deceasedE+W

4.132.  (NO CVL APPLICATION)

(1) Subject as follows, where the liquidator (other than the official receiver) has died, it is the duty of his personal representatives to give notice of the fact to the official receiver, specifying the date of the death.

This does not apply if notice has been given under any of the following paragraphs of this Rule.

(2) If the deceased liquidator was a partner in a firm, notice may be given to the official receiver by a partner in the firm who is qualified to act as an insolvency practitioner, or is a member of any body recognised by the Secretary of State for the authorisation of insolvency practitioners.

(3) Notice of the death may be given by any person producing to the official receiver the relevant death certificate or a copy of it.

(4) The official receiver shall give notice to the court, for the purpose of fixing the date of the deceased liquidator's release.

Commencement Information

I261Rule 4.132 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Liquidator deceasedE+W

4.133-CVL.—(1) [[FORM 4.44]] Subject as follows, where the liquidator has died, it is the duty of his personal representatives to give notice of the fact, and of the date of death, to the registrar of companies and to the liquidation committee (if any) or a member of that committee.

(2) In the alternative, notice of the death may be given—

(a)if the deceased liquidator was a partner in a firm, by a partner qualified to act as an insolvency practitioner or who is a member of any body approved by the Secretary of State for the authorisation of insolvency practitioners, or

(b)by any person, if he delivers with the notice a copy of the relevant death certificate.

Commencement Information

I262Rule 4.133CVL in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Loss of qualification as insolvency practitionerE+W

4.134.  (NO CVL APPLICATION)

(1) This Rule applies where the liquidator vacates office on ceasing to be qualified to act as an insolvency practitioner in relation to the company.

(2) [[FORM 4.45]] He shall forthwith give notice of his doing so to the official receiver, who shall give notice to the Secretary of State.

The official receiver shall file in court a copy of his notice under this paragraph.

(3) Rule 4.121 applies as regards the liquidator obtaining his release, as if he had been removed by the court.

Commencement Information

I263Rule 4.134 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Loss of qualification as insolvency practitionerE+W

4.135-CVL.—(1) This Rule applies where the liquidator vacates office on ceasing to be qualified to act as an insolvency practitioner in relation to the company.

(2) [[FORM 4.46] [FORM 4.45]] He shall forthwith give notice of his doing so to the registrar of companies and the Secretary of State.

(3) Rule 4.122-CVL applies as regards the liquidator obtaining his release, as if he had been removed by the court.

Commencement Information

I264Rule 4.135CVL in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Vacation of office on making of winding-up orderE+W

4.136-CVL.  Where the liquidator vacates office in consequence of the court making a winding-up order against the company, Rule 4.122-CVL applies as regards his obtaining his release, as if he had been removed by the court.

Commencement Information

I265Rule 4.136CVL in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Notice to official receiver of intention to vacate officeE+W

4.137.  (NO CVL APPLICATION)

(1) Where the liquidator intends to vacate office, whether by resignation or otherwise, and there remain any unrealised assets, he shall give notice of his intention to the official receiver, informing him of the nature, value and whereabouts of the assets in question.

(2) Where there is to be a creditors' meeting to receive the liquidator's resignation, or otherwise in respect of his vacation of office, the notice to the official receiver must be given at least 21 days before the meeting.

Commencement Information

I266Rule 4.137 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Liquidator's duties on vacating officeE+W

4.138.—(1) Where the liquidator ceases to be in office as such, in consequence of removal, resignation or cesser of qualification as an insolvency practitioner, he is under obligation forthwith to deliver up to the person succeeding him as liquidator the assets (after deduction of any expenses properly incurred, and distributions made, by him) and further to deliver up to that person—

(a)the records of the liquidation, including correspondence, proofs and other related papers appertaining to the administration while it was within his responsibility, and

(b)the company's books, papers and other records.

(2) When the winding up is for practical purposes complete, the liquidator shall forthwith file in court all proofs remaining with him in the proceedings. (NO CVL APPLICATION)

Commencement Information

I267Rule 4.138 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

SECTION F: THE LIQUIDATOR IN A MEMBERS' VOLUNTARY WINDING UPE+W
Appointment by the companyE+W

4.139.—(1) This Rule applies where the liquidator is appointed by a meeting of the company.

(2) [[FORM 4.27] [FORM 4.28]] Subject as follows, the chairman of the meeting shall certify the appointment, but not unless and until the person appointed has provided him with a written statement to the effect that he is an insolvency practitioner, duly qualified under the Act to be the liquidator, and that he consents so to act.

(3) The chairman shall send the certificate forthwith to the liquidator, who shall keep it as part of the records of the liquidation.

(4) Not later than 28 days from his appointment, the liquidator shall give notice of it to all creditors of the company of whom he is aware in that period.

Commencement Information

I268Rule 4.139 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Appointment by the courtE+W

4.140.—(1) This Rule applies where the liquidator is appointed by the court under section 108.

(2) [[FORM 4.29] [FORM 4.30]] The court's order shall not issue unless and until the person appointed has filed in court a statement to the effect that he is an insolvency practitioner, duly qualified under the Act to be the liquidator, and that he consents so to act.

(3) Thereafter, the court shall send a sealed copy of the order to the liquidator, whose appointment takes effect from the date of the order.

(4) Not later than 28 days from his appointment, the liquidator shall give notice of it to all creditors of the company of whom he is aware in that period.

Commencement Information

I269Rule 4.140 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Authentication of liquidator's appointmentE+W

4.141.  A copy of the certificate of the liquidator's appointment or (as the case may be) a sealed copy of the court's order appointing him may in any proceedings be adduced as proof that the person appointed is duly authorised to exercise the powers and perform the duties of liquidator in the company's winding up.

Commencement Information

I270Rule 4.141 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Company meeting to receive liquidator's resignationE+W

4.142.—(1) Before resigning his office, the liquidator must call a meeting of the company for the purpose of receiving his resignation. The notice summoning the meeting shall indicate that this is the purpose, or one of the purposes, of it.

(2) The notice under paragraph (1) must be accompanied by an account of the liquidator's administration of the winding up, including—

(a)a summary of his receipts and payments, and

(b)a statement by him that he has reconciled his account with that which is held by the Secretary of State in respect of the winding up.

(3) Subject as follows, the liquidator may only proceed under this Rule on grounds of ill health or because—

(a)he intends ceasing to be in practice as an insolvency practitioner, or

(b)there is some conflict of interest or change of personal circumstances which precludes or makes impracticable the further discharge by him of the duties of liquidator.

(4) Where two or more persons are acting as liquidator jointly, any one of them may proceed under this Rule (without prejudice to the continuation in office of the other or others) on the ground that, in his opinion or that of the other or others, it is no longer expedient that there should continue to be the present number of joint liquidators.

(5) [[FORM 4.33]] The notice of the liquidator's resignation required by section 171(5) shall be given by him forthwith after the meeting.

(6) Where a new liquidator is appointed in place of one who has resigned, the former shall, in giving notice of his appointment, state that his predecessor has resigned.

Commencement Information

I271Rule 4.142 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Removal of liquidator by the courtE+W

4.143.—(1) This Rule applies where application is made to the court for the removal of the liquidator, or for an order directing the liquidator to summon a company meeting for the purpose of removing him.

(2) The court may, if it thinks that no sufficient cause is shown for the application, dismiss it; but it shall not do so unless the applicant has had an opportunity to attend the court for an ex parte hearing, of which he has been given at least 7 days' notice.

If the application is not dismissed under this paragraph, the court shall fix a venue for it to be heard.

(3) The court may require the applicant to make a deposit or give security for the costs to be incurred by the liquidator on the application.

(4) The applicant shall, at least 14 days before the hearing, send to the liquidator a notice stating the venue and accompanied by a copy of the application, and of any evidence which he intends to adduce in support of it.

Subject to any contrary order of the court, the costs of the application are not payable out of the assets.

(5) Where the court removes the liquidator—

(a)[[FORM 4.39] [FORM 4.40]] it shall send 2 copies of the order of removal to him, one to be sent by him forthwith to the registrar of companies, with notice of his ceasing to act;

(b)the order may include such provision as the court thinks fit with respect to matters arising in connection with the removal; and

(c)if the court appoints a new liquidator, Rule 4.140 applies.

Commencement Information

I272Rule 4.143 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Release of resigning or removed liquidatorE+W

4.144.—(1) [[FORM 4.40]] Where the liquidator resigns, he has his release from the date on which he gives notice of his resignation to the registrar of companies.

(2) [[FORM 4.40]] Where the liquidator is removed by a meeting of the company, he shall forthwith give notice to the registrar of companies of his ceasing to act.

(3) [[FORM 4.41]] Where the liquidator is removed by the court, he must apply to the Secretary of State for his release.

(4) When the Secretary of State gives the release, he shall certify it accordingly, and send the certificate to the registrar of companies.

(5) A copy of the certificate shall be sent by the Secretary of State to the former liquidator, whose release is effective from the date of the certificate.

Commencement Information

I273Rule 4.144 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Liquidator deceasedE+W

4.145.—(1) [[FORM 4.44]] Subject as follows, where the liquidator has died, it is the duty of his personal representatives to give notice of the fact, and of the date of death, to the company's directors, or any one of them, and to the registrar of companies.

(2) In the alternative, notice of the death may be given—

(a)if the deceased liquidator was a partner in a firm, by a partner qualified to act as an insolvency practitioner or who is a member of any body approved by the Secretary of State for the authorisation of insolvency practitioners, or

(b)by any person, if he delivers with the notice a copy of the relevant death certificate.

Commencement Information

I274Rule 4.145 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Loss of qualification as insolvency practitionerE+W

4.146.—(1) This Rule applies where the liquidator vacates office on ceasing to be qualified to act as an insolvency practitioner in relation to the company.

(2) [[FORM 4.46] [FORM 4.45]] He shall forthwith give notice of his doing so to the registrar of companies and the Secretary of State.

(3) Rule 4.144 applies as regards the liquidator obtaining his release, as if he had been removed by the court.

Commencement Information

I275Rule 4.146 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Vacation of office on making of winding-up orderE+W

4.147.  Where the liquidator vacates office in consequence of the court making a winding-up order against the company, Rule 4.144 applies as regards his obtaining his release, as if he had been removed by the court.

Commencement Information

I276Rule 4.147 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Liquidator's duties on vacating officeE+W

4.148.  Where the liquidator ceases to be in office as such, in consequence of removal, resignation or cesser of qualification as an insolvency practitioner, he is under obligation forthwith to deliver up to the person succeeding him as liquidator the assets (after deduction of any expenses properly incurred, and distributions made, by him) and further to deliver up to that person—

(a)the records of the liquidation, including correspondence, proofs and other related papers appertaining to the administration while it was within his responsibility, and

(b)the company's books, papers and other records.

Commencement Information

I277Rule 4.148 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

SECTION G: RULES APPLYING IN EVERY WINDING UP, WHETHER VOLUNTARY OR BY THE COURTE+W
Power of court to set aside certain transactionsE+W

4.149.—(1) If in the administration of the estate the liquidator enters into any transaction with a person who is an associate of his, the court may, on the application of any person interested, set the transaction aside and order the liquidator to compensate the company for any loss suffered in consequence of it.

(2) This does not apply if either—

(a)the transaction was entered into with the prior consent of the court, or

(b)it is shown to the court's satisfaction that the transaction was for value, and that it was entered into by the liquidator without knowing, or having any reason to suppose, that the person concerned was an associate.

(3) Nothing in this Rule is to be taken as prejudicing the operation of any rule of law or equity with respect to a liquidator's dealings with trust property, or the fiduciary obligations of any person.

Commencement Information

I278Rule 4.149 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Rule against solicitationE+W

4.150.—(1) Where the court is satisfied that any improper solicitation has been used by or on behalf of the liquidator in obtaining proxies or procuring his appointment, it may order that no remuneration out of the assets be allowed to any person by whom, or on whose behalf, the solicitation was exercised.

(2) An order of the court under this Rule overrides any resolution of the liquidation committee or the creditors, or any other provision of the Rules relating to the liquidator's remuneration.

Commencement Information

I279Rule 4.150 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

CHAPTER 12E+WTHE LIQUIDATION COMMITTEE

PreliminaryE+W

4.151.  (NO CVL APPLICATION)

For the purposes of this Chapter—

(a)an “insolvent winding upis where the company is being wound up on grounds which include inability to pay its debts, and

(b)a “solvent winding upis where the company is being wound up on grounds which do not include that one.

Commencement Information

I280Rule 4.151 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Membership of committeeE+W

4.152.—(1) Subject to Rule 4.154 below, the liquidation committee shall consist as follows—

(a)in any case of at least 3, and not more than 5, creditors of the company elected by the meeting of creditors held under section 141 of the Act, and

(b)also, in the case of a solvent winding up, where the contributories' meeting held under that section so decides, of up to 3 contributories, elected by that meeting.

(NO CVL APPLICATION)

(2-CVL) The committee must have at least 3 members before it can be established.

(3) Any creditor of the company (other than one whose debt is fully secured) is eligible to be a member of the committee, so long as—

(a)he has lodged a proof of his debt, and

(b)his proof has neither been wholly disallowed for voting purposes, nor wholly rejected for purposes of distribution or dividend.

(4) No person can be a member as both a creditor and a contributory.

(5) A body corporate may be a member of the committee, but it cannot act as such otherwise than by a representative appointed under Rule 4.159.

(6) Members of the committee elected or appointed to represent the creditors are called “creditor members”; and those elected or appointed to represent the contributories are called “contributory members”.

(7) Where a representative of the Deposit Protection Board exercises the right (under section 28 of the Banking Act 1979 to be a member of the committee, he is to be regarded as an additional creditor member.

Commencement Information

I281Rule 4.152 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Formalities of establishmentE+W

4.153.—(1) [[FORM 4.47]] The liquidation committee does not come into being, and accordingly cannot act, until the liquidator has issued a certificate of its due constitution.

(2) If the chairman of the meeting which resolves to establish the committee is not the liquidator, he shall forthwith give notice of the resolution to the liquidator (or, as the case may be, the person appointed as liquidator by that same meeting), and inform him of the names and addresses of the persons elected to be members of the committee.

(3) No person may act as a member of the committee unless and until he has agreed to do so; and the liquidator's certificate of the committee's due constitution shall not issue before the minimum number of persons (in accordance with Rule 4.152) who are to be members of it have agreed to act.

(4) As and when the others (if any) agree to act, the liquidator shall issue an amended certificate.

(5) The certificate, and any amended certificate, shall be filed in court by the liquidator.

(NO CVL APPLICATION)

(6-CVL) [[FORM 4.47] [FORM 4.48]] The certificate, and any amended certificate, shall be sent by the liquidator to the registrar of companies.

(7) [[FORM 4.49]] If after the first establishment of the committee there is any change in its membership, the liquidator shall report the change to the court. (NO CVL APPLICATION)

(8-CVL) [[FORM 4.49] [FORM 4.48]] If after the first establishment of the committee there is any change in its membership, the liquidator shall report the change to the registrar of companies.

Commencement Information

I282Rule 4.153 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Committee established by contributoriesE+W

4.154.  (NO CVL APPLICATION)

(1) The following applies where the creditors' meeting under section 141 does not decide that a liquidation committee should be established, or decides that a committee should not be established.

(2) The meeting of contributories under that section may appoint one of their number to make application to the court for an order to the liquidator that a further creditors' meeting be summoned for the purpose of establishing a liquidation committee; and—

(a)the court may, if it thinks that there are special circumstances to justify it, make that order, and

(b)the creditors' meeting summoned by the liquidator in compliance with the order is deemed to have been summoned under section 141.

(3) If the creditors' meeting so summoned does not establish a liquidation committee, a meeting of contributories may do so.

(4) The committee shall then consist of at least 3, and not more than 5, contributories elected by that meeting; and Rule 4.153 applies, substituting references to contributories for references to creditors.

Commencement Information

I283Rule 4.154 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Obligations of liquidator to committeeE+W

4.155.—(1) Subject as follows, it is the duty of the liquidator to report to the members of the liquidation committee all such matters as appear to him to be, or as they have indicated to him as being, of concern to them with respect to the winding up.

(2) In the case of matters so indicated to him by the committee, the liquidator need not comply with any request for information where it appears to him that—

(a)the request is frivolous or unreasonable, or

(b)the cost of complying would be excessive, having regard to the relative importance of the information, or

(c)there are not sufficient assets to enable him to comply.

(3) Where the committee has come into being more than 28 days after the appointment of the liquidator, he shall report to them, in summary form, what actions he has taken since his appointment, and shall answer all such questions as they may put to him regarding his conduct of the winding up hitherto.

(4) A person who becomes a member of the committee at any time after its first establishment is not entitled to require a report to him by the liquidator, otherwise than in summary form, of any matters previously arising.

(5) Nothing in this Rule disentitles the committee, or any member of it, from having access to the liquidator's records of the liquidation, or from seeking an explanation of any matter within the committee's responsibility.

Commencement Information

I284Rule 4.155 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Meetings of the committeeE+W

4.156.—(1) Subject as follows, meetings of the liquidation committee shall be held when and where determined by the liquidator.

(2) The liquidator shall call a first meeting of the committee to take place within 3 months of his appointment or of the committee's establishment (whichever is the later); and thereafter he shall call a meeting—

(a)if so requested by a creditor member of the committee or his representative (the meeting then to be held within 21 days of the request being received by the liquidator), and

(b)for a specified date, if the committee has previously resolved that a meeting be held on that date.

(3) The liquidator shall give 7 days' written notice of the venue of a meeting to every member of the committee (or his representative, if designated for that purpose), unless in any case the requirement of the notice has been waived by or on behalf of any member.

Waiver may be signified either at or before the meeting.

Commencement Information

I285Rule 4.156 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

The chairman at meetingsE+W

4.157.—(1) The chairman at any meeting of the liquidation committee shall be the liquidator, or a person nominated by him to act.

(2) A person so nominated must be either—

(a)one who is qualified to act as an insolvency practitioner in relation to the company, or

(b)an employee of the liquidator or his firm who is experienced in insolvency matters.

Commencement Information

I286Rule 4.157 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

QuorumE+W

4.158.—(1) A meeting of the committee is duly constituted if due notice of it has been given to all the members, and at least 2 creditor members are present or represented.

(NO CVL APPLICATION)

(2-CVL) A meeting of the committee is duly constituted if due notice of it has been given to all the members, and at least 2 members are present or represented.

Commencement Information

I287Rule 4.158 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Committee-members' representativesE+W

4.159.—(1) A member of the liquidation committee may, in relation to the business of the committee, be represented by another person duly authorised by him for that purpose.

(2) A person acting as a committee-member's representative must hold a letter of authority entitling him so to act (either generally or specially) and signed by or on behalf of the committee-member.

(3) The chairman at any meeting of the committee may call on a person claiming to act as a committee-member's representative to produce his letter of authority, and may exclude him if it appears that his authority is deficient.

(4) No member may be represented by a body corporate, or by a person who is an undischarged bankrupt or is subject to a composition or arrangement with his creditors.

(5) No person shall—

(a)on the same committee, act at one and the same time as representative of more than one committee-member, or

(b)act both as a member of the committee and as representative of another member.

(6) Where a member's representative signs any document on the member's behalf, the fact that he so signs must be stated below his signature.

Commencement Information

I288Rule 4.159 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

ResignationE+W

4.160.  A member of the liquidation committee may resign by notice in writing delivered to the liquidator.

Commencement Information

I289Rule 4.160 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Termination of membershipE+W

4.161.—(1) A person's membership of the liquidation committee is automatically terminated if—

(a)he becomes bankrupt or compounds or arranges with his creditors, or

(b)at 3 consecutive meetings of the committee he is neither present nor represented (unless at the third of those meetings it is resolved that this Rule is not to apply in his case).

(2) However, if the cause of termination is the member's bankruptcy, his trustee in bankruptcy replaces him as a member of the committee.

(3) The membership of a creditor member is also automatically terminated if he ceases to be, or is found never to have been, a creditor.

Commencement Information

I290Rule 4.161 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

RemovalE+W

4.162.—(1) A creditor member of the committee may be removed by resolution at a meeting of creditors; and a contributory member may be removed by a resolution of a meeting of contributories.

(2) In either case, 14 days' notice must be given of the intention to move the resolution.

Commencement Information

I291Rule 4.162 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Vacancy (creditor members)E+W

4.163.—(1) The following applies if there is a vacancy among the creditor members of the committee.

(2) The vacancy need not be filled if the liquidator and a majority of the remaining creditor members so agree, provided that the total number of members does not fall below the minimum required by Rule 4.152.

(3) The liquidator may appoint any creditor (being qualified under the Rules to be a member of the committee) to fill the vacancy, if a majority of the other creditor members agree to the appointment, and the creditor concerned consents to act.

(4) Alternatively, a meeting of creditors may resolve that a creditor be appointed (with his consent) to fill the vacancy. In this case, at least 14 days' notice must have been given of the resolution to make such an appointment (whether or not of a person named in the notice).

(5) Where the vacancy is filled by an appointment made by a creditors' meeting at which the liquidator is not present, the chairman of the meeting shall report to the liquidator the appointment which has been made.

Commencement Information

I292Rule 4.163 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Vacancy (contributory members)E+W

4.164.—(1) The following applies if there is a vacancy among the contributory members of the committee.

(2) The vacancy need not be filled if the liquidator and a majority of the remaining contributory members so agree, provided that, in the case of a committee of contributory members only, the total number of members does not fall below the minimum required by Rule 4.154(4) or, as the case may be, 4.171(5).

(3) The liquidator may appoint any contributory member (being qualified under the Rules to be a member of the committee) to fill the vacancy, if a majority of the other contributory members agree to the appointment, and the contributory concerned consents to act.

(4) Alternatively, a meeting of contributories may resolve that a contributory be appointed (with his consent) to fill the vacancy. In this case, at least 14 days' notice must have been given of the resolution to make such an appointment (whether or not of a person named in the notice).

(5-CVL) Where the contributories make an appointment under paragraph (4), the creditor members of the committee may, if they think fit, resolve that the person appointed ought not to be a member of the committee; and—

(a)that person is not then, unless the court otherwise directs, qualified to act as a member of the committee, and

(b)on any application to the court for a direction under this paragraph the court may, if it thinks fit, appoint another person (being a contributory) to fill the vacancy on the committee.

(6) Where the vacancy is filled by an appointment made by a contributories' meeting at which the liquidator is not present, the chairman of the meeting shall report to the liquidator the appointment which has been made.

Commencement Information

I293Rule 4.164 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Voting rights and resolutionsE+W

4.165.  (NO CVL APPLICATION)

(1) At any meeting of the committee, each member of it (whether present himself, or by his representative) has one vote; and a resolution is passed when a majority of the creditor members present or represented have voted in favour of it.

(2) Subject to the next paragraph, the votes of contributory members do not count towards the number required for passing a resolution, but the way in which they vote on any resolution shall be recorded.

(3) Paragraph (2) does not apply where, by virtue of Rule 4.154 or 4.171, the only members of the committee are contributories. In that case the committee is to be treated for voting purposes as if all its members were creditors.

(4) Every resolution passed shall be recorded in writing, either separately or as part of the minutes of the meeting. The record shall be signed by the chairman and kept with the records of the liquidation.

Commencement Information

I294Rule 4.165 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Voting rights and resolutionsE+W

4.166-CVL.—(1) At any meeting of the committee, each member of it (whether present himself, or by his representative) has one vote; and a resolution is passed when a majority of the members present or represented have voted in favour of it.

(2) Every resolution passed shall be recorded in writing, either separately or as part of the minutes of the meeting. The record shall be signed by the chairman and kept with the records of the liquidation.

Commencement Information

I295Rule 4.166CVL in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Resolutions by postE+W

4.167.—(1) In accordance with this Rule, the liquidator may seek to obtain the agreement of members of the liquidation committee to a resolution by sending to every member (or his representative designated for the purpose) a copy of the proposed resolution.

(2) Where the liquidator makes use of the procedure allowed by this Rule, he shall send out to members of the committee or their representatives (as the case may be) a statement incorporating the resolution to which their agreement is sought, each resolution (if more than one) being set out in a separate document.

(3) Any creditor member of the committee may, within 7 business days from the date of the liquidator sending out a resolution, require him to summon a meeting of the committee to consider the matters raised by the resolution. (NO CVL APPLICATION)

(4-CVL) Any member of the committee may, within 7 business days from the date of the liquidator sending out a resolution, require him to summon a meeting of the committee to consider the matters raised by the resolution.

(5) In the absence of such a request, the resolution is deemed to have been passed by the committee if and when the liquidator is notified in writing by a majority of the creditor members that they concur with it. (NO CVL APPLICATION)

(6-CVL) In the absence of such a request, the resolution is deemed to have been passed by the committee if and when the liquidator is notified in writing by a majority of the members that they concur with it.

(7) A copy of every resolution passed under this Rule, and a note that the committee's concurrence was obtained, shall be kept with the records of the liquidation.

Commencement Information

I296Rule 4.167 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Liquidator's reportsE+W

4.168.—(1) The liquidator shall, as and when directed by the liquidation committee (but not more often than once in any period of 2 months), send a written report to every member of the committee setting out the position generally as regards the progress of the winding up and matters arising in connection with it, to which he (the liquidator) considers the committee's attention should be drawn.

(2) In the absence of such directions by the committee, the liquidator shall send such a report not less often than once in every period of 6 months.

(3) The obligations of the liquidator under this Rule are without prejudice to those imposed by Rule 4.155.

Commencement Information

I297Rule 4.168 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Expenses of members, etcE+W

4.169.  The liquidator shall defray out of the assets, in the prescribed order of priority, any reasonable travelling expenses directly incurred by members of the liquidation committee or their representatives in respect of their attendance at the committee's meetings, or otherwise on the committee's business.

Commencement Information

I298Rule 4.169 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Dealings by committee-members and othersE+W

4.170.—(1) This Rule applies to—

(a)any member of the liquidation committee,

(b)any committee-member's representative,

(c)any person who is an associate of a member of the committee or a committee-member's representative, and

(d)any person who has been a member of the committee at any time in the last 12 months.

(2) Subject as follows, a person to whom this Rule applies shall not enter into any transaction whereby he—

(a)receives out of the company's assets any payment for services given or goods supplied in connection with the administration, or

(b)obtains any profit from the administration, or

(c)acquires any asset forming part of the estate.

(3) Such a transaction may be entered into by a person to whom this Rule applies—

(a)with the prior leave of the court, or

(b)if he does so as a matter of urgency, or by way of performance of a contract in force before the date on which the company went into liquidation, and obtains the court's leave for the transaction, having applied for it without undue delay, or

(c)with the prior sanction of the liquidation committee, where it is satisfied (after full disclosure of the circumstances) that the person will be giving full value in the transaction.

(4) Where in the committee a resolution is proposed that sanction be accorded for a transaction to be entered into which, without that sanction or the leave of the court, would be in contravention of this Rule, no member of the committee, and no representative of a member, shall vote if he is to participate directly or indirectly in the transaction.

(5) The court may, on the application of any person interested—

(a)set aside a transaction on the ground that it has been entered into in contravention of this Rule, and

(b)make with respect to it such other order as it thinks fit, including (subject to the following paragraph) an order requiring a person to whom this Rule applies to account for any profit obtained from the transaction and compensate the estate for any resultant loss.

(6) In the case of a person to whom this Rule applies as an associate of a member of the committee or of a committee-member's representative, the court shall not make any order under paragraph (5), if satisfied that he entered into the relevant transaction without having any reason to suppose that in doing so he would contravene this Rule.

(7) The costs of an application to the court for leave under this Rule are not payable out of the assets, unless the court so orders.

Commencement Information

I299Rule 4.170 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Composition of committee when creditors paid in fullE+W

4.171.—(1) This Rule applies if the liquidator issues a certificate that the creditors have been paid in full, with interest in accordance with section 189.

(2) [[FORM 4.50]] The liquidator shall forthwith file the certificate in court. (NO CVL APPLICATION)

(3-CVL) [[FORM 4.51]] The liquidator shall forthwith send a copy of the certificate to the registrar of companies.

(4) The creditor members of the liquidation committee cease to be members of the committee.

(5) The committee continues in being unless and until abolished by decision of a meeting of contributories, and (subject to the next paragraph) so long as it consists of at least 3 contributory members.

(6) The committee does not cease to exist on account of the number of contributory members falling below 3, unless and until 28 days have elapsed since the issue of the liquidator's certificate under paragraph (1).

But at any time when the committee consists of less than 3 contributory members, it is suspended and cannot act.

(7) Contributories may be co-opted by the liquidator, or appointed by a contributories' meeting, to be members of the committee; but the maximum number of members is 5.

(8) The foregoing Rules in this Chapter continue to apply to the liquidation committee (with any necessary modifications) as if all the members of the committee were creditor members.

Commencement Information

I300Rule 4.171 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Committee's functions vested in Secretary of StateE+W

4.172.  (NO CVL APPLICATION)

(1) At any time when the functions of the liquidation committee are vested in the Secretary of State under section 141(4) or (5), requirements of the Act or the Rules about notices to be given, or reports to be made, to the committee by the liquidator do not apply, otherwise than as enabling the committee to require a report as to any matter.

(2) Where the committee's functions are so vested under section 141(5), they may be exercised by the official receiver.

Commencement Information

I301Rule 4.172 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

CHAPTER 13E+WTHE LIQUIDATION COMMITTEE WHERE WINDING UP FOLLOWS IMMEDIATELY ON ADMINISTRATION (NO CVL APPLICATION)

PreliminaryE+W

4.173.—(1) The Rules in this Chapter apply where—

(a)the winding-up order has been made immediately upon the discharge of an administration order under Part II of the Act, and

(b)the court makes an order under section 140(1) of the Act appointing as liquidator the person who was previously the administrator.

(2) In this Chapter, “insolvent winding up”, “solvent winding up”, “creditor member” and “contributory member” mean the same as in Chapter 12.

Commencement Information

I302Rule 4.173 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Continuation of creditors' committeeE+W

4.174.—(1) If under section 26 a creditors' committee has been established for the purposes of the administration, then (subject as follows in this Chapter) that committee continues in being as the liquidation committee for the purposes of the winding up, and—

(a)it is deemed to be a committee established as such under section 141, and

(b)no action shall be taken under subsection (1) to (3) of that section to establish any other.

(2) This Rule does not apply if, at the time when the court's order under section 140(1) is made, the committee under section 26 consists of less than 3 members; and a creditor who was, immediately before that date, a member of it, ceases to be a member on the making of the order if his debt is fully secured.

Commencement Information

I303Rule 4.174 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Membership of committeeE+W

4.175.—(1) Subject as follows, the liquidation committee shall consist of at least 3, and not more than 5, creditors of the company, elected by the creditors' meeting held under section 26 or (in order to make up numbers or fill vacancies) by a creditors' meeting summoned by the liquidator after the company goes into liquidation.

(2) In the case of a solvent winding up, the liquidator shall, on not less than 21 days' notice, summon a meeting of contributories, in order to elect (if it so wishes) contributory members of the liquidation committee, up to 3 in number.

Commencement Information

I304Rule 4.175 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Liquidator's certificateE+W

4.176.—(1) [[FORM 4.52]] The liquidator shall issue a certificate of the liquidation committee's continuance, specifying the person who are, or are to be, members of it.

(2) It shall be stated in the certificate whether or not the liquidator has summoned a meeting of contributories under Rule 4.175(2), and whether (if so) the meeting has elected contributories to be members of the committee.

(3) Pending the issue of the liquidator's certificate, the committee is suspended and cannot act.

(4) No person may act, or continue to act, as a member of the committee unless and until he has agreed to do so; and the liquidator's certificate shall not issue until at least the minimum number of persons required under Rule 4.175 to form a committee have signified their agreement.

(5) [[FORM 4.52]] As and when the others signify their agreement, the liquidator shall issue an amended certificate.

(6) The liquidator's certificate (or, as the case may be, the amended certificate) shall be filed by him in court.

(7) [[FORM 4.49]] If subsequently there is any change in the committee's membership, the liquidator shall report the change to the court.

Commencement Information

I305Rule 4.176 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Obligations of liquidator to committeeE+W

4.177.—(1) As soon as may be after the issue of the liquidator's certificate under Rule 4.176, the liquidator shall report to the liquidation committee what actions he has taken since the date on which the company went into liquidation.

(2) A person who becomes a member of the committee after that date is not entitled to require a report to him by the liquidator, otherwise than in a summary form, of any matters previously arising.

(3) Nothing in this Rule disentitles the committee, or any member of it, from having access to the records of the liquidation (whether relating to the period when he was administrator, or to any subsequent period), or from seeking an explanation of any matter within the committee's responsibility.

Commencement Information

I306Rule 4.177 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Application of Chapter 12E+W

4.178.  Except as provided above in this Chapter, Rules 4.155 to 4.172 in Chapter 12 apply to the liquidation committee following the issue of the liquidator's certificate under Rule 4.176, as if it had been established under section 141.

Commencement Information

I307Rule 4.178 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

CHAPTER 14E+WCOLLECTION AND DISTRIBUTION OF COMPANY'S ASSETS BY LIQUIDATOR

General duties of liquidatorE+W

4.179.  (NO CVL APPLICATION)

(1) The duties imposed on the court by the Act with regard to the collection of the company's assets and their application in discharge of its liabilities are discharged by the liquidator as an officer of the court subject to its control.

(2) In the discharge of his duties the liquidator, for the purposes of acquiring and retaining possession of the company's property, has the same powers as a receiver appointed by the High Court, and the court may on his application enforce such acquisition or retention accordingly.

Commencement Information

I308Rule 4.179 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Manner of distributing assetsE+W

4.180.—(1) Whenever the liquidator has sufficient funds in hand for the purpose he shall, subject to the retention of such sums as may be necessary for the expenses of the winding up, declare and distribute dividends among the creditors in respect of the debts which they have respectively proved.

(2) The liquidator shall give notice of his intention to declare and distribute a dividend.

(3) Where the liquidator has declared a dividend, he shall give notice of it to the creditors, stating how the dividend is proposed to be distributed. The notice shall contain such particulars with respect to the company, and to its assets and affairs, as will enable the creditors to comprehend the calculation of the amount of the dividend and the manner of its distribution.

Commencement Information

I309Rule 4.180 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Debts of insolvent company to rank equallyE+W

4.181.  (NO CVL APPLICATION)

Debts other than preferential debts rank equally between themselves in the winding up and, after the preferential debts, shall be paid in full unless the assets are insufficient for meeting them, in which case they abate in equal proportions between themselves.

Commencement Information

I310Rule 4.181 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Supplementary provisions as to dividendE+W

4.182.—(1) In the calculation and distribution of a dividend the liquidator shall make provision—

(a)for any debts which appear to him to be due to persons who, by reason of the distance of their place of residence, may not have had sufficient time to tender and establish their proofs,

(b)for any debts which are the subject of claims which have not yet been determined, and

(c)for disputed proofs and claims.

(2) A creditor who has not proved his debt before the declaration of any dividend is not entitled to disturb, by reason that he has not participated in it, the distribution of that dividend or any other dividend declared before his debt was proved, but—

(a)when he has proved that debt he is entitled to be paid, out of any money for the time being available for the payment of any further dividend, any dividend or dividends which he has failed to receive, and

(b)any dividend or dividends payable under sub-paragraph (a) shall be paid before that money is applied to the payment of any such further dividend.

(3) No action lies against the liquidator for a dividend; but if he refuses to pay a dividend the court may, if it thinks fit, order him to pay it and also to pay, out of his own money—

(a)interest on the dividend, at the rate for the time being specified in section 17 of the Judgments Act 1838, from the time when it was withheld, and

(b)the costs of the proceedings in which the order to pay is made.

Commencement Information

I311Rule 4.182 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Division of unsold assetsE+W

4.183.  Without prejudice to provisions of the Act about disclaimer, the liquidator may, with the permission of the liquidation committee, divide in its existing form amongst the company's creditors, according to its estimated value, any property which from its peculiar nature or other special circumstances cannot be readily or advantageously sold.

Commencement Information

I312Rule 4.183 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

General powers of liquidatorE+W

4.184.—(1) Any permission given by the liquidation committee or the court under section 167(1)(a), or under the Rules, shall not be a general permission but shall relate to a particular proposed exercise of the liquidator's power in question; and a person dealing with the liquidator in good faith and for value is not concerned to enquire whether any such permission has been given.

(2) Where the liquidator has done anything without that permission, the court or the liquidation committee may, for the purpose of enabling him to meet his expenses out of the assets, ratify what he has done; but neither shall do so unless it is satisfied that the liquidator has acted in a case of urgency and has sought ratification without undue delay.

Commencement Information

I313Rule 4.184 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Enforced delivery up of company's propertyE+W

4.185.  (NO CVL APPLICATION)

(1) The powers conferred on the court by section 234 (enforced delivery of company property) are exercisable by the liquidator or, where a provisional liquidator has been appointed, by him.

(2) Any person on whom a requirement under section 234(2) is imposed by the liquidator or provisional liquidator shall, without avoidable delay, comply with it.

Commencement Information

I314Rule 4.185 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Final distributionE+W

4.186.—(1) When the liquidator has realised all the company's assets or so much of them as can, in his opinion, be realised without needlessly protracting the liquidation, he shall give notice, under Part 11 of the Rules, either—

(a)of his intention to declare a final dividend, or

(b)that no dividend, or further dividend, will be declared.

(2) The notice shall contain all such particulars as are required by Part 11 of the Rules and shall require claims against the assets to be established by a date specified in the notice.

(3) After that date, the liquidator shall—

(a)defray any outstanding expenses of the winding up out of the assets, and

(b)if he intends to declare a final dividend, declare and distribute that dividend without regard to the claim of any person in respect of a debt not already proved.

(4) The court may, on the application of any person, postpone the date specified in the notice.

Commencement Information

I315Rule 4.186 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

CHAPTER 15E+WDISCLAIMER

Liquidator's notice of disclaimerE+W

4.187.—(1) [[FORM 4.53]] Where the liquidator disclaims property under section 178, the notice of disclaimer shall contain such particulars of the property disclaimed as enable it to be easily identified.

(2) The notice shall be signed by the liquidator and filed in court, with a copy. The court shall secure that both the notice and the copy are sealed and endorsed with the date of filing.

(3) The copy notice, so sealed and endorsed, shall be returned by the court to the liquidator as follows—

(a)if the notice has been delivered at the offices of the court by the liquidator in person, it shall be handed to him,

(b)if it has been delivered by some person acting on the liquidator's behalf, it shall be handed to that person, for immediate transmission to the liquidator, and

(c)otherwise, it shall be sent to the liquidator by first class post.

The court shall cause to be endorsed on the original notice, or otherwise recorded on the file, the manner in which the copy notice was returned to the liquidator.

(4) For the purposes of section 178, the date of the prescribed notice is that which is endorsed on it, and on the copy, in accordance with this Rule.

Commencement Information

I316Rule 4.187 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Communication of disclaimer to persons interestedE+W

4.188.—(1) [[FORM 4.53]] Within 7 days after the day on which the copy of the notice of disclaimer is returned to him under Rule 4.187, the liquidator shall send or give copies of the notice (showing the date endorsed as required by that Rule) to the persons mentioned in paragraphs (2) to (4) below.

(2) Where the property disclaimed is of a leasehold nature, he shall send or give a copy to every person who (to his knowledge) claims under the company as underlessee or mortgagee.

(3) He shall in any case send or give a copy of the notice to every person who (to his knowledge)—

(a)claims an interest in the disclaimed property, or

(b)is under any liability in respect of the property, not being a liability discharged by the disclaimer.

(4) If the disclaimer is of an unprofitable contract, he shall send or give copies of the notice to all such persons as, to his knowledge, are parties to the contract or have interests under it.

(5) If subsequently it comes to the liquidator's knowledge, in the case of any person, that he has such an interest in the disclaimed property as would have entitled him to receive a copy of the notice of disclaimer in pursuance of paragraphs (2) to (4), the liquidator shall then forthwith send or give to that person a copy of the notice.

But compliance with this paragraph is not required if—

(a)the liquidator is satisfied that the person has already been made aware of the disclaimer and its date, or

(b)the court, on the liquidator's application, orders that compliance is not required in that particular case.

Commencement Information

I317Rule 4.188 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Additional noticesE+W

4.189.  [[FORM 4.53]] The liquidator disclaiming property may, without prejudice to his obligations under sections 178 to 180 and Rules 4.187 and 4.188, at any time give notice of the disclaimer to any persons who in his opinion ought, in the public interest or otherwise, to be informed of it.

Commencement Information

I318Rule 4.189 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Duty to keep court informedE+W

4.190.  The liquidator shall notify the court from time to time as to the persons to whom he has sent or given copies of the notice of disclaimer under the two preceding Rules, giving their names and addresses, and the nature of their respective interests.

Commencement Information

I319Rule 4.190 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Application by interested party under s.178(5)E+W

4.191.  Where, in the case of any property, application is made to the liquidator by an interested party under section 178(5) (request for decision whether the property is to be disclaimed or not), the application—

(a)shall be delivered to the liquidator personally or by registered post, and

(b)[[FORM 4.54]] shall be made in the form known as “notice to elect”, or a substantially similar form.

Commencement Information

I320Rule 4.191 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Interest in property to be declared on requestE+W

4.192.—(1) [[FORM 4.55]] If, in the case of property which the liquidator has the right to disclaim, it appears to him that there is some person who claims, or may claim, to have an interest in the property, he may give notice to that person calling on him to declare within 14 days whether he claims any such interest and, if so, the nature and extent of it.

(2) Failing compliance with the notice, the liquidator is entitled to assume that the person concerned has no such interest in the property as will prevent or impede its disclaimer.

Commencement Information

I321Rule 4.192 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Disclaimer presumed valid and effectiveE+W

4.193.  Any disclaimer of property by the liquidator is presumed valid and effective, unless it is proved that he has been in breach of his duty with respect to the giving of notice of disclaimer, or otherwise under sections 178 to 180, or under this Chapter of the Rules.

Commencement Information

I322Rule 4.193 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Application for exercise of court's powers under s. 181E+W

4.194.—(1) This Rule applies with respect to an application by any person under section 181 for an order of the court to vest or deliver disclaimed property.

(2) The application must be made within 3 months of the applicant becoming aware of the disclaimer, or of his receiving a copy of the liquidator's notice of disclaimer sent under Rule 4.188, whichever is the earlier.

(3) The applicant shall with his application file in court an affidavit—

(a)stating whether he applies under paragraph (a) of section 181(2) (claim of interest in the property) or under paragraph (b) (liability not discharged);

(b)specifying the date on which he received a copy of the liquidator's notice of disclaimer, or otherwise became aware of the disclaimer; and

(c)specifying the grounds of his application and the order which he desires the court to make under section 181.

(4) The court shall fix a venue for the hearing of the application; and the applicant shall, not later than 7 days before the date fixed, give to the liquidator notice of the venue, accompanied by copies of the application and the affidavit under paragraph (3).

(5) On the hearing of the application, the court may give directions as to other persons (if any) who should be sent or given notice of the application and the grounds on which it is made.

(6) Sealed copies of any order made on the application shall be sent by the court to the applicant and the liquidator.

(7) In a case where the property disclaimed is of a leasehold nature, and section 179 applies to suspend the effect of the disclaimer, there shall be included in the court's order a direction giving effect to the disclaimer.

This paragraph does not apply if, at the time when the order is issued, other applications under section 181 are pending in respect of the same property.

Commencement Information

I323Rule 4.194 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

CHAPTER 16E+WSETTLEMENT OF LIST OF CONTRIBUTORIES (NO CVL APPLICATION)

PreliminaryE+W

4.195.  The duties of the court with regard to the settling of the list of contributories are, by virtue of the Rules, delegated to the liquidator.

Commencement Information

I324Rule 4.195 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Duty of liquidator to settle listE+W

4.196.—(1) Subject as follows, the liquidator shall, as soon as may be after his appointment, exercise the court's power to settle a list of the company's contributories for the purposes of section 148 and, with the court's approval, rectify the register of members.

(2) The liquidator's duties under this Rule are performed by him as an officer of the court subject to the court's control.

Commencement Information

I325Rule 4.196 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Form of listE+W

4.197.—(1) The list shall identify—

(a)the several classes of the company's shares (if more than one), and

(b)the several classes of contributories, distinguishing between those who are contributories in their own right and those who are so as representatives of, or liable for the debts of, others.

(2) In the case of each contributory there shall in the list be stated—

(a)his address,

(b)the number and class of shares, or the extent of any other interest to be attributed to him, and

(c)if the shares are not fully paid up, the amounts which have been called up and paid in respect of them (and the equivalent, if any, where his interest is other than shares).

Commencement Information

I326Rule 4.197 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Procedure for settling listE+W

4.198.—(1) Having settled the list, the liquidator shall forthwith give notice, to every person included in the list, that he has done so.

(2) The notice given to each person shall state—

(a)in what character, and for what number of shares or what interest, he is included in the list,

(b)what amounts have been called up and paid up in respect of the shares or interest, and

(c)that in relation to any shares or interest not fully paid up, his inclusion in the list may result in the unpaid capital being called.

(3) The notice shall inform any person to whom it is given that, if he objects to any entry in, or omission from, the list, he should so inform the liquidator in writing within 21 days from the date of the notice.

(4) On receipt of any such objection, the liquidator shall within 14 days give notice to the objector either—

(a)that he has amended the list (specifying the amendment), or

(b)that he considers the objection to be not well-founded and declines to amend the list.

The notice shall in either case inform the objector of the effect of Rule 4.199.

Commencement Information

I327Rule 4.198 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Application to court for variation of the listE+W

4.199.—(1) If a person objects to any entry in, or exclusion from, the list of contributories as settled by the liquidator and, notwithstanding notice by the liquidator declining to amend the list, maintains his objection, he may apply to the court for an order removing the entry to which he objects or (as the case may be) otherwise amending the list.

(2) The application must be made within 21 days of the service on the applicant of the liquidator's notice under Rule 4.198(4).

Commencement Information

I328Rule 4.199 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Variation of, or addition to, the listE+W

4.200.  The liquidator may from time to time vary or add to the list of contributories as previously settled by him, but subject in all respects to the preceding Rules in this Chapter.

Commencement Information

I329Rule 4.200 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Costs not to fall on official receiverE+W

4.201.  The official receiver is not personally liable for any costs incurred by a person in respect of an application to set aside or vary his act or decision in settling the list of contributories, or varying or adding to the list; and the liquidator (if other than the official receiver) is not so liable unless the court makes an order to that effect.

Commencement Information

I330Rule 4.201 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

CHAPTER 17E+WCALLS (NO CVL APPLICATION)

Calls by liquidatorE+W

4.202.  Subject as follows, the powers conferred by the Act with respect to the making of calls on contributories are exercisable by the liquidator as an officer of the court subject to the court's control.

Commencement Information

I331Rule 4.202 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Control by liquidation committeeE+W

4.203.—(1) Where the liquidator proposes to make a call, and there is a liquidation committee, he may summon a meeting of the committee for the purpose of obtaining its sanction.

(2) At least 7 days' notice of the meeting shall be given by the liquidator to each member of the committee.

(3) The notice shall contain a statement of the proposed amount of the call, and the purpose for which it is intended to be made.

Commencement Information

I332Rule 4.203 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Application to court for leave to make a callE+W

4.204.—(1) [[FORM 4.56]] For the purpose of obtaining the leave of the court for the making of a call on any contributories of the company, the liquidator shall apply ex parte, supporting his application by affidavit.

(2) There shall in the application be stated the amount of the proposed call, and the contributories on whom it is to be made.

(3) [[FORM 4.57]] The court may direct that notice of the order be given to the contributories concerned, or to other contributories, or may direct that the notice be publicly advertised.

Commencement Information

I333Rule 4.204 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Making and enforcement of the callE+W

4.205.—(1) [[FORM 4.58]] Notice of the call shall be given to each of the contributories concerned, and shall specify—

(a)the amount or balance due from him in respect of it, and

(b)whether the call is made with the sanction of the court or the liquidation committee.

(2) [[FORM 4.59]] Payment of the amount due from any contributory may be enforced by order of the court.

Commencement Information

I334Rule 4.205 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

CHAPTER 18E+WSPECIAL MANAGER

Appointment and remunerationE+W

4.206.—(1) An application made by the liquidator under section 177 for the appointment of a person to be special manager shall be supported by a report setting out the reasons for the application.

The report shall include the applicant's estimate of the value of the assets in respect of which the special manager is to be appointed.

(2) This Chapter applies also with respect to an application by the provisional liquidator, where one has been appointed, and references to the liquidator are to be read accordingly as including the provisional liquidator. (NO CVL APPLICATION)

(3) [[FORM 4.60]] The court's order appointing the special manager shall specify the duration of his appointment, which may be for a period of time, or until the occurrence of a specified event. Alternatively, the order may specify that the duration of the appointment is to be subject to a further order of the court.

(4) The appointment of a special manager may be renewed by order of the court.

(5) The special manager's remuneration shall be fixed from time to time by the court.

(6) The acts of the special manager are valid notwithstanding any defect in his appointment or qualifications.

Commencement Information

I335Rule 4.206 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

SecurityE+W

4.207.—(1) The appointment of the special manager does not take effect until the person appointed has given (or, being allowed by the court to do so, undertaken to give) security to the person who applies for him to be appointed.

(2) It is not necessary that security shall be given for each separate company liquidation; but it may be given either specially for a particular liquidation, or generally for any liquidation in relation to which the special manager may be employed as such.

(3) The amount of the security shall be not less than the value of the assets in respect of which he is appointed, as estimated by the applicant in his report under Rule 4.206.

(4) When the special manager has given security to the person applying for his appointment, that person shall file in court a certificate as to the adequacy of the security.

(5) The cost of providing the security shall be paid in the first instance by the special manager; but—

(a)where a winding-up order is not made, he is entitled to be reimbursed out of the property of the company, and the court may make an order on the company accordingly, and

(b)where a winding-up order is made, he is entitled to be reimbursed out of the assets in the prescribed order of priority.

(NO CVL APPLICATION)

(6-CVL) The cost of providing the security shall be paid in the first instance by the special manager; but he is entitled to be reimbursed out of the assets, in the prescribed order of priority.

Commencement Information

I336Rule 4.207 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Failure to give or keep up securityE+W

4.208.—(1) If the special manager fails to give the required security within the time stated for that purpose by the order appointing him, or any extension of that time that may be allowed, the liquidator shall report the failure to the court, which may thereupon discharge the order appointing the special manager.

(2) If the special manager fails to keep up his security, the liquidator shall report his failure to the court, which may thereupon remove the special manager, and make such order as it thinks fit as to costs.

(3) If an order is made under this Rule removing the special manager, or discharging the order appointing him, the court shall give directions as to whether any, and if so what, steps should be taken for the appointment of another special manager in his place.

Commencement Information

I337Rule 4.208 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

AccountingE+W

4.209.—(1) The special manager shall produce accounts, containing details of his receipts and payments, for the approval of the liquidator.

(2) The accounts shall be in respect of 3-month periods for the duration of the special manager's appointment (or for a lesser period, if his appointment terminates less than 3 months from its date, or from the date to which the last accounts were made up).

(3) When the accounts have been approved, the special manager's receipts and payments shall be added to those of the liquidator.

Commencement Information

I338Rule 4.209 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Termination of appointmentE+W

4.210.—(1) The special manager's appointment terminates if the winding-up petition is dismissed or if, a provisional liquidator having been appointed, the latter is discharged without a winding-up order having been made. (NO CVL APPLICATION)

(2) If the liquidator is of opinion that the employment of the special manager is no longer necessary or profitable for the company, he shall apply to the court for directions, and the court may order the special manager's appointment to be terminated.

(3) The liquidator shall make the same application if a resolution of the creditors is passed, requesting that the appointment be terminated.

Commencement Information

I339Rule 4.210 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

CHAPTER 19E+WPUBLIC EXAMINATION OF COMPANY OFFICERS AND OTHERS

Order for public examinationE+W

4.211.—(1) [[FORM 4.61]] If the official receiver applies to the court under section 133 for the public examination of any person, a copy of the court's order shall, forthwith after its making, be served on that person.

(2) Where the application relates to a person falling within section 133(1)(c) (promoters, past managers, etc.), it shall be accompanied by a report by the official receiver indicating—

(a)the grounds on which the person is supposed to fall within that paragraph, and

(b)whether, in the official receiver's opinion, it is likely that service of the order on the person can be effected by post at a known address.

(3) If in his report the official receiver gives it as his opinion that, in a case to which paragraph (2) applies, there is no reasonable certainty that service by post will be effective, the court may direct that the order be served by some means other than, or in addition to, post.

(4) In a case to which paragraphs (2) and (3) apply, the court shall rescind the order if satisfied by the person to whom it is directed that he does not fall within section 133(1)(c).

Commencement Information

I340Rule 4.211 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Notice of hearingE+W

4.212.—(1) The court's order shall appoint a venue for the examination of the person to whom it is directed (“the examinee”), and direct his attendance thereat.

(2) The official receiver shall give at least 14 days' notice of the hearing—

(a)if a liquidator has been nominated or appointed, to him;

(b)if a special manager has been appointed, to him; and

(c)subject to any contrary direction of the court, to every creditor and contributory of the company who is known to the official receiver or is identified in the company's statement of affairs.

(3) The official receiver may, if he thinks fit, cause notice of the order to be given, by advertisement in one or more newspapers, at least 14 days before the date fixed for the hearing; but, unless the court otherwise directs, there shall be no such advertisement before at least 7 days have elapsed since the examinee was served with the order.

Commencement Information

I341Rule 4.212 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Order on request by creditors or contributoriesE+W

4.213.—(1) [[FORM 4.62] [FORM 4.63]] A request to the official receiver by creditors or contributories under section 133(2) shall be made in writing and be accompanied by—

(a)a list of the creditors concurring with the request and the amounts of their respective claims in the liquidation or (as the case may be) of the contributories so concurring, with their respective values, and

(b)from each creditor or contributory concurring, written confirmation of his concurrence.

This paragraph does not apply if the requisitioning creditor's debt or, as the case may be, requisitioning contributory's shareholding is alone sufficient, without the concurrence of others.

(2) The request must specify the name of the proposed examinee, the relationship which he has, or has had, to the company and the reasons why his examination is requested.

(3) Before an application to the court is made on the request, the requisitionists shall deposit with the official receiver such sum as the latter may determine to be appropriate by way of security for the expenses of the hearing of a public examination, if ordered.

(4) Subject as follows, the official receiver shall, within 28 days of receiving the request, make the application to the court required by section 133(2).

(5) If the official receiver is of opinion that the request is an unreasonable one in the circumstances, he may apply to the court for an order relieving him from the obligation to make the application otherwise required by that subsection.

(6) If the court so orders, and the application for the order was made ex parte, notice of the order shall be given forthwith by the official receiver to the requisitionists. If the application for an order is dismissed, the official receiver's application under section 133(2) shall be made forthwith on conclusion of the hearing of the application first mentioned.

Commencement Information

I342Rule 4.213 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Witness unfit for examinationE+W

4.214.—(1) [[FORM 4.64]] Where the examinee is suffering from any mental disorder or physical affliction or disability rendering him unfit to undergo or attend for public examination, the court may, on application in that behalf, either stay the order for his public examination or direct that it shall be conducted in such manner and at such place as it thinks fit.

(2) Application under this Rule shall be made—

(a)by a person who has been appointed by a court in the United Kingdom or elsewhere to manage the affairs of, or to represent, the examinee, or

(b)by a relative or friend of the examinee whom the court considers to be a proper person to make the application, or

(c)by the official receiver.

(3) Where the application is made by a person other than the official receiver, then—

(a)it shall, unless the examinee is a patient within the meaning of the Mental Health Act 1983, be supported by the affidavit of a registered medical practitioner as to the examinee's mental and physical condition;

(b)at least 7 days' notice of the application shall be given to the official receiver and the liquidator (if other than the official receiver); and

(c)before any order is made on the application, the applicant shall deposit with the official receiver such sum as the latter certifies to be necessary for the additional expenses of any examination that may be ordered on the application.

An order made on the application may provide that the expenses of the examination are to be payable, as to a specified proportion, out of the deposit under sub-paragraph (c), instead of out of the assets.

(4) Where the application is made by the official receiver it may be made ex parte, and may be supported by evidence in the form of a report by the official receiver to the court.

Commencement Information

I343Rule 4.214 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Procedure at hearingE+W

4.215.—(1) The examinee shall at the hearing be examined on oath; and he shall answer all such questions as the court may put, or allow to be put, to him.

(2) Any of the persons allowed by section 133(4) to question the examinee may, with the approval of the court (made known either at the hearing or in advance of it), appear by solicitor or counsel; or he may in writing authorise another person to question the examinee on his behalf.

(3) The examinee may at his own expense employ a solicitor with or without counsel, who may put to him such questions as the court may allow for the purpose of enabling him to explain or qualify any answers given by him, and may make representations on his behalf.

(4) [[FORM 4.65]] There shall be made in writing such record of the examination as the court thinks proper. The record shall be read over either to or by the examinee, signed by him, and verified by affidavit at a venue fixed by the court.

(5) The written record may, in any proceedings (whether under the Act or otherwise) be used as evidence against the examinee of any statement made by him in the course of his public examination.

(6) If criminal proceedings have been instituted against the examinee, and the court is of opinion that the continuance of the hearing would be calculated to prejudice a fair trial of those proceedings, the hearing may be adjourned.

Commencement Information

I344Rule 4.215 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

AdjournmentE+W

4.216.—(1) [[FORM 4.66]] The public examination may be adjourned by the court from time to time, either to a fixed date or generally.

(2) Where the examination has been adjourned generally, the court may at any time on the application of the official receiver or of the examinee—

(a)[[FORM 4.67]] fix a venue for the resumption of the examination, and

(b)give directions as to the manner in which, and the time within which, notice of the resumed public examination is to be given to persons entitled to take part in it.

(3) Where application under paragraph (2) is made by the examinee, the court may grant it on terms that the expenses of giving the notices required by that paragraph shall be paid by him and that, before a venue for the resumed public examination is fixed, he shall deposit with the official receiver such sum as the latter considers necessary to cover those expenses.

Commencement Information

I345Rule 4.216 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Expenses of examinationE+W

4.217.—(1) Where a public examination of the examinee has been ordered by the court on a creditors' or contributories' requisition under Rule 4.213, the court may order that the expenses of the examination are to be paid, as to be specified proportion, out of the deposit under Rule 4.213(3), instead of out of the assets.

(2) In no case do the costs and expenses of a public examination fall on the official receiver personally.

Commencement Information

I346Rule 4.217 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

CHAPTER 20E+WORDER OF PAYMENT OF COSTS, ETC., OUT OF ASSETS

General rule as to priorityE+W

4.218.—(1) The expenses of the liquidation are payable out of the assets in the following order of priority—

(a)expenses properly chargeable or incurred by the official receiver or the liquidator in preserving, realising or getting in any of the assets of the company;

(b)any other expenses incurred or disbursements made by the official receiver or under his authority, including those incurred or made in carrying on the business of the company;

(c)(i)the fee payable under any order made under section 414 for the performance by the official receiver of his general duties as official receiver;

(ii)any repayable deposit lodged by the petitioner under any such order as security for the fee mentioned in sub-paragraph (i);

(d)any other fees payable under any order made under section 414, including those payable to the official receiver, and any remuneration payable to him under general regulations;

(e)the cost of any security provided by a provisional liquidator, liquidator or special manager in accordance with the Act or the Rules;

(f)the remuneration of the provisional liquidator (if any);

(g)any deposit lodged on an application for the appointment of a provisional liquidator;

(h)the costs of the petitioner, and of any person appearing on the petition whose costs are allowed by the court;

(j)the remuneration of the special manager (if any);

(k)any amount payable to a person employed or authorised, under Chapter 6 of this Part of the Rules, to assist in the preparation of a statement of affairs or of accounts;

(l)any allowance made, by order of the court, towards costs on an application for release from the obligation to submit a statement of affairs, or for an extension of time for submitting such a statement;

(m)any necessary disbursements by the liquidator in the course of his administration (including any expenses incurred by members of the liquidation committee or their representatives and allowed by the liquidator under Rule 4.169, but not including any payment of capital gains tax in circumstances referred to in sub-paragraph (p) below);

(n)the remuneration or emoluments of any person who has been employed by the liquidator to perform any services for the company, as required or authorised by or under the Act or the Rules;

(o)the remuneration of the liquidator, up to any amount not exceeding that which is payable to the official receiver under general regulations;

(p)the amount of any capital gains tax on chargeable gains accruing on the realisation of any asset of the company (without regard to whether the realisation is effected by the liquidator, a secured creditor, or a receiver or manager appointed to deal with a security);

(q)the balance, after payment of any sums due under sub-paragraph (o) above, of any remuneration due to the liquidator.

(2) The costs of employing a shorthand writer, if appointed by an order of the court made at the instance of the official receiver in connection with an examination, rank in priority with those specified in paragraph (1)(a). The costs of employing a shorthand writer so appointed in any other case rank after the allowance mentioned in paragraph (1)(l) and before the disbursements mentioned in paragraph (1)(m).

(3) Any expenses incurred in holding an examination under Rule 4.214 (examinee unfit), where the application for it is made by the official receiver, rank in priority with those specified in paragraph (1)(a).

Commencement Information

I347Rule 4.218 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Winding up commencing as voluntaryE+W

4.219.  In a winding up by the court which follows immediately on a voluntary winding up (whether members' voluntary or creditors' voluntry), such remuneration of the voluntary liquidator and costs and expenses of the voluntary liquidation as the court may allow are to rank in priority with the expenses specified in Rule 4.218(1)(a).

Commencement Information

I348Rule 4.219 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Saving for powers of the courtE+W

4.220.—(1) In a winding up by the court, the priorities laid down by Rules 4.218 and 4.219 are subject to the power of the court to make orders under section 156, where the assets are insufficient to satisfy the liabilities.

(2) Nothing in those Rules applies to or affects the power of any court, in proceedings by or against the company, to order costs to be paid by the company, or the liquidator; nor do they affect the rights of any person to whom such costs are ordered to be paid.

Commencement Information

I349Rule 4.220 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

CHAPTER 21E+WMISCELLANEOUS RULES

SECTION A: RETURN OF CAPITAL (NO CVL APPLICATION)E+W
Application to court for order authorising returnE+W

4.221.—(1) This Rule applies where the liquidator intends to apply to the court for an order authorising a return of capital.

(2) The application shall be accompanied by a list of the persons to whom the return is to be made.

(3) The list shall include the same details of those persons as appears in the settled list of contributories, with any necessary alterations to take account of matters after settlement of the list, and the amount to be paid to each person.

(4) Where the court makes an order authorising the return, it shall send a sealed copy of the order to the liquidator.

Commencement Information

I350Rule 4.221 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Procedure for returnE+W

4.222.—(1) The liquidator shall inform each person to whom a return is made of the rate of return per share, and whether it is expected that any further return will be made.

(2) Any payments made by the liquidator by way of the return may be sent by post, unless for any reason another method of making the payment has been agreed with the payee.

Commencement Information

I351Rule 4.222 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

SECTION B: CONCLUSION OF WINDING UPE+W
Statements to registrar of companies under s.192E+W

4.223-CVL.—(1) [[FORM 4.68]] The statement which section 192 requires the liquidator to send to the registrar of companies, if the winding up is not concluded within one year from its commencement, shall be sent not more than 30 days after the expiration of that year, and thereafter not less often than 6-monthly until the winding up is concluded.

(2) For this purpose the winding up is concluded at the date of the dissolution of the company, except that if at that date any assets or funds of the company remain unclaimed or undistributed in the hands or under the control of the liquidator or any former liquidator, the winding up is not concluded until those assets or funds have either been distributed or paid into the Insolvency Services Account.

(3) Subject as above, the liquidator's final statement shall be sent forthwith after the conclusion of the winding up.

(4) Every statement sent to the registrar of companies under section 192 shall be in duplicate.

Commencement Information

I352Rule 4.223CVL in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

SECTION C: DISSOLUTION AFTER WINDING UPE+W
Secretary of State's directions under ss.203, 205E+W

4.224.—(1) Where the Secretary of State gives a direction under—

(a)section 203 (where official receiver applies to registrar of companies for a company's early dissolution), or

(b)section 205 (application by interested person for postponement of dissolution),

he shall send two copies of the direction to the applicant for it.

(2) Of those copies one shall be sent by the applicant to the registrar of companies, to comply with section 203(5) or, as the case may be, 205(6).

Commencement Information

I353Rule 4.224 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Procedure following appeal under s.203(4) or 205(4)E+W

4.225.  [[FORM 4.69]] Following an appeal under section 203(4) or 205(4) (against a decision of the Secretary of State under the applicable section) the court shall send two sealed copies of its order to the person in whose favour the appeal was determined; and that party shall send one of the copies to the registrar of companies to comply with section 203(5) or, as the case may be, 205(6).

Commencement Information

I354Rule 4.225 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

CHAPTER 22E+WLEAVE TO ACT AS DIRECTOR, ETC., OF COMPANY WITH PROHIBITED NAME (SECTION 216 OF THE ACT)

PreliminaryE+W

4.226.  The Rules in this Chapter—

(a)relate to the leave required under section 216 (restriction on reuse of name of company in insolvent liquidation) for a person to act as mentioned in section 216(3) in relation to a company with a prohibited name, and

(b)prescribe the cases excepted from that provision, that is to say, those in which a person to whom the section applies may so act without that leave.

Commencement Information

I355Rule 4.226 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Application for leave under s.216(3)E+W

4.227.  When considering an application for leave under section 216, the court may call on the liquidator, or any former liquidator, of the liquidating company for a report of the circumstances in which that company became insolvent, and the extent (if any) of the applicant's apparent responsibility for its doing so.

Commencement Information

I356Rule 4.227 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

First excepted caseE+W

4.228.—(1) Where a company (“the successor company”) acquires the whole, or substantially the whole, of the business of an insolvent company, under arrangements made by an insolvency practitioner acting as its liquidator, administrator or administrative receiver, or as supervisor of a voluntary arrangement under Part I of the Act, the successor company may for the purposes of section 216 give notice under this Rule to the insolvent company's creditors.

(2) To be effective, the notice must be given within 28 days from the completion of the arrangements, to all creditors of the insolvent company of whose addresses the successor company is aware in that period; and it must specify—

(a)the name and registered number of the insolvent company and the circumstances in which its business has been acquired by the successor company,

(b)the name which the successor company has assumed, or proposes to assume for the purpose of carrying on the business, if that name is or will be a prohibited name under section 216, and

(c)any change of name which it has made, or proposes to make, for that purpose under section 28 of the Companies Act.

(3) The notice may name a person to whom section 216 may apply as having been a director or shadow director of the insolvent company, and give particulars as to the nature and duration of that directorship, with a view to his being a director of the successor company or being otherwise associated with its management.

(4) If the successor company has effectively given notice under this Rule to the insolvent company's creditors, a person who is so named in the notice may act in relation to the successor company in any of the ways mentioned in section 216(3), notwithstanding that he has not the leave of the court under that section.

Commencement Information

I357Rule 4.228 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Second excepted caseE+W

4.229.—(1) In the circumstances specified below, a person to whom section 216 applies as having been a director or shadow director of the liquidating company may act in any of the ways mentioned in section 216(3), notwithstanding that he has not the leave of the court under that section.

(2) Those circumstances are that—

(a)he applies to the court for leave, not later than 7 days from the date on which the company went into liquidation, and

(b)leave is granted by the court not later than 6 weeks from that date.

Commencement Information

I358Rule 4.229 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Third excepted caseE+W

4.230.  The court's leave under section 216(3) is not required where the company there referred to, though known by a prohibited name within the meaning of the section—

(a)has been known by that name for the whole of the period of 12 months ending with the day before the liquidating company went into liquidation, and

(b)has not at any time in those 12 months been dormant within the meaning of section 252(5) of the Companies Act.

Commencement Information

I359Rule 4.230 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

THE SECOND GROUP OF PARTSE+W

PART 5E+WINDIVIDUAL VOLUNTARY ARRANGEMENTS

IntroductoryE+W

5.1.—(1) The Rules in this Part apply where a debtor, with a view to an application for an interim order under Part VIII of the Act, makes a proposal to his creditors for a voluntary arrangement, that is to say, a composition in satisfaction of his debts or a scheme of arrangement of his affairs.E+W

(2) The Rules apply whether the debtor is an undischarged bankrupt (“Case 1”), or he is not (“Case 2”).

Commencement Information

I360Rule 5.1 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

SECTION A: THE DEBTOR'S PROPOSALE+W

Preparation of proposalE+W

5.2.  The debtor shall prepare for the intended nominee a proposal on which (with or without amendments to be made under Rule 5.3(3) below) to make his report to the court under section 256.

Commencement Information

I361Rule 5.2 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Contents of proposalE+W

5.3.—(1) The debtor's proposal shall provide a short explanation why, in his opinion, a voluntary arrangement under Part VIII is desirable, and give reasons why his creditors may be expected to concur with such an arrangement.

(2) The following matters shall be stated, or otherwise dealt with, in the proposal—

(a)the following matters, so far as within the debtor's immediate knowledge—

(i)his assets, with an estimate of their respective values,

(ii)the extent (if any) to which the assets are charged in favour of creditors,

(iii)the extent (if any) to which particular assets are to be excluded from the voluntary arrangement;

(b)particulars of any property, other than assets of the debtor himself, which is proposed to be included in the arrangement, the source of such property and the terms on which it is to be made available for inclusion;

(c)the nature and amount of the debtor's liabilities (so far as within his immediate knowledge), the manner in which they are proposed to be met, modified, postponed or otherwise dealt with by means of the arrangement and (in particular)—

(i)how it is proposed to deal with preferential creditors (defined in section 258(7)) and creditors who are, or claim to be, secured,

(ii)how associates of the debtor (being creditors of his) are proposed to be treated under the arrangement, and

(iii)(Case 2 only) whether there are, to the debtor's knowledge, any circumstances giving rise to the possibility, in the event that he should be adjudged bankrupt, of claims under—

  • section 339 (transactions at an undervalue),

  • section 340 (preferences), or

  • section 343 (extortionate credit transactions),

and, where any such circumstances are present, whether, and if so how, it is proposed under the voluntary arrangement to make provision for wholly or partly indemnifying the insolvent estate in respect of such claims;

(d)whether any, and if so what, guarantees have been given of the debtor's debts by other persons, specifying which (if any) of the guarantors are associates of his;

(e)the proposed duration of the voluntary arrangement;

(f)the proposed dates of distributions to creditors, with estimates of their amounts;

(g)the amount proposed to be paid to the nominee (as such) by way of remuneration and expenses;

(h)the manner in which it is proposed that the supervisor of the arrangement should be remunerated, and his expenses defrayed;

(j)whether, for the purposes of the arrangement, any guarantees are to be offered by any persons other than the debtor, and whether (if so) any security is to be given or sought;

(k)the manner in which funds held for the purposes of the arrangement are to be banked, invested or otherwise dealt with pending distribution to creditors;

(l)the manner in which funds held for the purpose of payment to creditors, and not so paid on the termination of the arrangement, are to be dealt with;

(m)if the debtor has any business, the manner in which it is proposed to be conducted during the course of the arrangement;

(n)details of any further credit facilities which it is intended to arrange for the debtor, and how the debts so arising are to be paid;

(o)the functions which are to be undertaken by the supervisor of the arrangement;

(p)the name, address and qualification of the person proposed as supervisor of the voluntary arrangement, and confirmation that he is (so far as the debtor is aware) qualified to act as an insolvency practitioner in relation to him.

(3) With the agreement in writing of the nominee, the debtor's proposal may be amended at any time up to the delivery of the former's report to the court under section 256.

Commencement Information

I362Rule 5.3 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Notice to intended nomineeE+W

5.4.—(1) The debtor shall give to the intended nominee written notice of his proposal.

(2) The notice, accompanied by a copy of the proposal, shall be delivered either to the nominee himself, or to a person authorised to take delivery of documents on his behalf.

(3) If the intended nominee agrees to act, he shall cause a copy of the notice to be endorsed to the effect that it has been received by him on a specified date.

(4) The copy of the notice so endorsed shall be returned by the nominee forthwith to the debtor at an address specified by him in the notice for that purpose.

(5) Where (in Case 1) the debtor gives notice of his proposal to the official receiver and (if any) the trustee, the notice must contain the name and address of the insolvency practitioner who has agreed to act as nominee.

Commencement Information

I363Rule 5.4 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Application for interim orderE+W

5.5.—(1) An application to the court for an interim order under Part VIII of the Act shall be accompanied by an affidavit of the following matters—

(a)the reasons for making the application;

(b)particulars of any execution or other legal process which, to the debtor's knowledge, has been commenced against him;

(c)that he is an undischarged bankrupt or (as the case may be) that he is able to petition for his own bankruptcy;

(d)that no previous application for an interim order has been made by or in respect of the debtor in the period of 12 months ending with the date of the affidavit; and

(e)that the nominee under the proposal (naming him) is a person who is qualified to act as an insolvency practitioner in relation to the debtor, and is willing to act in relation to the proposal.

(2) A copy of the notice to the intended nominee under Rule 5.4, endorsed to the effect that he agrees so to act, shall be exhibited to the affidavit.

(3) On receiving the application and affidavit, the court shall fix a venue for the hearing of the application.

(4) The applicant shall give at least 2 days' notice of the hearing—

(a)in Case 1, to the bankrupt, the official receiver and the trustee (whichever of those three is not himself the applicant),

(b)in Case 2, to any creditor who (to the debtor's knowledge) has presented a bankruptcy petition against him, and

(c)in either case, to the nominee who has agreed to act in relation to the debtor's proposal.

Commencement Information

I364Rule 5.5 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Hearing of the applicationE+W

5.6.—(1) Any of the persons who have been given notice under Rule 5.5(4) may appear or be represented at the hearing of the application.

(2) The court, in deciding whether to make an interim order on the application, shall take into account any representations made by or on behalf of any of those persons (in particular, whether an order should be made containing such provision as is referred to in section 255(3) and (4)).

(3) If the court makes an interim order, it shall fix a venue for consideration of the nominee's report. Subject to the following paragraph, the date for that consideration shall be not later than that on which the interim order ceases to have effect under section 255(6).

(4) If under section 256(4) an extension of time is granted for filing the nominee's report, the court shall, unless there appear to be good reasons against it, correspondingly extend the period for which the interim order has effect.

Commencement Information

I365Rule 5.6 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Action to follow making of orderE+W

5.7.—(1) Where an interim order is made, at least 2 sealed copies of the order shall be sent by the court forthwith to the person who applied for it; and that person shall serve one of the copies on the nominee under the debtor's proposal.

(2) The applicant shall also forthwith give notice of the making of the order to any person who was given notice of the hearing pursuant to Rule 5.5(4) and was not present or represented at it.

Commencement Information

I366Rule 5.7 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Statement of affairsE+W

5.8.—(1) In Case 1, if the debtor has already delivered a statement of affairs under section 272 (debtor's petition) or 288 (creditor's petition), he need not deliver a further statement unless so required by the nominee, with a view to supplementing or amplifying the former one.

(2) In Case 2, the debtor shall, within 7 days after his proposal is delivered to the nominee, or within such longer time as the latter may allow, deliver to the nominee a statement of his (the debtor's) affairs.

(3) The statement shall comprise the following particulars (supplementing or amplifying, so far as is necessary for clarifying the state of the debtor's affairs, those already given in his proposal)—

(a)a list of his assets, divided into such categories as are appropriate for easy identification, with estimated values assigned to each category;

(b)in the case of any property on which a claim against the debtor is wholly or partly secured, particulars of the claim and its amount, and of how and when the security was created;

(c)the names and addresses of the debtor's preferential creditors (defined in section 258(7)), with the amounts of their respective claims;

(d)the names and addresses of the debtor's unsecured creditors, with the amounts of their respective claims;

(e)particulars of any debts owed by or to the debtor to or by persons who are associates of his;

(f)such other particulars (if any) as the nominee may in writing require to be furnished for the purposes of making his report to the court on the debtor's proposal.

(4) The statement of affairs shall be made up to a date not earlier than 2 weeks before the date of the notice to the nominee under Rule 5.4.

However, the nominee may allow an extension of that period to the nearest practicable date (not earlier than 2 months before the date of the notice under Rule 5.4); and if he does so, he shall give his reasons in his report to the court on the debtor's proposal.

(5) The statement shall be certified by the debtor as correct, to the best of his knowledge and belief.

Commencement Information

I367Rule 5.8 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Additional disclosure for assistance of nomineeE+W

5.9.—(1) If it appears to the nominee that he cannot properly prepare his report on the basis of information in the debtor's proposal and statement of affairs, he may call on the debtor to provide him with—

(a)further and better particulars as to the circumstances in which, and the reasons why, he is insolvent or (as the case may be) threatened with insolvency;

(b)particulars of any previous proposals which have been made by him under Part VIII of the Act;

(c)any further information with respect to his affairs which the nominee thinks necessary for the purposes of his report.

(2) The nominee may call on the debtor to inform him whether and in what circumstances he has at any time—

(a)been concerned in the affairs of any company (whether or not incorporated in England and Wales) which has become insolvent, or

(b)been adjudged bankrupt, or entered into an arrangement with his creditors.

(3) For the purpose of enabling the nominee to consider the debtor's proposal and prepare his report on it, the latter must give him access to his accounts and records.

Commencement Information

I368Rule 5.9 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Nominee's report on the proposalE+W

5.10.—(1) The nominee's report shall be delivered by him to the court not less than 2 days before the interim order ceases to have effect.

(2) With his report the nominee shall deliver—

(a)a copy of the debtor's proposal (with amendments, if any, authorised under Rule 5.3(3)); and

(b)a copy or summary of any statement of affairs provided by the debtor.

(3) If the nominee makes known his opinion that a meeting of the debtor's creditors should be summoned under section 257, his report shall have annexed to it his comments on the debtor's proposal.

If his opinion is otherwise, he shall give his reasons for that opinion.

(4) The court shall cause the nominee's report to be endorsed with the date on which it is filed in court. Any creditor of the debtor is entitled, at all reasonable times on any business day, to inspect the file.

(5) In Case 1, the nominee shall send to the official receiver—

(a)a copy of the debtor's proposal,

(b)a copy of his (the nominee's) report and his comments accompanying it (if any), and

(c)a copy or summary of the debtor's statement of affairs.

In Case 2, the nominee shall send a copy of each of those documents to any person who has presented a bankruptcy petition against the debtor.

Commencement Information

I369Rule 5.10 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Replacement of nomineeE+W

5.11.  Where the debtor intends to apply to the court under section 256(3) for the nominee to be replaced, he shall give to the nominee at least 7 days' notice of his application.

Commencement Information

I370Rule 5.11 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

SECTION B: ACTION ON THE PROPOSAL; CREDITORS' MEETINGE+W

Consideration of nominee's reportE+W

5.12.—(1) At the hearing by the court to consider the nominee's report, any of the persons who have been given notice under Rule 5.5(4) may appear or be represented.

(2) Rule 5.7 applies to any order made by the court at the hearing.

Commencement Information

I371Rule 5.12 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Summoning of creditors' meetingE+W

5.13.—(1) If in his report the nominee states that in his opinion a meeting of creditors should be summoned to consider the debtor's proposal, the date on which the meeting is to be held shall be not less than 14, nor more than 28, days from that on which the nominee's report is filed in court under Rule 5.10.

(2) Notices calling the meeting shall be sent by the nominee, at least 14 days before the day fixed for it to be held, to all the creditors specified in the debtor's statement of affairs, and any other creditors of whom the nominee is otherwise aware.

(3) Each notice sent under this Rule shall specify the court to which the nominee's report on the debtor's proposal has been delivered and shall state the effect of Rule 5.18(1), (3) and (4) (requisite majorities); and with it there shall be sent—

(a)a copy of the proposal,

(b)a copy of the statement of affairs or, if the nominee thinks fit, a summary of it (the summary to include a list of the creditors and the amounts of their debts), and

(c)the nominee's comments on the proposal.

Commencement Information

I372Rule 5.13 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Creditors' meeting, supplementaryE+W

5.14.—(1) Subject as follows, in fixing the venue for the creditors' meeting, the nominee shall have regard to the convenience of creditors.

(2) The meeting shall be summoned for commencement between 10.00 and 16.00 hours on a business day.

(3) [[FORM 8.1]] With every notice summoning the meeting there shall be sent out forms of proxy.

Commencement Information

I373Rule 5.14 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

The chairman at the meetingE+W

5.15.—(1) Subject as follows, the nominee shall be chairman of the creditors' meeting.

(2) If for any reason the nominee is unable to attend, he may nominated another person to act as chairman in his place; but a person so nominated must be either—

(a)a person qualified to act as an insolvency practitioner in relation to the debtor, or

(b)an employee of the nominee or his firm who is experienced in insolvency matters.

Commencement Information

I374Rule 5.15 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

The chairman as proxy-holderE+W

5.16.  The chairman shall not by virtue of any proxy held by him vote to increase or reduce the amount of the remuneration or expenses of the nominee or the supervisor of the proposed arrangement, unless the proxy specifically directs him to vote in that way.

Commencement Information

I375Rule 5.16 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Voting rightsE+W

5.17.—(1) Subject as follows, every creditor who was given notice of the creditors' meeting is entitled to vote at the meeting or any adjournment of it.

(2) In Case I, votes are calculated according to the amount of the creditor's debt as at the date of the bankruptcy order, and in Case 2 according to the amount of the debt as at the date of the meeting.

(3) A creditor shall not vote in respect of a debt for an unliquidated amount, or any debt whose value is not ascertained, except where the chairman agrees to put upon the debt an estimated minimum value for the purpose of entitlement to vote.

(4) The chairman has power to admit or reject a creditor's claim for the purpose of his entitlement to vote, and the power is exercisable with respect to the whole or any part of the claim.

(5) The chairman's decision on entitlement to vote is subject to appeal to the court by any creditor, or by the debtor.

(6) If the chairman is in doubt whether a claim should be admitted or rejected, he shall mark it as objected to and allow the creditor to vote, subject to his vote being subsequently declared invalid if the objection to the claim is sustained.

(7) If on an appeal the chairman's decision is reversed or varied, or a creditor's vote is declared invalid, the court may order another meeting to be summoned, or make such other order as it thinks just.

The court's power to make an order under this paragraph is exercisable only if it considers that the matter is such as to give rise to unfair prejudice or a material irregularity.

(8) An application to the court by way of appeal under this Rule against the chairman's decision shall not be made after the end of the period of 28 days beginning with the day on which the chairman's report to the court is made under section 259.

(9) The chairman is not personally liable for any costs incurred by any person in respect of an appeal under this Rule.

Commencement Information

I376Rule 5.17 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Requisite majoritiesE+W

5.18.—(1) Subject as follows, at the creditors' meeting for any resolution to pass approving any proposal or modification there must be a majority in excess of three-quarters in value of the creditors present in person or by proxy and voting on the resolution.

(2) The same applies in respect of any other resolution proposed at the meeting, but substituting one-half for three-quarters.

(3) In the following cases there is to be left out of account a creditor's vote in respect of any claim or part of a claim—

(a)where written notice of the claim was not given, either at the meeting or before it, to the chairman or the nominee;

(b)where the claim or part is secured;

(c)where the claim is in respect of a debt wholly or partly on, or secured by, a current bill of exchange or promissory note, unless the creditor is willing—

(i)to treat the liability to him on the bill or note of every person who is liable on it antecedently to the debtor, and against whom a bankruptcy order has not been made (or, in the case of a company, which has not gone into liquidation), as a security in his hands, and

(ii)to estimate the value of the security and (for the purpose of entitlement to vote, but not of any distribution under the arrangement) to deduct it from his claim.

(4) Any resolution is invalid if those voting against it include more than half in value of the creditors, counting in these latter only those—

(a)to whom notice of the meeting was sent;

(b)whose votes are not to be left out of account under paragraph (3); and

(c)who are not, to the best of the chairman's belief, associates of the debtor.

(5) It is for the chairman of the meeting to decide whether under this Rule—

(a)a vote is to be left out of account in accordance with paragraph (3); or

(b)a person is an associate of the debtor for the purposes of paragraph (4)(c);

and in relation to the second of these two cases the chairman is entitled to rely on the information provided by the debtor's statement of affairs or otherwise in accordance with this Part of the Rules.

(6) If the chairman uses a proxy contrary to Rule 5.16, his vote with that proxy does not count towards any majority under this Rule.

(7) Paragraphs (5) to (9) of Rule 5.17 apply as regards an appeal against the decision of the chairman under this Rule.

Commencement Information

I377Rule 5.18 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Proceedings to obtain agreement on the proposalE+W

5.19.—(1) On the day on which the creditors' meeting is held, it may from time to time be adjourned.

(2) If on that day the requisite majority for the approval of the voluntary arrangement (with or without modifications) has not been obtained, the chairman may, and shall if it is so resolved, adjourn the meeting for not more than 14 days.

(3) If there are subsequently further adjournments, the final adjournment shall not be to a day later than 14 days after that on which the meeting was originally held.

(4) If the meeting is adjourned under paragraph (2), notice of the fact shall be given by the chairman forthwith to the court.

(5) If following any final adjournment of the meeting the proposal (with or without modifications) is not agreed to, it is deemed rejected.

Commencement Information

I378Rule 5.19 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

SECTION C: IMPLEMENTATION OF THE ARRANGEMENTE+W

Resolutions to follow approvalE+W

5.20.—(1) If the voluntary arrangement is approved (with or without modifications), a resolution may be taken by the creditors, where two or more insolvency practitioners are appointed to act as supervisor, on the question whether acts to be done in connection with the arrangement may be done by any one of them, or must be done by both or all.

(2) If at the creditors' meeting a resolution is moved for the appointment of some person other than the nominee to be supervisor of the arrangement, there must be produced to the chairman, at or before the meeting—

(a)that person's written consent to act (unless he is present and then and there signifies his consent), and

(b)his written confirmation that he is qualified to act as an insolvency practitioner in relation to the debtor.

Commencement Information

I379Rule 5.20 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Hand-over of property, etc. to supervisorE+W

5.21.—(1) Forthwith after the approval of the voluntary arrangement, the debtor in Case 2, and the official receiver or trustee in Case 1, shall do all that is required for putting the supervisor into possession of the assets included in the arrangement.

(2) On taking possession of the assets in Case 1, the supervisor shall discharge any balance due to the official receiver and (if other) the trustee by way of remuneration or on account of—

(a)fees, costs, charges and expenses properly incurred and payable under the Act or the Rules, and

(b)any advances made in respect of the insolvent estate, together with interest on such advances at the rate specified in section 17 of the Judgments Act 1838 at the date of the bankruptcy order.

(3) Alternatively in Case 1, the supervisor must, before taking possession, give the official receiver or the trustee a written undertaking to discharge any such balance out of the first realisation of assets.

(4) The official receiver and (if other) the trustee has in Case 1 a charge on the assets included in the voluntary arrangement in respect of any sums due as above until they have been discharged, subject only to the deduction from realisations by the supervisor of the proper costs and expenses of realisation.

Any sums due to the official receiver take priority over those due to a trustee.

(5) The supervisor shall from time to time out of the realisation of assets discharge all guarantees properly given by the official receiver or the trustee for the benefit of the estate, and shall pay all their expenses.

Commencement Information

I380Rule 5.21 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Report of creditors' meetingE+W

5.22.—(1) A report of the creditors' meeting shall be prepared by the chairman of the meeting.

(2) The report shall—

(a)state whether the proposal for a voluntary arrangement was approved or rejected and, if approved, with what (if any) modifications;

(b)set out the resolutions which were taken at the meeting, and the decision on each one;

(c)list the creditors (with their respective values) who were present or represented at the meeting, and how they voted on each resolution; and

(d)include such further information (if any) as the chairman thinks it appropriate to make known to the court.

(3) A copy of the chairman's report shall, within 4 days of the meeting being held, be filed in court; and the court shall cause that copy to be endorsed with the date of filing.

(4) The persons to whom notice of the result is to be given, under section 259(1), are all those who were sent notice of the meeting under this Part of the Rules.

The notice shall be sent immediately after a copy of the chairman's report is filed in court under paragraph (3).

Commencement Information

I381Rule 5.22 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Register of voluntary arrangementsE+W

5.23.—(1) The Secretary of State shall maintain a register of individual voluntary arrangements, and shall enter in it all such matters as are reported to him in pursuance of this Part of the Rules.

(2) The register shall be open to public inspection.

Commencement Information

I382Rule 5.23 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Reports to Secretary of StateE+W

5.24.—(1) Immediately after the chairman of the creditors' meeting has filed in court a report that the meeting has approved the voluntary arrangement, he shall report to the Secretary of State the following details of the arrangement—

(a)the name and address of the debtor;

(b)the date on which the arrangement was approved by the creditors;

(c)the name and address of the supervisor; and

(d)the court in which the chairman's report has been filed.

(2) A person who is appointed to act as supervisor of an individual voluntary arrangement (whether in the first instance or by way of replacement of another person previously appointed) shall forthwith give written notice to the Secretary of State of his appointment.

If he vacates office as supervisor, he shall forthwith give written notice of that fact also to the Secretary of State.

Commencement Information

I383Rule 5.24 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Revocation or suspension of the arrangementE+W

5.25.—(1) This Rule applies where the court makes an order of revocation or suspension under section 262.

(2) The person who applied for the order shall serve sealed copies of it—

(a)in Case 1, on the debtor, the official receiver and the trustee;

(b)in Case 2, on the debtor; and

(c)in either case on the supervisor of the voluntary arrangement.

(3) If the order includes a direction by the court under section 262(4)(b) for any further creditors' meeting to be summoned, notice shall also be given (by the person who applied for the order) to whoever is, in accordance with the direction, required to summon the meeting.

(4) The debtor (in Case 2) and the official receiver or the trustee (in Case 1) shall—

(a)forthwith after receiving a copy of the court's order, give notice of it to all persons who were sent notice of the creditors' meeting which approved the voluntary arrangement or who, not having been sent that notice, appear to be affected by the order;

(b)within 7 days of their receiving a copy of the order (or within such longer period as the court may allow), give notice to the court whether it is intended to make a revised proposal to creditors, or to invite re-consideration of the original proposal.

(5) The person on whose application the order of revocation or suspension was made shall, within 7 days after the making of the order, give written notice of it to the Secretary of State.

Commencement Information

I384Rule 5.25 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Supervisor's accounts and reportsE+W

5.26.—(1) Where the voluntary arrangement authorises or requires the supervisor—

(a)to carry on the debtor's business or to trade on his behalf or in his name, or

(b)to realise assets of the debtor or (in Case 1) belonging to the estate, or

(c)otherwise to administer or dispose of any funds of the debtor or the estate,

he shall keep accounts and records of his acts and dealings in and in connection with the arrangement, including in particular records of all receipts and payments of money.

(2) The supervisor shall, not less often than once in every 12 months beginning with the date of his appointment, prepare an abstract of such receipts and payments, and send copies of it, accompanied by his comments on the progress and efficacy of the arrangement, to—

(a)the court,

(b)the debtor, and

(c)all those of the debtor's creditors who are bound by the arrangement.

If in any period of 12 months he has made no payments and had no receipts, he shall at the end of that period send a statement to that effect to all who are specified in sub-paragraphs (a) to (c) above.

(3) An abstract provided under paragraph (2) shall relate to a period beginning with the date of the supervisor's appointment or (as the case may be) the day following the end of the last period for which an abstract was prepared under this Rule; and copies of the abstract shall be sent out, as required by paragraph (2), within the 2 months following the end of the period to which the abstract relates.

(4) If the supervisor is not authorised as mentioned in paragraph (1), he shall, not less often than once in every 12 months beginning with the date of his appointment, send to all those specified in paragraph (2)(a) to (c) a report on the progress and efficacy of the voluntary arrangement.

(5) The court may, on application by the supervisor, vary the dates on which the obligation to send abstracts or reports arises.

Commencement Information

I385Rule 5.26 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Production of accounts and records to Secretary of StateE+W

5.27.—(1) The Secretary of State may at any time during the course of the voluntary arrangement or after its completion require the supervisor to produce for inspection—

(a)his records and accounts in respect of the arrangement, and

(b)copies of abstracts and reports prepared in compliance with Rule 5.26.

(2) The Secretary of State may require production either at the premises of the supervisor or elsewhere; and it is the duty of the supervisor to comply with any requirement imposed on him under this Rule.

(3) The Secretary of State may cause any accounts and records produced to him under this Rule to be audited; and the supervisor shall give to the Secretary of State such further information and assistance as he needs for the purposes of his audit.

Commencement Information

I386Rule 5.27 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Fees, costs, charges and expensesE+W

5.28.  The fees, costs, charges and expenses that may be incurred for any purposes of the voluntary arrangement are—

(a)any disbursements made by the nominee prior to the approval of the arrangement, and any remuneration for his services as such agreed between himself and the debtor, the official receiver or the trustee;

(b)any fees, costs, charges or expenses which—

(i)are sanctioned by the terms of the arrangement, or

(ii)would be payable, or correspond to those which would be payable, in the debtor's bankruptcy.

Commencement Information

I387Rule 5.28 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Completion of the arrangementE+W

5.29.—(1) Not more than 28 days after the final completion of the voluntary arrangement, the supervisor shall send to all creditors of the debtor who are bound by the arrangement, and to the debtor, a notice that the arrangement has been fully implemented.

(2) With the notice there shall be sent to each of those persons a copy of a report by the supervisor summarising all receipts and payments made by him in pursuance of the arrangement, and explaining any difference in the actual implementation of it as compared with the proposal as approved by the creditors' meeting.

(3) The supervisor shall, within the 28 days mentioned above, send to the Secretary of State and to the court a copy of the notice under paragraph (1), together with a copy of the report under paragraph (2).

(4) The court may, on application by the supervisor, extend the period of 28 days under paragraphs (1) and (3).

Commencement Information

I388Rule 5.29 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

SECTION D: GENERALE+W

False representations, etcE+W

5.30.—(1) The debtor commits an offence if he makes any false representation or commits any other fraud for the purpose of obtaining the approval of his creditors to a proposal for a voluntary arrangement under Part VIII of the Act.

(2) A person guilty of an offence under this Rule is liable to imprisonment or a fine, or both.

Commencement Information

I389Rule 5.30 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

PART 6E+WBANKRUPTCY

CHAPTER 1E+WTHE STATUTORY DEMAND

Form and content of statutory demandE+W

6.1.—(1) [[FORM 6.1] or [FORM 6.2] or [FORM 6.3]] A statutory demand under section 268 must be dated, and be signed either by the creditor himself or by a person stating himself to be authorised to make the demand on the creditor's behalf.

(2) The statutory demand must specify whether it is made under section 268(1) (debt payable immediately) or section 268(2) (debt not so payable).

(3) The demand must state the amount of the debt, and the consideration for it (or, if there is no consideration, the way in which it arises) and—

(a)if made under section 268(1) and founded on a judgment or order of a court, it must give details of the judgment or order, and

(b)if made under section 268(2), it must state the grounds on which it is alleged that the debtor appears to have no reasonable prospect of paying the debt.

(4) If the amount claimed in the demand includes—

(a)any charge by way of interest not previously notified to the debtor as a liability of his, or

(b)any other charge accruing from time to time,

the amount or rate of the charge must be separately identified, and the grounds on which payment of it is claimed must be stated.

In either case the amount claimed must be limited to that which has accrued due at the date of the demand.

(5) If the creditor holds any security in respect of the debt, the full amount of the debt shall be specified, but—

(a)there shall in the demand be specified the nature of the security, and the value which the creditor puts upon it as at the date of the demand, and

(b)the amount of which payment is claimed by the demand shall be the full amount of the debt, less the amount specified as the value of the security.

Commencement Information

I390Rule 6.1 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Information to be given in statutory demandE+W

6.2.—(1) The statutory demand must include an explanation to the debtor of the following matters—

(a)the purpose of the demand, and the fact that, if the debtor does not comply with the demand, bankruptcy proceedings may be commenced against him;

(b)the time within which the demand must be complied with, if that consequence is to be avoided;

(c)the methods of compliance which are open to the debtor; and

(d)his right to apply to the court for the statutory demand to be set aside.

(2) The demand must specify one or more named individuals with whom the debtor may, if he wishes, enter into communication with a view to securing or compounding for the debt to the satisfaction of the creditor or (as the case may be) establishing to the creditor's satisfaction that there is a reasonable prospect that the debt will be paid when it falls due.

In the case of any individual so named in the demand, his address and telephone number (if any) must be given.

Commencement Information

I391Rule 6.2 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Requirements as to serviceE+W

6.3.—(1) Rule 6.11 in Chapter 2 below has effect as regards service of the statutory demand, and proof of that service by affidavit to be filed with a bankruptcy petition.

(2) The creditor is, by virtue of the Rules, under an obligation to do all that is reasonable for the purpose of bringing the statutory demand to the debtor's attention and, if practicable in the particular circumstances, to cause personal service of the demand to be effected.

(3) Where the statutory demand is for payment of a sum due under a judgment or order of any court and the creditor knows, or believes with reasonable cause—

(a)that the debtor has absconded or is keeping out of the way with a view to avoiding service, and

(b)there is no real prospect of the sum due being recovered by execution or other process,

the demand may be advertised in one or more newspapers; and the time limited for compliance with the demand runs from the date of the advertisement's appearance or (as the case may be) its first appearance.

Commencement Information

I392Rule 6.3 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Application to set aside statutory demandE+W

6.4.—(1) [[FORM 6.4]] The debtor may, within the period allowed by this Rule, apply to the appropriate court for an order setting the statutory demand aside.

That period is 18 days from the date of the service on him of the statutory demand or, where the demand is advertised in a newspaper pursuant to Rule 6.3, from the date of the advertisement's appearance or (as the case may be) its first appearance.

(2) Where the creditor issuing the statutory demand is a Minister of the Crown or a Government Department, and—

(a)the debt in respect of which the demand is made, or a part of it equal to or exceeding the bankruptcy level (within the meaning of section 267, is the subject of a judgment or order of any court, and

(b)the statutory demand specifies the date of the judgment or order and the court in which it was obtained, but indicates the creditor's intention to present a bankruptcy petition against the debtor in the High Court,

the appropriate court under this Rule is the High Court; and in any other case it is that to which the debtor would, in accordance with paragraphs (1) and (2) of Rule 6.40 in Chapter 3 below, present his own bankruptcy petition.

(3) As from (inclusive) the date on which the application is filed in court, the time limited for compliance with the statutory demand ceases to run, subject to any order of the court under Rule 6.5(6).

(4) [[FORM 6.5]] The debtor's application shall be supported by an affidavit—

(a)specifying the date on which the statutory demand came into his hands, and

(b)stating the grounds on which he claims that it should be set aside.

The affidavit shall have exhibited to it a copy of the statutory demand.

Commencement Information

I393Rule 6.4 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Hearing of application to set asideE+W

6.5.—(1) On receipt of an application under Rule 6.4, the court may, if satisfied that no sufficient cause is shown for it, dismiss it without giving notice to the creditor. As from (inclusive) the date on which the application is dismissed, the time limited for compliance with the statutory demand runs again.

(2) If the application is not dismissed under paragraph (1), the court shall fix a venue for it to be heard, and shall give at least 7 days' notice of it to—

(a)the debtor or, if the debtor's application was made by a solicitor acting for him, to the solicitor,

(b)the creditor, and

(c)whoever is named in the statutory demand as the person with whom the debtor may enter into communication with reference to the demand (or, if more than one person is so named, the first of them).

(3) On the hearing of the application, the court shall consider the evidence then available to it, and may either summarily determine the application or adjourn it, giving such directions as it thinks appropriate.

(4) [[FORM 6.6]] The court may grant the application if—

(a)the debtor appears to have a counterclaim, set-off or cross demand which equals or exceeds the amount of the debt or debts specified in the statutory demand; or

(b)the debt is disputed on grounds which appear to the court to be substantial; or

(c)it appears that the creditor holds some security in respect of the debt claimed by the demand, and either Rule 6.1(5) is not complied with in respect of it, or the court is satisfied that the value of the security equals or exceeds the full amount of the debt; or

(d)the court is satisfied, on other grounds, that the demand ought to be set aside.

(5) Where the creditor holds some security in respect of his debt, and Rule 6.1(5) is complied with in respect of it but the court is satisfied that the security is under-valued in the statutory demand, the creditor may be required to amend the demand accordingly (but without prejudice to his right to present a bankruptcy petition by reference to the original demand).

(6) If the court dismisses the application, it shall make an order authorising the creditor to present a bankruptcy petition either forthwith, or on or after a date specified in the order.

A copy of the order shall be sent by the court forthwith to the creditor.

Commencement Information

I394Rule 6.5 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

CHAPTER 2E+WBANKRUPTCY PETITION (CREDITOR'S)

PreliminaryE+W

6.6.  [[FORM 6.7] or [FORM 6.8] or [FORM 6.9] or [FORM 6.10]] The Rules in this Chapter relate to a creditor's petition, and the making of a bankruptcy order thereon; and in those Rules “the debt” means ,except where the context otherwise requires, the debt (or debts) in respect of which the petition is presented.

Those Rules also apply to a petition under section 264(1)(c) (supervisor of, or person bound by, voluntary arrangement), with any necessary modifications.

Commencement Information

I395Rule 6.6 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Identification of debtorE+W

6.7.—(1) The petition shall state the following matters with respect to the debtor, so far as they are within the petitioner's knowledge—

(a)his name, place of residence and occupation (if any);

(b)the name or names in which he carries on business, if other than his true name, and whether, in the case of any business of a specified nature, he carries it on alone or with others;

(c)the nature of his business, and the address or addresses at which he carries it on;

(d)any name or names, other than his true name, in which he has carried on business at or after the time when the debt was incurred, and whether he has done so alone or with others;

(e)any address or addresses at which he has resided or carried on business at or after that time, and the nature of that business.

(2) The particulars of the debtor given under this Rule determine the full title of the proceedings.

(3) If to the petitioner's personal knowledge the debtor has used any name other than the one specified under paragraph (1)(a), that fact shall be stated in the petition.

Commencement Information

I396Rule 6.7 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Identification of debtE+W

6.8.—(1) There shall be stated in the petition, with reference to every debt in respect of which it is presented—

(a)the amount of the debt, the consideration for it (or, if there is no consideration, the way in which it arises) and the fact that it is owed to the petitioner;

(b)when the debt was incurred or became due;

(c)if the amount of the debt includes—

(i)any charge by way of interest not previously notified to the debtor as a liability of his, or

(ii)any other charge accruing from time to time,

the amount or rate of the charge (separately identified) and the grounds on which it is claimed to form part of the debt;

(d)either—

(i)that the debt is for a liquidated sum payable immediately, and the debtor appears to be unable to pay it, or

(ii)that the debt is for a liquidated sum payable at some certain, future time (that time to be specified), and the debtor appears to have no reasonable prospect of being able to pay it,

and, in either case (subject to section 269) that the debt is unsecured.

(2) Where the debt is one for which, under section 268, a statutory demand must have been served on the debtor—

(a)there shall be specified the date and manner of service of the statutory demand, and

(b)it shall be stated that, to the best of the creditor's knowledge and belief—

(i)the demand has been neither complied with nor set aside in accordance with the Rules, and

(ii)no application to set it aside is outstanding.

(3) If the case is within section 268(1)(b) (debt arising under judgment or order of court; execution returned unsatisfied), the court from which the execution or other process issued shall be specified, and particulars shall be given relating to the return.

Commencement Information

I397Rule 6.8 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Court in which petition to be presentedE+W

6.9.—(1) In the following cases, the petition shall be presented to the High Court—

(a)if the petition is presented by a Minister of the Crown or a Government Department, and either in any statutory demand on which the petition is based the creditor has indicated the intention to present a bankruptcy petition to that Court, or the petition is presented under section 268(1)(b), or

(b)if the debtor has resided or carried on business within the London insolvency district for the greater part of the 6 months immediately preceding the presentation of the petition, or for a longer period in those 6 months than in any other insolvency district, or

(c)if the debtor is not resident in England and Wales, or

(d)if the petitioner is unable to ascertain the residence of the debtor, or his place of business.

(2) In any other case the petition shall be presented to the county court for the insolvency district in which the debtor has resided or carried on business for the longest period during those 6 months.

(3) If the debtor has for the greater part of those 6 months carried on business in one insolvency district and resided in another, the petition shall be presented to the court for the insolvency district in which he has carried on business.

(4) If the debtor has during those 6 months carried on business in more than one insolvency district, the petition shall be presented to the court for the insolvency district in which is, or has been for the longest period in those 6 months, his principal place of business.

(5) The petition shall contain sufficient information to establish that it is brought in the appropriate court.

Commencement Information

I398Rule 6.9 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Procedure for presentation and filingE+W

6.10.—(1) The petition, verified by affidavit in accordance with Rule 6.12(1) below, shall be filed in court.

(2) No petition shall be filed unless there is produced with it the receipt for the deposit payable on presentation.

(3) The following copies of the petition shall also be delivered to the court with the petition—

(a)one for service on the debtor, and

(b)one to be exhibited to the affidavit verifying that service.

Each of these copies shall have applied to it the seal of the court, and shall be issued to the petitioner.

(4) The date and time of filing the petition shall be endorsed on the petition and on any copy issued under paragraph (3).

(5) The court shall fix a venue for hearing the petition, and this also shall be endorsed on the petition and on any copy so issued.

Commencement Information

I399Rule 6.10 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Proof of service of statutory demandE+W

6.11.—(1) Where under section 268 the petition must have been preceded by a statutory demand, there must be filed in court, with the petition, an affidavit proving service of the demand.

(2) The affidavit must have exhibited to it a copy of the demand as served.

(3) [[FORM 6.11]] Subject to the next paragraph, if the demand has been served personally on the debtor, the affidavit must be made by the person who effected that service.

(4) If service of the demand (however effected) has been acknowledged in writing either by the debtor himself, or by some person stating himself in the acknowledgement to be authorised to accept service on the debtor's behalf, the affidavit must be made either by the creditor or by a person acting on his behalf, and the acknowledgement of service must be exhibited to the affidavit.

(5) [[FORM 6.12]] If neither paragraph (3) nor paragraph (4) applies, the affidavit must be made by a person having direct personal knowledge of the means adopted for serving the statutory demand, and must—

(a)give particulars of the steps which have been taken with a view to serving the demand, and

(b)state the means whereby (those steps having been ineffective) it was sought to bring the demand to the debtor's attention, and

(c)specify a date by which, to the best of the knowledge, information and belief of the person making the affidavit, the demand will have come to the debtor's attention.

(6) The steps of which particulars are given for the purposes of paragraph (5)(a) must be such as would have sufficed to justify an order for substituted service of a petition.

(7) If the affidavit specifies a date for the purposes of compliance with paragraph (5)(c), then unless the court otherwise orders, that date is deemed for the purposes of the Rules to have been the date on which the statutory demand was served on the debtor.

(8) Where the creditor has taken advantage of Rule 6.3(3) (newspaper advertisement), the affidavit must be made either by the creditor himself or by a person having direct personal knowledge of the circumstances; and there must be specified in the affidavit—

(a)the means of the creditor's knowledge or (as the case may be) belief required for the purposes of that Rule, and

(b)the date or dates on which, and the newspaper in which, the statutory demand was advertised under that Rule;

and there shall be exhibited to the affidavit a copy of any advertisement of the statutory demand.

(9) The court may decline to file the petition if not satisfied that the creditor has discharged the obligation imposed on him by Rule 6.3(2).

Commencement Information

I400Rule 6.11 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Verification of petitionE+W

6.12.—(1) [[FORM 6.13]] The petition shall be verified by an affidavit that the statements in the petition are true, or are true to the best of the deponent's knowledge, information and belief.

(2) If the petition is in respect of debts to different creditors, the debts to each creditor must be separately verified.

(3) The petition shall be exhibited to the affidavit verifying it.

(4) The affidavit shall be made—

(a)by the petitioner (or if there are two or more petitioners, any one of them), or

(b)by some person such as a director, company secretary or similar company officer, or a solicitor, who has been concerned in the matters giving rise to the presentation of the petition, or

(c)by some responsible person who is duly authorised to make the affidavit and has the requisite knowledge of those matters.

(5) Where the maker of the affidavit is not the petitioner himself, or one of the petitioners, he must in the affidavit identify himself and state—

(a)the capacity in which, and the authority by which, he makes it, and

(b)the means of his knowledge of the matters sworn to in the affidavit.

(6) The affidavit is prima facie evidence of the truth of the statements in the petition to which it relates.

(7) If the petition is based upon a statutory demand, and more than 4 months have elapsed between the service of the demand and the presentation of the petition, the affidavit must also state the reasons for the delay.

Commencement Information

I401Rule 6.12 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Notice to Chief Land RegistrarE+W

6.13.  [[FORM 6.14]] When the petition is filed, the court shall forthwith send to the Chief Land Registrar notice of the petition together with a request that it may be registered in the register of pending actions.

Commencement Information

I402Rule 6.13 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Service of petitionE+W

6.14.—(1) Subject as follows, the petition shall be served personally on the debtor by an officer of the court, or by the petitioning creditor or his solicitor, or by a person instructed by the creditor or his solicitor for that purpose; and service shall be effected by delivering to him a sealed copy of the petition.

(2) If the court is satisfied by affidavit or other evidence on oath that prompt personal service cannot be effected because the debtor is keeping out of the way to avoid service of the petition or other legal process, or for any other cause, it may order substituted service to be effected in such manner as it thinks fit.

(3) [[FORM 6.15] [[FORM 6.16]] Where an order for substituted service has been carried out, the petition is deemed duly served on the debtor.

Commencement Information

I403Rule 6.14 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Proof of serviceE+W

6.15.—(1) [[FORM 6.17] or [FORM 6.18]] Service of the petition shall be proved by affidavit.

(2) The affidavit shall have exhibited to it—

(a)a sealed copy of the petition, and

(b)if substituted service has been ordered, a sealed copy of the order;

and it shall be filed in court immediately after service.

Commencement Information

I404Rule 6.15 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Death of debtor before serviceE+W

6.16.  If the debtor dies before service of the petition, the court may order service to be effected on his personal representatives, or on such other persons as it thinks fit.

Commencement Information

I405Rule 6.16 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Security for costs (s. 268(2) only)E+W

6.17.—(1) This Rule applies where the debt in respect of which the petition is presented is for a liquidated sum payable at some future time, it being claimed in the petition that the debtor appears to have no reasonable prospect of being able to pay it.

(2) The petitioning creditor may, on the debtor's application, be ordered to give security for the debtor's costs.

(3) The nature and amount of the security to be ordered is in the court's discretion.

(4) If an order is made under this Rule, there shall be no hearing of the petition until the whole amount of the security has been given.

Commencement Information

I406Rule 6.17 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Hearing of petitionE+W

6.18.—(1) Subject as follows, the petition shall not be heard until at least 14 days have elapsed since it was served on the debtor.

(2) The court may, on such terms as it thinks fit, hear the petition at an earlier date, if it appears that the debtor has absconded, or the court is satisfied that it is a proper case for an expedited hearing, or the debtor consents to a hearing within the 14 days.

(3) Any of the following may appear and be heard, that is to say; the petitioning creditor, the debtor and any creditor who has given notice under Rule 6.23 below.

Commencement Information

I407Rule 6.18 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Petition against two or more debtorsE+W

6.19.  Where two or more debtors are named in the petition, and the petition has not been served on both or all of them, the petition may be heard separately or collectively as regards any of those who have been served, and may subsequently be heard (separately or collectively) as regards the others, as and when service on them is effected.

Commencement Information

I408Rule 6.19 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Petition by moneylenderE+W

6.20.  A petition in respect of a moneylending transaction made before 27th January 1980 of a creditor who at the time of the transaction was a licensed moneylender shall at the hearing of the petition be supported by an affidavit incorporating a statement setting out in detail the particulars mentioned in section 9(2) of the Moneylenders Act 1927

Commencement Information

I409Rule 6.20 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Petition opposed by debtorE+W

6.21.  Where the debtor intends to oppose the petition, he shall not later than 7 days before the day fixed for the hearing—

(a)[[FORM 6.19]] file in court a notice specifying the grounds on which he will object to the making of a bankruptcy order, and

(b)send a copy of the notice to the petitioning creditor or his solicitor.

Commencement Information

I410Rule 6.21 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Amendment of petitionE+W

6.22.  With the leave of the court (given on such terms, if any, as the court thinks fit to impose), the petition may be amended at any time after presentation by the omission of any creditor or any debt.

Commencement Information

I411Rule 6.22 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Notice by persons intending to appearE+W

6.23.—(1) [[FORM 6.20]] Every creditor who intends to appear on the hearing of the petition shall give to the petitioning creditor notice of his intention in accordance with this Rule.

(2) The notice shall specify—

(a)the name and address of the person giving it, and any telephone number and reference which may be required for communication with him or with any other person (to be also specified in the notice) authorised to speak or act on his behalf;

(b)whether his intention is to support or oppose the petition; and

(c)the amount and nature of his debt.

(3) The notice shall be sent so as to reach the addressee not later than 16.00 hours on the business day before that which is appointed for the hearing (or, where the hearing has been adjourned, for the adjourned hearing).

(4) A person failing to comply with this Rule may appear on the hearing of the petition only with the leave of the court.

Commencement Information

I412Rule 6.23 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

List of appearancesE+W

6.24.—(1) [[FORM 6.21]] The petitioning creditor shall prepare for the court a list of the creditors (if any) who have given notice under Rule 6.23, specifying their names and addresses and (if known to him) their respective solicitors.

(2) Against the name of each creditor in the list it shall be stated whether his intention is to support the petition, or to oppose it.

(3) On the day appointed for the hearing of the petition, a copy of the list shall be handed to the court before the commencement of the hearing.

(4) If any leave is given under Rule 6.23(4), the petitioner shall add to the list the same particulars in respect of the person to whom leave has been given.

Commencement Information

I413Rule 6.24 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Decision on the hearingE+W

6.25.—(1) On the hearing of the petition, the court may make a bankruptcy order if satisfied that the statements in the petition are true, and that the debt on which it is founded has not been paid, or secured or compounded for.

(2) [[FORM 6.22]] If the petition is brought in respect of a judgment debt, or a sum ordered by any court to be paid, the court may stay or dismiss the petition on the ground that an appeal is pending from the judgment or order, or that execution of the judgment has been stayed.

(3) A petition preceded by a statutory demand shall not be dismissed on the ground only that the amount of the debt was over-stated in the demand, unless the debtor, within the time allowed for complying with the demand, gave notice to the creditor disputing the validity of the demand on that ground; but, in the absence of such notice, the debtor is deemed to have complied with the demand if he has, within the time allowed, paid the correct amount.

Commencement Information

I414Rule 6.25 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Non-appearance of creditorE+W

6.26.  If the petitioning creditor fails to appear on the hearing of the petition, no subsequent petition against the same debtor, either alone or jointly with any other person, shall be presented by the same creditor in respect of the same debt, without the leave of the court to which the previous petition was presented.

Commencement Information

I415Rule 6.26 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Vacating registration on dismissal of petitionE+W

6.27.  [[FORM 6.22]] If the petition is dismissed or withdrawn by leave of the court, an order shall be made at the same time permitting vacation of the registration of the petition as a pending action; and the court shall send to the debtor two sealed copies of the order.

Commencement Information

I416Rule 6.27 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Extension of time for hearingE+W

6.28.—(1) The petitioning creditor may, if the petition has not been served, apply to the court to appoint another venue for the hearing.

(2) The application shall state the reasons why the petition has not been served.

(3) No costs occasioned by the application shall be allowed in the proceedings except by order of the court.

(4) If the court appoints another day for the hearing, the petitioning creditor shall forthwith notify any creditor who has given notice under Rule 6.23.

Commencement Information

I417Rule 6.28 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

AdjournmentE+W

6.29.—(1) [[FORM 6.23]] If the court adjourns the hearing of the petition, the following applies.

(2) Unless the court otherwise directs, the petitioning creditor shall forthwith send—

(a)to the debtor, and

(b)where any creditor has given notice under Rule 6.23 but was not present at the hearing, to him,

[[FORM 6.24]] notice of the making of the order of adjournment. The notice shall state the venue for the adjourned hearing.

Commencement Information

I418Rule 6.29 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Substitution of petitionerE+W

6.30.—(1) This Rule applies where a creditor petitions and is subsequently found not entitled to do so, or where the petitioner—

(a)consents to withdraw his petition or to allow it to be dismissed, or consents to an adjournment, or fails to appear in support of his petition when it is called on in court on the day originally fixed for the hearing, or on a day to which it is adjourned, or

(b)appears, but does not apply for an order in the terms of the prayer of his petition.

(2) The court may, on such terms as it thinks just, order that there be substituted as petitioner any creditor who—

(a)has under Rule 6.23 given notice of his intention to appear at the hearing,

(b)is desirous of prosecuting the petition, and

(c)was, at the date on which the petition was presented, in such a position in relation to the debtor as would have enabled him (the creditor) on that date to present a bankruptcy petition in respect of a debt or debts owed to him by the debtor, paragraphs (a) to (d) of section 267(2) being satisfied in respect of that debt or those debts.

Commencement Information

I419Rule 6.30 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Change of carriage of petitionE+W

6.31.—(1) On the hearing of the petition, any person who claims to be a creditor of the debtor, and who has given notice under Rule 6.23 of his intention to appear at the hearing, may apply to the court for an order giving him carriage of the petition in place of the petitioning creditor, but without requiring any amendment of the petition.

(2) The court may, on such terms as it thinks just, make a change of carriage order if satisfied that—

(a)the applicant is an unpaid and unsecured creditor of the debtor, and

(b)the petitioning creditor either—

(i)intends by any means to secure the postponement, adjournment or withdrawal of the petition, or

(ii)does not intend to prosecute the petition, either diligently or at all.

(3) The court shall not make the order if satisfied that the petitioning creditor's debt has been paid, secured or compounded for by means of—

(a)a disposition of property made by some person other than the debtor, or

(b)a disposition of the debtor's own property made with the approval of, or ratified by, the court.

(4) A change of carriage order may be made whether or not the petitioning creditor appears at the hearing.

(5) If the order is made, the person given the carriage of the petition is entitled to rely on all evidence previously adduced in the proceedings (whether by affidavit or otherwise).

Commencement Information

I420Rule 6.31 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Petitioner seeking dismissal or leave to withdrawE+W

6.32.—(1) Where the petitioner applies to the court for the petition to be dismissed, or for leave to withdraw it, he must, unless the court otherwise orders, file in court an affidavit specifying the grounds of the application and the circumstances in which it is made.

(2) If, since the petition was filed, any payment has been made to the petitioner by way of settlement (in whole or in part) of the debt or debts in respect of which the petition was brought, or any arrangement has been entered into for securing or compounding it or them, the affidavit must state—

(a)what dispositions of property have been made for the purposes of the settlement or arrangement, and

(b)whether, in the case of any disposition, it was property of the debtor himself, or of some other person, and

(c)whether, if it was property of the debtor, the disposition was made with the approval of, or has been ratified by, the court (if so, specifying the relevant court order).

(3) [[FORM 6.22]] No order giving leave to withdraw a petition shall be given before the petition is heard.

Commencement Information

I421Rule 6.32 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Settlement and content of bankruptcy orderE+W

6.33.—(1) [[FORM 6.25]] The bankruptcy order shall be settled by the court.

(2) The order shall—

(a)state the date of the presentation of the petition on which the order is made, and the date and time of the making of the order, and

(b)contain a notice requiring the bankrupt, forthwith after service of the order on him, to attend on the official receiver at the place stated in the order.

(3) Subject to section 346 (effect of bankruptcy on enforcement procedures), the order may include provision staying any action or proceeding against the bankrupt.

(4) Where the petitioning creditor is represented by a solicitor, the order shall be endorsed with the latter's name, address, telephone number and reference (if any).

Commencement Information

I422Rule 6.33 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Action to follow making of orderE+W

6.34.—(1) At least two sealed copies of the bankruptcy order shall be sent forthwith by the court to the official receiver, who shall forthwith send one of them to the bankrupt.

(2) [[FORM 6.26]] Subject to the next paragraph, the official receiver shall—

(a)send notice of the making of the order to the Chief Land Registrar, for registration in the register of writs and orders affecting land,

(b)cause the order to be advertised in such local paper as the official receiver thinks fit, and

(c)cause the order to be gazetted.

(3) The court may, on the application of the bankrupt or a creditor, order the official receiver to suspend action under paragraph (2), pending a further order of the court.

An application under this paragraph shall be supported by an affidavit stating the grounds on which it is made.

(4) Where an order is made under paragraph (3) the applicant for the order shall forthwith deliver a copy of it to the official receiver.

Commencement Information

I423Rule 6.34 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Amendment of title of proceedingsE+W

6.35.—(1) At any time after the making of a bankruptcy order, the official receiver or the trustee may apply to the court for an order amending the full title of the proceedings.

(2) Where such an order is made, the official receiver shall forthwith send notice of it to the Chief Land Registrar, for corresponding amendment of the register; and, if the court so directs he shall also cause notice of the order to be gazetted, and to be advertised in such local newspaper as the official receiver thinks fit.

Commencement Information

I424Rule 6.35 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Old bankruptcy noticesE+W

6.36.—(1) Subject as follows, a person who has before the appointed day for the purposes of the Act served a bankruptcy notice under the Bankruptcy Act 1914 may, on or after that day, proceed on the notice as if it were a statutory demand duly served under Chapter 1 of this Part of the Rules.

(2) The conditions of the application of this Rule are that—

(a)the debt in respect of which the bankruptcy notice was served has not been paid, secured or compounded for in the terms of the notice and the Act of 1914;

(b)the date by which compliance with the notice was required was not more than 3 months before the date of presentation of the petition; and

(c)there has not, before the appointed day, been presented any bankruptcy petition with reference to an act of bankruptcy arising from non-compliance with the bankruptcy notice.

(3) If before, on or after the appointed day, application is made (under the Act of 1914) to set the bankruptcy notice aside, that application is to be treated, on and after that day, as an application duly made (on the date on which it was in fact made) to set aside a statutory demand duly served on the date on which the bankruptcy notice was in fact served.

Commencement Information

I425Rule 6.36 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

CHAPTER 3E+WBANKRUPTCY PETITION (DEBTOR'S)

PreliminaryE+W

6.37.  [[FORM 6.27]] The Rules in this Chapter relate to a debtor's petition, and the making of a bankruptcy order thereon.

Commencement Information

I426Rule 6.37 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Identification of debtorE+W

6.38.—(1) The petition shall state the following matters with respect to the debtor—

(a)his name, place of residence and occupation (if any);

(b)the name or names in which he carries on business, if other than his true name, and whether, in the case of any business of a specified nature, he carries it on alone or with others;

(c)the nature of his business, and the address or addresses at which he carries it on;

(d)any name or names, other than his true name, in which he has carried on business in the period in which any of his bankruptcy debts were incurred and, in the case of any such business, whether he has carried it on alone or with others; and

(e)any address or addresses at which he has resided or carried on business during that period, and the nature of that business.

(2) The particulars of the debtor given under this Rule determine the full title of the proceedings.

(3) If the debtor has at any time used a name other than the one given under paragraph (1)(a), that fact shall be stated in the petition.

Commencement Information

I427Rule 6.38 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Admission of insolvencyE+W

6.39.—(1) The petition shall contain the statement that the petitioner is unable to pay his debts, and a request that a bankruptcy order be made against him.

(2) If within the period of 5 years ending with the date of the petition the petitioner has been adjudged bankrupt, or has made a composition with his creditors in satisfaction of his debts or a scheme of arrangement of his affairs, or he has entered into any voluntary arrangement or been subject to an administration order under Part VI of the County Courts Act 1984, particulars of these matters shall be given in the petition.

Commencement Information

I428Rule 6.39 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Court in which petition to be filedE+W

6.40.—(1) In the following cases, the petition shall be presented to the High Court—

(a)if the debtor has resided or carried on business in the London insolvency district for the greater part of the 6 months immediately preceding the presentation of the petition, or for a longer period in those 6 months than in any other insolvency district, or

(b)if the debtor is not resident in England and Wales.

(2) In any other case, the petition shall (subject to paragraph (3) below), be presented to the debtor's own county court, which is—

(a)the county court for the insolvency district in which he has resided or carried on business for the longest period in those 6 months, or

(b)if he has for the greater part of those 6 months carried on business in one insolvency district and resided in another, the county court for that in which he has carried on business, or

(c)if he has during those 6 months carried on business in more than one insolvency district, the county court for that in which is, or has been for the longest period in those 6 months, his principal place of business.

(3) If, in a case not falling within paragraph (1), it is more expedient for the debtor with a view to expediting his petition, it may be presented to whichever county court is specified by Schedule 2 to the Rules as being, in relation to the debtor's own county court, the nearest full-time court.

(4) The petition shall contain sufficient information to establish that it is brought in the appropriate court.

Commencement Information

I429Rule 6.40 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Statement of affairsE+W

6.41.—(1) [[FORM 6.28]] The petition shall be accompanied by a statement of the debtor's affairs, verified by affidavit.

(2) Section B of Chapter 5 below applies with respect to the statement of affairs.

Commencement Information

I430Rule 6.41 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Procedure for presentation and filingE+W

6.42.—(1) The petition and the statement of affairs shall be filed in court, together with three copies of the petition, and two copies of the statement. No petition shall be filed unless there is produced with it the receipt for the deposit payable on presentation.

(2) The court may hear the petition forthwith. If it does not do so, it shall fix a venue for the hearing.

(3) Of the three copies of the petition delivered—

(a)one shall be returned to the petitioner, endorsed with any venue fixed;

(b)another, so endorsed, shall be retained by the court, to be sent to the official receiver if he is appointed interim receiver or a bankruptcy order is made; and

(c)the remaining copy shall be retained by the court, to be sent to an insolvency practitioner (if appointed under section 273(2)).

(4) Of the two copies of the statement of affairs—

(a)one shall be retained by the court, to be sent to the official receiver if he is appointed interim receiver or a bankruptcy order is made; and

(b)the other shall be retained by the court to be sent to the insolvency practitioner (if appointed).

(5) The affidavit verifying the debtor's statement of affairs may be sworn before an officer of the court duly authorised in that behalf.

Commencement Information

I431Rule 6.42 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Notice to Chief Land RegistrarE+W

6.43.  [[FORM 6.14]] When the petition is filed, the court shall forthwith send to the Chief Land Registrar notice of the petition, for registration in the register of pending actions.

Commencement Information

I432Rule 6.43 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Report of insolvency practitionerE+W

6.44.—(1) [[FORM 6.29]] If the court under section 273(2) appoints an insolvency practitioner to act in the debtor's case, it shall forthwith—

(a)send to the person appointed—

(i)a sealed copy of the order of appointment, and

(ii)copies of the petition and statement of affairs,

(b)fix a venue for the insolvency practitioner's report to be considered, and

(c)send notice of the venue to the insolvency practitioner and the debtor.

(2) The insolvency practitioner shall file his report in court with one copy, and send one copy of it to the debtor, so as to be in his hands not less than 3 days before the date fixed for consideration of the report.

(3) The debtor is entitled to attend when the report is considered, and shall attend if so directed by the court. If he attends, the court shall hear any representations which he makes with respect to any of the matters dealt with in the report.

(4) If the official receiver is appointed interim receiver or a bankruptcy order is made, a copy of the insolvency practitioner's report, the debtor's petition and his statement of affairs shall be sent by the court to the official receiver.

Commencement Information

I433Rule 6.44 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Settlement and content of bankruptcy orderE+W

6.45.—(1) [[FORM 6.30]] The bankruptcy order shall be settled by the court.

(2) The order shall—

(a)state the date of the presentation of the petition on which the order is made, and the date and time of the making of the order, and

(b)contain a notice requiring the bankrupt, forthwith after the service of the order on him, to attend on the official receiver at the place stated in the order.

(3) Subject to section 346 (effect of bankruptcy on enforcement procedures), the order may include provision staying any action or proceeding against the bankrupt.

(4) Where the bankrupt is represented by a solicitor, the order shall be endorsed with the latter's name, address, telephone number and reference.

Commencement Information

I434Rule 6.45 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Action to follow making of orderE+W

6.46.—(1) At least two sealed copies of the bankruptcy order shall be sent forthwith by the court to the official receiver, who shall forthwith send one of them to the bankrupt.

(2) Subject to the next paragraph, the official receiver shall—

(a)[[FORM 6.26]] send notice of the making of the order to the Chief Land Registrar, for registration in the register of writs and orders affecting land,

(b)cause the order to be advertised in such local paper as the official receiver thinks fit, and

(c)cause notice of the order to be gazetted.

(3) The court may, on the application of the bankrupt or a creditor, order the official receiver to suspend action under paragraph (2), pending a further order of the court.

An application under this paragraph shall be supported by an affidavit stating the grounds on which it is made.

(4) Where an order is made under paragraph (3), the applicant shall forthwith deliver a copy of it to the official receiver.

Commencement Information

I435Rule 6.46 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Amendment of title of proceedingsE+W

6.47.—(1) At any time after the making of the bankruptcy order, the official receiver or the trustee may apply to the court for an order amending the full title of the proceedings.

(2) Where such an order is made, the official receiver shall forthwith send notice of it to the Chief Land Registrar, for corresponding amendment of the register; and, if the court so directs, he shall also—

(a)cause notice of the order to be gazetted, and

(b)cause notice of the order to be advertised in such local paper as the official receiver thinks appropriate.

Commencement Information

I436Rule 6.47 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Certificate of summary administrationE+W

6.48.—(1) [[FORM 6.30]]

(1) If the court under section 275 issues a certificate for the summary administration of the bankrupt's estate, the certificate may be included in the bankruptcy order.

(2) If the certificate is not so included, the court shall forthwith send copies of it to the official receiver and the bankrupt.

Commencement Information

I437Rule 6.48 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Duty of official receiver in summary administrationE+W

6.49.—(1) Where a trustee has been appointed, the official receiver shall send a copy of the certificate of summary administration (whether or not included in the bankruptcy order) to him.

(2) Within 12 weeks after the issue of the certificate the official receiver shall (insofar as he has not already done so) give notice to creditors of the making of the bankruptcy order.

Commencement Information

I438Rule 6.49 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Revocation of certificate of summary administrationE+W

6.50.—(1) [[FORM 6.31]] The court may under section 275(3) revoke a certificate for summary administration, either of its own motion or on the application of the official receiver.

(2) If the official receiver applies for the certificate to be revoked, he shall give at least 14 days' notice of the application to the bankrupt.

(3) If the court revokes the certificate, it shall forthwith give notice to the official receiver and the bankrupt.

(4) If at the time of revocation there is a trustee other than the official receiver, the official receiver shall send a copy of the court's notice to him.

Commencement Information

I439Rule 6.50 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

CHAPTER 4E+WTHE INTERIM RECEIVER

Application for appointment of interim receiverE+W

6.51.—(1) An application to the court for the appointment of an interim receiver under section 286 may be made by a creditor or by the debtor, or by an insolvency practitioner appointed under section 273(2).

(2) The application must be supported by an affidavit stating—

(a)the grounds on which it is proposed that the interim receiver should be appointed,

(b)whether or not the official receiver has been informed of the application and, if so, has been furnished with a copy of it,

(c)whether to the applicant's knowledge there has been proposed or is in force a voluntary arrangement under Part VIII of the Act, and

(d)the applicant's estimate of the value of the property or business in respect of which the interim receiver is to be appointed.

(3) If an insolvency practitioner has been appointed under section 273, and it is proposed that he (and not the official receiver) should be appointed interim receiver, and it is not the insolvency practitioner himself who is the applicant under this Rule, the affidavit under paragraph (2) must state that he has consented to act.

(4) The applicant shall send copies of the application and the affidavit to the person proposed to be appointed interim receiver. If that person is the official receiver and an insolvency practitioner has been appointed under section 273 (and he is not himself the applicant), copies of the application and affidavit shall be sent by the applicant to the insolvency practitioner.

If, in any case where a copy of the application is to be sent to a person under this paragraph, it is for any reason not practicable to send a copy, that person must be informed of the application in sufficient time to enable him to be present at the hearing.

(5) The official receiver and (if appointed) the insolvency practitioner may attend the hearing of the application and make representations.

(6) The court may on the application, if satisfied that sufficient grounds are shown for the appointment, make it on such terms as it thinks fit.

Commencement Information

I440Rule 6.51 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Order of appointmentE+W

6.52.—(1) [[FORM 6.32]] The order appointing the interim receiver shall state the nature and a short description of the property of which the person appointed is to take possession, and the duties to be performed by him in relation to the debtor's affairs.

(2) The court shall, forthwith after the order is made, send 2 sealed copies of it to the person appointed interim receiver (one of which shall be sent by him forthwith to the debtor).

Commencement Information

I441Rule 6.52 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

DepositE+W

6.53.—(1) Before an order appointing the official receiver as interim receiver is issued, the applicant for it shall deposit with him, or otherwise secure to his satisfaction, such sum as the court directs to cover his remuneration and expenses.

(2) If the sum deposited or secured subsequently proves to be insufficient, the court may, on application by the official receiver, order that an additional sum be deposited or secured. If the order is not complied with within 2 days after service on the person to whom the order is directed, the court may discharge the order appointing the interim receiver.

(3) If a bankruptcy order is made after an interim receiver has been appointed, any money deposited under this Rule shall (unless it is required by reason of insufficiency of assets for payment of remuneration and expenses of the interim receiver, or the deposit was made by the debtor out of his own property) be repaid to the person depositing it (or as that person may direct) out of the bankrupt's estate, in the prescribed order of priority.

Commencement Information

I442Rule 6.53 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

SecurityE+W

6.54.—(1) The following applies where an insolvency practitioner is appointed to be interim receiver under section 286(2).

(2) The cost of providing the security required under the Act shall be paid in the first instance by the interim receiver; but—

(a)if a bankruptcy order is not made, the person so appointed is entitled to be reimbursed out of the property of the debtor, and the court may make an order on the debtor accordingly, and

(b)if a bankruptcy order is made, he is entitled to be reimbursed out of the estate in the prescribed order of priority.

Commencement Information

I443Rule 6.54 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Failure to give or keep up securityE+W

6.55.—(1) If the interim receiver fails to give or keep up his security, the court may remove him, and make such order as it thinks fit as to costs.

(2) If an order is made under this Rule removing the interim receiver, or discharging the order appointing him, the court shall give directions as to whether any, and if so what, steps should be taken for the appointment of another person in his place.

Commencement Information

I444Rule 6.55 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

RemunerationE+W

6.56.—(1) The remuneration of the interim receiver (other than the official receiver) shall be fixed by the court from time to time on his application.

(2) In fixing the interim receiver's remuneration, the court shall take into account—

(a)the time properly given by him (as interim receiver) and his staff in attending to the debtor's affairs,

(b)the complexity (or otherwise) of the case,

(c)any respects in which, in connection with the debtor's affairs, there falls on the interim receiver any responsibility of an exceptional kind or degree,

(d)the effectiveness with which the interim receiver appears to be carrying out, or to have carried out, his duties as such, and

(e)the value and nature of the property with which he has to deal.

(3) The interim receiver's remuneration (whether the official receiver or another) shall be paid to him, and the amount of any expenses incurred by him reimbursed—

(a)if a bankruptcy order is not made, out of the property of the debtor (and the court may make an order on the debtor accordingly), and

(b)if a bankruptcy order is made, out of the estate in the prescribed order of priority,

or, in either case (the relevant funds being insufficient), out of the deposit under Rule 6.53.

Commencement Information

I445Rule 6.56 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Termination of appointmentE+W

6.57.—(1) The appointment of the interim receiver may be terminated by the court on his application, or on that of the official receiver, the debtor or any creditor.

(2) If the interim receiver's appointment terminates, in consequence of the dismissal of the bankruptcy petition or otherwise, the court may give such directions as it thinks fit with respect to the accounts of his administration and any other matters which it thinks appropriate.

(3) The court may under paragraph (2)—

(a)direct that any expenses properly incurred by the interim receiver during the period of his appointment, and any remuneration to which he is entitled, be paid out of property of the debtor, and

(b)authorise him to retain out of that property such sums as are required for meeting his expenses and remuneration.

Alternatively, the court may make such order as it thinks fit with respect to those matters.

Commencement Information

I446Rule 6.57 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

CHAPTER 5E+WDISCLOSURE BY BANKRUPT WITH RESPECT TO THE STATE OF HIS AFFAIRS

SECTION A: CREDITOR'S PETITIONE+W
PreliminaryE+W

6.58.  The Rules in this Section apply with respect to the statement of affairs required by section 288(1) to be submitted by the bankrupt, following a bankruptcy order made on a creditor's petition, and the further and other disclosure which is required of him in that case.

Commencement Information

I447Rule 6.58 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

The statement of affairsE+W

6.59.  [[FORM 6.33]] The bankrupt's statement of affairs shall be in Form 6.33, and contain all the particulars required by that form.

Commencement Information

I448Rule 6.59 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Verification and filingE+W

6.60.—(1) The bankrupt shall be furnished by the official receiver with instructions for the preparation of his statement of affairs, and the forms required for that purpose.

(2) The statement of affairs shall be verified by affidavit and delivered to the official receiver, together with one copy.

(3) The official receiver shall file the verified statement in court.

(4) The affidavit may be sworn before an official receiver or a deputy official receiver, or before an officer of the Department or the court duly authorised in that behalf.

Commencement Information

I449Rule 6.60 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Limited disclosureE+W

6.61.—(1) Where the official receiver thinks that it would prejudice the conduct of the bankruptcy for the whole or part of the statement of affairs to be disclosed, he may apply to the court for an order of limited disclosure in respect of the statement, or any specified part of it.

(2) The court may on the application order that the statement or, as the case may be, the specified part of it be not filed in court, or that it is to be filed separately and not be open to inspection otherwise than with leave of the court.

Commencement Information

I450Rule 6.61 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Release from duty to submit statement of affairs; extension of timeE+W

6.62.—(1) The power of the official receiver under section 288(3) to release the bankrupt from his duty to submit a statement of affairs, or to grant an extension of time, may be exercised at the official receiver's own discretion, or at the bankrupt's request.

(2) The bankrupt may, if he request a release or extension of time and it is refused by the official receiver, apply to the court for it.

(3) The court may, if it thinks that no sufficient cause is shown for the application, dismiss it; but it shall not do so unless the bankrupt has had an opportunity to attend the court for an ex parte hearing, of which he has been given at least 7 days' notice.

If the application is not dismissed under this paragraph, the court shall fix a venue for it to be heard, and give notice to the bankrupt accordingly.

(4) The bankrupt shall, at least 14 days before the hearing, send to the official receiver a notice stating the venue and accompanied by a copy of the application, and of any evidence which he (the bankrupt) intends to adduce in support of it.

(5) The official receiver may appear and be heard on the application; and, whether or not he appears, he may file a written report of any matters which he considers ought to be drawn to the court's attention.

If such a report is filed, a copy of it shall be sent by the official receiver to the bankrupt, not later than 5 days before the hearing.

(6) Sealed copies of any order made on the application shall be sent by the court to the bankrupt and the official receiver.

(7) On any application under this Rule the bankrupt's costs shall be paid in any event by him and, unless the court otherwise orders, no allowance towards them shall be made out of the estate.

Commencement Information

I451Rule 6.62 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Expenses of statement of affairsE+W

6.63.—(1) If the bankrupt cannot himself prepare a proper statement of affairs, the official receiver may, at the expense of the estate, employ some person or persons to assist in the preparation of the statement.

(2) At the request of the bankrupt, made on the grounds that he cannot himself prepare a proper statement, the official receiver may authorise an allowance payable out of the estate (in accordance with the prescribed order of priority) towards expenses to be incurred by the bankrupt in employing some person or persons to assist him in preparing it.

(3) Any such request by the bankrupt shall be accompanied by an estimate of the expenses involved; and the official receiver shall only authorise the employment of a named person or a named firm, being in either case approved by him.

(4) An authorisation given by the official receiver under this Rule shall be subject to such conditions (if any) as he thinks fit to impose with respect to the manner in which any person may obtain access to relevant books and papers.

(5) Nothing in this Rule relieves the bankrupt from any obligation with respect to the preparation, verification and submission of his statement of affairs, or to the provision of information to the official receiver or the trustee.

Commencement Information

I452Rule 6.63 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Requirement to submit accountsE+W

6.64.—(1) The bankrupt shall, at the request of the official receiver, furnish him with accounts relating to his affairs of such nature, as at such date and for such period as he may specify.

(2) The period specified may begin from a date up to 3 years preceding the date of the presentation of the bankruptcy petition.

(3) The court may, on the official receiver's application, require accounts in respect of any earlier period.

(4) Rule 6.63 applies (with the necessary modifications) in relation to accounts to be furnished under this Rule as it applies in relation to the statement of affairs.

Commencement Information

I453Rule 6.64 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Submission and filing of accountsE+W

6.65.—(1) The accounts to be furnished under Rule 6.64 shall, if the official receiver so requires, be verified by affidavit, and (whether or not so verified) delivered to him within 21 days of the request under Rule 6.64(1), or such longer period as he may allow.

(2) Two copies of the accounts and (where required) the affidavit shall be delivered by the bankrupt to the official receiver, who shall file one copy in court (with the affidavit, if any).

Commencement Information

I454Rule 6.65 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Further disclosureE+W

6.66.—(1) The official receiver may at any time require the bankrupt to submit (in writing) further information amplifying, modifying or explaining any matter contained in his statement of affairs, or in accounts submitted in pursuance of the Act or the Rules.

(2) The information shall, if the official receiver so directs, be verified by affidavit, and (whether or not so verified) delivered to him within 21 days of the requirement under this Rule, or such longer period as he may allow.

(3) Two copies of the documents containing the information and (where verification is directed) the affidavit shall be delivered by the bankrupt to the official receiver, who shall file one copy in court (with the affidavit, if any).

Commencement Information

I455Rule 6.66 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

SECTION B: DEBTOR'S PETITIONE+W
PreliminaryE+W

6.67.  The Rules in this Section apply with respect to the statement of affairs required in the case of a person petitioning for a bankruptcy order to be made against him, and the further disclosure which is required of him in that case.

Commencement Information

I456Rule 6.67 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Contents of statementE+W

6.68.  [[FORM 6.28]] The statement of affairs required by Rule 6.41 to accompany the debtor's petition shall be in Form 6.28, and contain all the particulars required by that form.

Commencement Information

I457Rule 6.68 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Requirement to submit accountsE+W

6.69.—(1) The bankrupt shall, at the request of the official receiver, furnish him with accounts relating to his affairs of such nature, as at such date and for such period as he may specify.

(2) The period specified may begin from a date up to 3 years preceding the date of the presentation of the bankruptcy petition.

(3) The court may, on the official receiver's application, require accounts in respect of any earlier period.

Commencement Information

I458Rule 6.69 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Submission and filing of accountsE+W

6.70.—(1) The accounts to be furnished under Rule 6.69 shall, if the official receiver so requires, be verified by affidavit, and (whether or not so verified) delivered to him within 21 days of the request under Rule 6.69, or such longer period as he may allow.

(2) Two copies of the accounts and (where required) the affidavit shall be delivered by the bankrupt to the official receiver, who shall file one copy in court (with the affidavit, if any).

Commencement Information

I459Rule 6.70 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Expenses of preparing accountsE+W

6.71.—(1) If the bankrupt cannot himself prepare proper accounts under Rule 6.69, the official receiver may, at the expense of the estate, employ some person or persons to assist in their preparation.

(2) At the request of the bankrupt, made on the grounds that he cannot himself prepare the accounts, the official receiver may authorise an allowance payable out of the estate (in accordance with the prescribed order of priority) towards expenses to be incurred by the bankrupt in employing some person or persons to assist him in their preparation.

(3) Any such request by the bankrupt shall be accompanied by an estimate of the expenses involved; and the official receiver shall only authorise the employment of a named person or a named firm, being in either case approved by him.

(4) An authorisation given by the official receiver under this Rule shall be subject to such conditions (if any) as he thinks fit to impose with respect to the manner in which any person may obtain access to relevant books and papers.

(5) Nothing in this Rule relieves the bankrupt from any obligation with respect to the preparation and submission of accounts, or to the provision of information to the official receiver or the trustee.

Commencement Information

I460Rule 6.71 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Further disclosureE+W

6.72.—(1) The official receiver may at any time require the bankrupt to submit (in writing) further information amplifying, modifying or explaining any matter contained in his statement of affairs, or in accounts submitted in pursuance of the Act or the Rules.

(2) The information shall, if the official receiver so directs, be verified by affidavit, and (whether or not so verified) delivered to him within 21 days from the date of the requirement under paragraph (1), or such longer period as he may allow.

(3) Two copies of the documents containing the information and (where verification is directed) the affidavit shall be delivered by the bankrupt to the official receiver, who shall file one copy in court, with the affidavit (if any).

Commencement Information

I461Rule 6.72 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

CHAPTER 6E+WINFORMATION TO CREDITORS

General duty of official receiverE+W

6.73.  In accordance with this Chapter, the official receiver shall, at least once after the making of the bankruptcy order, send a report to creditors with respect to the bankruptcy proceedings, and the state of the bankrupt's affairs.

Commencement Information

I462Rule 6.73 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Those entitled to be informedE+W

6.74.  Any reference in this Chapter to creditors is to creditors of the bankrupt who are known to the official receiver or, where the bankrupt has submitted a statement of affairs, are identified in the statement.

Commencement Information

I463Rule 6.74 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Report where statement of affairs lodgedE+W

6.75.—(1) Where the bankrupt has submitted a statement of affairs, and it has been filed in court, the official receiver shall send out to creditors a report containing a summary of the statement and such observations (if any) as he thinks fit to make with respect to it or to the bankrupt's affairs generally.

(2) The official receiver need not comply with paragraph (1) if he has previously reported to creditors with respect to the bankrupt's affairs (so far as known to him) and he is of opinion that there are no additional matters which ought to be brought to their attention.

Commencement Information

I464Rule 6.75 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Statement of affairs dispensed withE+W

6.76.—(1) This Rule applies where the bankrupt has been released from the obligation to submit a statement of affairs.

(2) As soon as may be after the release has been granted, the official receiver shall send to creditors a report containing a summary of the bankrupt's affairs (so far as within his knowledge), and his observations (if any) with respect to it or the bankrupt's affairs generally.

(3) The official receiver need not comply with paragraph (2) if he has previously reported to creditors with respect to the bankrupt's affairs (so far as known to him) and he is of opinion that there are no additional matters which ought to be brought to their attention.

Commencement Information

I465Rule 6.76 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

General rule as to reportingE+W

6.77.—(1) The court may, on the official receiver's application, relieve him of any duty imposed on him by this Chapter of the Rules, or authorise him to carry out the duty in a way other than there required.

(2) In considering whether to act as above, the court shall have regard to the cost of carrying out the duty, to the amount of the funds available in the estate, and to the extent of the interest of creditors or any particular class of them.

Commencement Information

I466Rule 6.77 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Bankruptcy order annulledE+W

6.78.  If the bankruptcy order is annulled, the duty of the official receiver to send reports under the preceding Rules in this Chapter ceases.

Commencement Information

I467Rule 6.78 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

CHAPTER 7E+WCREDITORS' MEETINGS

First meeting of creditorsE+W

6.79.—(1) If under section 293(1) the official receiver decides to summon a meeting of creditors, he shall fix a venue for the meeting; not more than 4 months from the date of the bankruptcy order.

(2) When a venue has been fixed, notice of the meeting shall be given—

(a)to the court, and

(b)to every creditor of the bankrupt who is known to the official receiver or is identified in the bankrupt's statement of affairs.

(3) Notice to the court shall be given forthwith; and the notice to creditors shall be given at least 21 days before the date fixed for the meeting.

(4) The notice to creditors shall specify a time and date, not more than 4 days before the date fixed for the meeting, by which they must lodge proofs and (if applicable) proxies, in order to be entitled to vote at the meeting.

(5) Notice of the meeting shall also be given by public advertisement.

(6) [[FORM 6.34]] Where the official receiver receives a request by a creditor under section 294 for a meeting of creditors to be summoned, and it appears to him that the request is properly made in accordance with the Act, he shall—

(a)withdraw any notice already given by him under section 293(2) (that he has decided not to summon such a meeting), and

(b)fix the venue of the meeting for not more than 3 months from his receipt of the creditor's request, and

(c)act in accordance with paragraphs (2) to (5) above, as if he had decided under section 293(1) to summon the meeting.

(7) A meeting summoned by the official receiver under section 293 or 294 is known as “the first meeting of creditors”.

Commencement Information

I468Rule 6.79 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Business at first meetingE+W

6.80.—(1) At the first meeting of creditors, no resolutions shall be taken other than the following—

(a)a resolution to appoint a named insolvency practitioner to be trustee in bankruptcy or two or more named insolvency practitioners as joint trustees;

(b)a resolution to establish a creditors' committee;

(c)(unless it has been resolved to establish a creditors' committee) a resolution specifying the terms on which the trustee is to be remunerated, or to defer consideration of that matter;

(d)(if, and only if, two or more persons are appointed to act jointly as trustee) a resolution specifying whether acts are to be done by both or all of them, or by only one;

(e)(where the meeting has been requisitioned under section 294) a resolution authorising payment out of the estate, as an expense of the bankruptcy, of the cost of summoning and holding the meeting;

(f)a resolution to adjourn the meeting for not more than 3 weeks;

(g)any other resolution which the chairman thinks it right to allow for special reasons.

(2) No resolution shall be proposed which has for its object the appointment of the official receiver as trustee.

Commencement Information

I469Rule 6.80 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

General power to call meetingsE+W

6.81.—(1) The official receiver or the trustee may at any time summon and conduct meetings of creditors for the purpose of ascertaining their wishes in all matters relating to the bankruptcy.

In relation to any meeting of creditors, the person summoning it is referred to as “the convener”.

(2) [[FORM 6.35]] When a venue for the meeting has been fixed, notice of the meeting shall be given by the convener to every creditor who is known to him or is identified in the bankrupt's statement of affairs.

The notice shall be given at least 21 days before the date fixed for the meeting.

(3) The notice to creditors shall specify the purpose for which the meeting is summoned, and a time and date (not more than 4 days before the meeting) by which creditors must lodge proxies and those who have not already lodged proofs must do so, in order to be entitled to vote at the meeting.

(4) Additional notice of the meeting may be given by public advertisement if the convener thinks fit, and shall be so given if the court so orders.

Commencement Information

I470Rule 6.81 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

The chairman at a meetingE+W

6.82.—(1) Where the convener of a meeting is the official receiver, he, or a person nominated by him, shall be chairman.

A nomination under this paragraph shall be in writing, unless the nominee is another official receiver or a deputy official receiver.

(2) Where the convener is other than the official receiver, the chairman shall be he, or a person nominated by him in writing to act.

A person nominated under this paragraph must be either—

(a)one who is qualified to act as an insolvency practitioner in relation to the bankrupt, or

(b)an employee of the trustee or his firm who is experienced in insolvency matters.

Commencement Information

I471Rule 6.82 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Requisitioned meetingsE+W

6.83.—(1) [[FORM 6.34]] A request by creditors to the official receiver for a meeting of creditors to be summoned shall be accompanied by—

(a)a list of the creditors concurring with the request and the amount of their respective claims in the bankruptcy,

(b)from each creditor concurring, written confirmation of his concurrence, and

(c)a statement of the purpose of the proposed meeting.

Sub-paragraphs (a) and (b) do not apply if the requisitioning creditor's debt is alone sufficient, without the concurrence of other creditors.

(2) The official receiver, if he considers the request to be properly made in accordance with the Act, shall—

(a)fix a venue for the meeting, to take place not more than 35 days from the receipt of the request, and

(b)give 21 days' notice of the meeting, and of the venue for it, to creditors.

(3) Where a request for a creditors' meeting is made to the trustee, this Rule applies to him as it does to the official receiver.

Commencement Information

I472Rule 6.83 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Attendance at meeting of bankrupt, etcE+W

6.84.—(1) [[FORM 6.36]] Whenever a meeting of creditors is summoned, the convener shall give at least 21 days' notice of the meeting to the bankrupt.

(2) If the meeting is adjourned, the chairman of the meeting shall (unless for any reason it appears to him to be unnecessary or impracticable) give notice of the fact to the bankrupt, if the latter was not himself present at the meeting.

(3) The convener may, if he thinks fit, give notice to the bankrupt that he is required to be present, or in attendance.

(4) In the case of any meeting, the bankrupt or any other person may, if he has given reasonable notice of his wish to be present, be admitted; but this is at the discretion of the chairman.

The chairman's decision is final as to what (if any) intervention may be made by the bankrupt, or by any other person admitted to the meeting under this paragraph.

(5) If the bankrupt is not present, and it is desired to put questions to him, the chairman may adjourn the meeting with a view to obtaining his attendance.

(6) Where the bankrupt is present at a creditors' meeting, only such questions may be put to him as the chairman may in his discretion allow.

Commencement Information

I473Rule 6.84 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Notice of meetings by advertisement onlyE+W

6.85.—(1) In the case of any meeting to be held under the Act or the Rules, the court may order that notice of it be given by public advertisement, and not by individual notice to the persons concerned.

(2) In considering whether to act under this Rule, the court shall have regard to the cost of public advertisement, to the amount of the funds available in the estate, and to the extent of the interest of creditors or any particular class of them.

Commencement Information

I474Rule 6.85 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Venue of meetingsE+W

6.86.—(1) In fixing the venue for a meeting of creditors, the person summoning the meeting shall have regard to the convenience of the creditors.

(2) Meetings shall in all cases be summoned for commencement between the hours of 10.00 and 16.00 hours on a business day, unless the court otherwise directs.

(3) [[FORM 8.5]] With every notice summoning a creditors' meeting there shall be sent out forms of proxy.

Commencement Information

I475Rule 6.86 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Expenses of summoning meetingsE+W

6.87.—(1) Subject to paragraph (3) below, the expenses of summoning and holding a meeting of creditors at the instance of any person other, than the official receiver or the trustee shall be paid by that person, who shall deposit security for their payment with the trustee or, if no trustee has been appointed, with the official receiver.

(2) The sum to be deposited shall be such as the trustee or (as the case may be) the official receiver determines to be appropriate; and neither shall act without the deposit having been made.

(3) Where a meeting is so summoned, it may vote that the expenses of summoning and holding it shall be payable out of the estate, as an expense of the bankruptcy.

(4) To the extent that any deposit made under this Rule is not required for the payment of expenses of summoning and holding the meeting, it shall be repaid to the person who made it.

Commencement Information

I476Rule 6.87 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

ResolutionsE+W

6.88.—(1) At a meeting of creditors, a resolution is passed when a majority (in value) of those present and voting, in person or by proxy, have voted in favour of the resolution.

(2) In the case of a resolution for the appointment of a trustee—

(a)if on any vote there are two nominees for appointment, the person who obtains the most support is appointed;

(b)if there are three or more nominees, and one of them has a clear majority over both or all the others together, that one is appointed; and

(c)in any other case the chairman shall continue to take votes (disregarding at each vote any nominee who has withdrawn and, if no nominee has withdrawn, the nominee who obtained the least support last time), until a clear majority is obtained for any one nominee.

(3) The chairman may at any time put to the meeting a resolution for the joint appointment of any two or more nominees.

(4) Where a resolution is proposed which affects a person in respect of his remuneration or conduct as trustee, or as proposed or former trustee, the vote of that person, and of any partner or employee of his, shall not be reckoned in the majority required for passing the resolution.

This paragraph applies with respect to a vote given by a person either as creditor or as proxy for a creditor (but subject to Rule 8.6 in Part 8 of the Rules).

Commencement Information

I477Rule 6.88 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Chairman of meeting as proxy-holderE+W

6.89.  Where the chairman at a meeting holds a proxy for a creditor, which requires him to vote for a particular resolution, and no other person proposes that resolution—

(a)he shall himself propose it, unless he considers that there is good reason for not doing so, and

(b)if he does not propose it, he shall forthwith after the meeting notify his principal of the reason why not.

Commencement Information

I478Rule 6.89 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Suspension of meetingE+W

6.90.  Once only in the course of any meeting, the chairman may, in his discretion and without an adjournment, declare the meeting suspended for any period up to one hour.

Commencement Information

I479Rule 6.90 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

AdjournmentE+W

6.91.—(1) The chairman at any meeting may, in his discretion, and shall if the meeting so resolves, adjourn it to such time and place as seems to him to be appropriate in the circumstances.

This is subject to Rule 6.129(3) in a case where the trustee or his nominee is chairman and a resolution has been proposed for the trustee's removal.

(2) If within a period of 30 minutes from the time appointed for the commencement of a meeting a quorum is not present, then by virtue of this Rule the meeting stands adjourned to such time and place as may be appointed by the chairman.

(3) An adjournment under this Rule shall not be for a period of more than 21 days; and Rule 6.86(1) and (2) applies with regard to the venue of the adjourned meeting.

(4) If there is no person present to act as chairman, some other person present (being entitled to vote) may make the appointment under paragraph (2), with the agreement of others present (being persons so entitled).

Failing agreement, the adjournment shall be to the same time and place in the next following week or, if that is not a business day, to the business day immediately following.

(5) Where a meeting is adjourned under this Rule, proofs and proxies may be used if lodged at any time up to midday on the business day immediately before the adjourned meeting.

Commencement Information

I480Rule 6.91 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

QuorumE+W

6.92.—(1) A creditors' meeting is not competent to act for any purpose, except—

(a)the election of a chairman,

(b)the admission by the chairman of creditors' proofs, for the purpose of their entitlement to vote, and

(c)the adjournment of the meeting,

unless there are present in person or by proxy at least 3 creditors, or all the creditors, if their number does not exceed 3, being in either case persons entitled to vote.

(2) One person present constitutes a quorum if—

(a)he is himself a creditor with entitlement to vote and he holds a number of proxies sufficient to ensure that, with his own vote, paragraph (1) of this Rule is complied with, or

(b)being the chairman or any other person, he holds that number of proxies.

Commencement Information

I481Rule 6.92 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Entitlement to voteE+W

6.93.—(1) Subject as follows, at a meeting of creditors a person is entitled to vote as a creditor only if—

(a)there has been duly lodged, by the time and date stated in the notice of the meeting, a proof of the debt claimed to be due to him from the bankrupt, and the claim has been admitted under Rule 6.94 for the purpose of entitlement to vote, and

(b)there has been lodged, by that time and date, any proxy requisite for that entitlement.

(2) The court may, in exceptional circumstances, by order declare the creditors, or any class of them, entitled to vote at creditors' meetings, without being required to prove their debts.

Where a creditor is so entitled, the court may, on the application of the trustee, make such consequential orders as it thinks fit (as for example an order treating a creditor as having proved his debt for the purpose of permitting payment of dividend).

(3) A creditor shall not vote in respect of a debt for an unliquidated amount, or any debt whose value is not ascertained, except where the chairman agrees to put upon the debt an estimated minimum value for the purpose of entitlement to vote and admits his proof for that purpose.

(4) A secured creditor is entitled to vote only in respect of the balance (if any) of his debt after deducting the value of his security as estimated by him.

(5) A creditor shall not vote in respect of a debt on, or secured by, a current bill of exchange or promissory note, unless he is willing—

(a)to treat the liability to him on the bill or note of every person who is liable on it antecedently to the bankrupt, and against whom a bankruptcy order has not been made (or, in the case of a company, which has not gone into liquidation), as a security in his hands, and

(b)to estimate the value of the security and (for the purpose of entitlement to vote, but not for dividend) to deduct it from his proof.

Commencement Information

I482Rule 6.93 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Admission and rejection of proofE+W

6.94.—(1) At any creditors' meeting the chairman has power to admit or reject a creditor's proof for the purpose of his entitlement to vote; and the power is exercisable with respect to the whole or any part of the proof.

(2) The chairman's decision under this Rule, or in respect of any matter arising under Rule 6.93, is subject to appeal to the court by any creditor, or by the bankrupt.

(3) If the chairman is in doubt whether a proof should be admitted or rejected, he shall mark it as objected to and allow the creditor to vote, subject to his vote being subsequently declared invalid if the objection to the proof is sustained.

(4) If on an appeal the chairman's decision is reversed or varied, or a creditor's vote is declared invalid, the court may order that another meeting be summoned, or make such other order as it thinks just.

(5) Neither the official receiver nor any person nominated by him to be chairman is personally liable for costs incurred by any person in respect of an application to the court under this Rule; and the chairman (if other than the official receiver or a person so nominated) is not so liable unless the court makes an order to that effect.

Commencement Information

I483Rule 6.94 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Record of proceedingsE+W

6.95.—(1) The chairman at any creditors' meeting shall cause minutes of the proceedings at the meeting, signed by him, to be retained by him as part of the records of the bankruptcy.

(2) He shall also cause to be made up and kept a list of all the creditors who attended the meeting.

(3) The minutes of the meeting shall include a record of every resolution passed; and it is the chairman's duty to see to it that particulars of all such resolutions, certified by him, are filed in court not more than 21 days after the date of the meeting.

Commencement Information

I484Rule 6.95 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

CHAPTER 8E+WPROOF OF BANKRUPTCY DEBTS

SECTION A: PROCEDURE FOR PROVINGE+W
Meaning of “prove”E+W

6.96.—(1) A person claiming to be a creditor of the bankrupt and wishing to recover his debt in whole or in part must (subject to any order of the court under Rule 6.93(2)) submit his claim in writing to the official receiver, where acting as receiver and manager, or to the trustee.

(2) The creditor is referred to as “proving” for his debt; and the document by which he seeks to establish his claim is his “proof”.

(3) [[FORM 6.37]] Subject to the next two paragraphs, the proof must be in the form known as “proof of debt” (whether the form prescribed by the Rules, or a substantially similar form), which shall be made out by or under the directions of the creditor, and signed by him or a person authorised in that behalf.

(4) Where a debt is due to a Minister of the Crown or a Government Department, the proof need not be in that form, provided that there are shown all such particulars of the debt as are required in the form used by other creditors, and as are relevant in the circumstances.

(5) [[FORM 6.38]] Where an existing trustee proves in a later bankruptcy under section 335(5), the proof must be in FORM 6.38.

(6) [[FORM 6.39]] In certain circumstances, specified below in this Chapter, the proof must be in the form of an affidavit.

Commencement Information

I485Rule 6.96 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Supply of formsE+W

6.97.—(1) Forms to be used for the purpose of proving bankruptcy debts shall be sent out by the official receiver or the trustee to every creditor of the bankrupt who is known to the sender, or is identified in the bankrupt's statement of affairs.

(2) The forms shall accompany (whichever is first)—

(a)the notice to creditors under section 293(2) (official receiver's decision not to call meeting of creditors), or

(b)the first notice calling a meeting of creditors, or

(c)where a certificate of summary administration has been issued by the court, the notice sent by the official receiver under Rule 6.49(2), or

(d)where a trustee is appointed by the court, the notice of his appointment sent by him to creditors.

(3) Where, with the leave of the court under section 297(7), the trustee advertises his appointment, he shall send proofs to the creditors within 4 months after the date of the bankruptcy order.

(4) The above paragraphs of this Rule are subject to any order of the court dispensing with the requirement to send out forms of proof, or altering the time at which the forms are to be sent.

Commencement Information

I486Rule 6.97 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Contents of proofE+W

6.98.—(1) The following matters shall be stated in a creditor's proof of debt—

(a)the creditor's name and address;

(b)the total amount of his claim as at the date of the bankruptcy order;

(c)whether or not that amount includes outstanding uncapitalised interest;

(d)whether or not the claim includes value added tax;

(e)whether the whole or any part of the debt falls within any (and if so which) of the categories of preferential debts under section 386 of, and Schedule 6 to, the Act (as read with Schedule 3 to the Social Security Pensions Act 1975;

(f)particulars of how and when the debt was incurred by the debtor;

(g)particulars of any security held, the date when it was given and the value which the creditor puts upon it; and

(h)the name, address and authority of the person signing the proof (if other than the creditor himself).

(2) There shall be specified in the proof any documents by reference to which the debt can be substantiated; but (subject as follows) it is not essential that such documents be attached to the proof or submitted with it.

(3) The trustee, or the convener or chairman of any meeting, may call for any document or other evidence to be produced to him, where he thinks it necessary for the purpose of substantiating the whole or any part of the claim made in the proof.

Commencement Information

I487Rule 6.98 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Claim established by affidavitE+W

6.99.—(1) [[FORM 6.39]] The trustee may, if he thinks it necessary, require a claim of debt to be verified by affidavit, for which purpose there shall be used the form known as “affidavit of debt”.

(2) An affidavit may be required notwithstanding that a proof of debt has already been lodged.

(3) The affidavit may be sworn before an official receiver or a deputy official receiver, or before an officer of the Department or of the court duly authorised in that behalf.

Commencement Information

I488Rule 6.99 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Cost of provingE+W

6.100.—(1) Subject as follows, every creditor bears the cost of proving his own debt, including such as may be incurred in providing documents or evidence under Rule 6.98(3).

(2) Costs incurred by the trustee in estimating the value of a bankruptcy debt under section 322(3) (debts not bearing a certain value) fall on the estate, as an expense of the bankruptcy.

(3) Paragraphs (1) and (2) apply unless the court otherwise orders.

Commencement Information

I489Rule 6.100 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Trustee to allow inspection of proofsE+W

6.101.  The trustee shall, so long as proofs lodged with him are in his hands, allow them to be inspected, at all reasonable times on any business day, by any of the following persons—

(a)any creditor who has submitted his proof of debt (unless his proof has been wholly rejected for purposes of dividend or otherwise),

(b)the bankrupt, and

(c)any person acting on behalf of either of the above.

Commencement Information

I490Rule 6.101 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Proof of licensed moneylenderE+W

6.102.  A proof of debt in respect of a moneylending transaction made before 27th January 1980, where the creditor was at the time of the transaction a licensed moneylender, shall have endorsed on or annexed to it a statement setting out in detail the particulars mentioned in section 9(2) of the Moneylenders Act 1927.

Commencement Information

I491Rule 6.102 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Transmission of proofs to trusteeE+W

6.103.—(1) Where a trustee is appointed, the official receiver shall forthwith transmit to him all the proofs which he has so far received, together with an itemised list of them.

(2) The trustee shall sign the list by way of receipt for the proofs, and return it to the official receiver.

(3) From then on, all proofs of debt shall be sent to the trustee and retained by him.

Commencement Information

I492Rule 6.103 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Admission and rejection of proofs for dividendE+W

6.104.—(1) A proof may be admitted for dividend either for the whole amount claimed by the creditor, or for part of that amount.

(2) If the trustee rejects a proof in whole or in part, he shall prepare a written statement of his reasons for doing so, and send it forthwith to the creditor.

Commencement Information

I493Rule 6.104 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Appeal against decision on proofE+W

6.105.—(1) If a creditor is dissatisfied with the trustee's decision with respect to his proof (including any decision on the question of preference), he may apply to the court for the decision to be reversed or varied.

The application must be made within 21 days of his receiving the statement sent under Rule 6.104(2).

(2) The bankrupt or any other creditor may, if dissatisfied with the trustee's decision admitting or rejecting the whole or any part of a proof, make such an application within 21 days of becoming aware of the trustee's decision.

(3) Where application is made to the court under this Rule, the court shall fix a venue for the application to be heard, notice of which shall be sent by the applicant to the creditor who lodged the proof in question (if it is not himself) and to the trustee.

(4) The trustee shall, on receipt of the notice, file in court the relevant proof, together (if appropriate) with a copy of the statement sent under Rule 6.104(2).

(5) After the application has been heard and determined, the proof shall, unless it has been wholly disallowed, be returned by the court to the trustee.

(6) The official receiver is not personally liable for costs incurred by any person in respect of an application under this Rule; and the trustee (if other than the official receiver) is not so liable unless the court makes an order to that effect.

Commencement Information

I494Rule 6.105 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Withdrawal or variation of proofE+W

6.106.  A creditor's proof may at any time, by agreement between himself and the trustee, be withdrawn or varied as to the amount claimed.

Commencement Information

I495Rule 6.106 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Expunging of proof by the courtE+W

6.107.—(1) The court may expunge a proof or reduce the amount claimed—

(a)on the trustee's application, where he thinks that the proof has been improperly admitted, or ought to be reduced; or

(b)on the application of a creditor, if the trustee declines to interfere in the matter.

(2) Where application is made to the court under this Rule, the court shall fix a venue for the application to be heard, notice of which shall be sent by the applicant—

(a)in the case of an application by the trustee, to the creditor who made the proof; and

(b)in the case of an application by a creditor, to the trustee and to the creditor who made the proof (if not himself).

Commencement Information

I496Rule 6.107 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

SECTION B: QUANTIFICATION OF CLAIME+W
Negotiable instruments, etcE+W

6.108.  Unless the trustee allows, a proof in respect of money owed on a bill of exchange, promissory note, cheque or other negotiable instrument or security cannot be admitted unless there is produced the instrument or security itself or a copy of it, certified by the creditor or his authorised representative to be a true copy.

Commencement Information

I497Rule 6.108 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Secured creditorsE+W

6.109.—(1) If a secured creditor realises his security, he may prove for the balance of his debt, after deducting the amount realised.

(2) If a secured creditor voluntarily surrenders his security for the general benefit of creditors, he may prove for his whole debt, as if it were unsecured.

Commencement Information

I498Rule 6.109 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

DiscountsE+W

6.110.  There shall in every case be deducted from the claim all trade and other discounts which would have been available to the bankrupt but for his bankruptcy, except any discount for immediate, early or cash settlement.

Commencement Information

I499Rule 6.110 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Debt in foreign currencyE+W

6.111.—(1) For the purpose of proving a debt incurred or payable in a currency other than sterling, the amount of the debt shall be converted into sterling at the official exchange rate prevailing on the date of the bankruptcy order.

(2) “The official exchange rate” is the middle market rate at the Bank of England, as published for the date in question. In the absence of any such published rate, it is such rate as the court determines.

Commencement Information

I500Rule 6.111 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Payments of a periodical natureE+W

6.112.—(1) In the case of rent and other payments of a periodical nature, the creditor may prove for any amounts due and unpaid up to the date of the bankruptcy order.

(2) Where at that date any payment was accruing due, the creditor may prove for so much as would have fallen due at that date, if accruing from day to day.

Commencement Information

I501Rule 6.112 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

InterestE+W

6.113.—(1) In the following circumstances the creditor's claim may include interest on the debt for periods before the bankruptcy order, although not previously reserved or agreed.

(2) If the debt is due by virtue of a written instrument and payable at a certain time, interest may be claimed for the period from that time to the date of the bankruptcy order.

(3) If the debt is due otherwise, interest may only be claimed if, before the presentation of the bankruptcy petition, a demand for payment was made in writing by or on behalf of the creditor, and notice given that interest would be payable from the date of the demand to the date of payment.

In that case interest may be claimed under this Rule for the period from the date of the demand to that of the bankruptcy order.

(4) The rate of interest to be claimed under this Rule is the rate specified in section 17 of the Judgments Act 1838 on the date of the bankruptcy order; except that, where the case falls within paragraph (3), the rate is that specified in the notice there referred to, not exceeding the rate under the Judgments Act as mentioned above.

Commencement Information

I502Rule 6.113 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Debt payable at future timeE+W

6.114.  A creditor may prove for a debt of which payment was not yet due at the date of the bankruptcy order, but subject to Rule 11.13 in Part 11 of the Rules (adjustment of dividend where payment made before time).

Commencement Information

I503Rule 6.114 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

CHAPTER 9E+WSECURED CREDITORS

Value of securityE+W

6.115.—(1) A secured creditor may, with the agreement of the trustee or the leave of the court, at any time alter the value which he has, in his proof of debt, put upon his security.

(2) However, if a secured creditor—

(a)being the petitioner, has in the petition put a value on his security, or

(b)has voted in respect of the unsecured balance of his debt,

he may re-value his security only with leave of the court.

Commencement Information

I504Rule 6.115 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Surrender for non-disclosureE+W

6.116.—(1) If a secured creditor omits to disclose his security in his proof of debt, he shall surrender his security for the general benefit of creditors, unless the court, on application by him, relieves him from the effect of this Rule on the ground that the omission was inadvertent or the result of honest mistake.

(2) If the court grants that relief, it may require or allow the creditor's proof of debt to be amended, on such terms as may be just.

Commencement Information

I505Rule 6.116 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Redemption by trusteeE+W

6.117.—(1) The trustee may at any time give notice to a creditor whose debt is secured that he proposes, at the expiration of 28 days from the date of the notice, to redeem the security at the value put upon it in the creditor's proof.

(2) The creditor then has 21 days (or such longer period as the trustee may allow) in which, if he so wishes, to exercise his right to re-value his security (with the leave of the court, where Rule 6.115(2) applies).

If the creditor re-values his security, the trustee may only redeem at the new value.

(3) If the trustee redeems the security, the cost of transferring it is borne by the estate.

(4) A secured creditor may at any time, by a notice in writing, call on the trustee to elect whether he will or will not exercise his power to redeem the security at the value then placed on it; and the trustee then has 6 months in which to exercise the power or determine not to exercise it.

Commencement Information

I506Rule 6.117 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Test of security's valueE+W

6.118.—(1) Subject as follows, the trustee, if he is dissatisfied with the value which a secured creditor puts on his security (whether in his proof or by way of re-valuation under Rule 6.117), may require any property comprised in the security to be offered for sale.

(2) The terms of sale shall be such as may be agreed, or as the court may direct; and if the sale is by auction, the trustee on behalf of the estate, and the creditor on his own behalf, may appear and bid.

(3) This Rule does not apply if the security has been re-valued and the re-valuation has been approved by the court.

Commencement Information

I507Rule 6.118 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Realisation of security by creditorE+W

6.119.  If a creditor who has valued his security subsequently realises it (whether or not at the instance of the trustee)—

(a)the net amount realised shall be substituted for the value previously put by the creditor on the security, and

(b)that amount shall be treated in all respects as an amended valuation made by him.

Commencement Information

I508Rule 6.119 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

CHAPTER 10E+WTHE TRUSTEE IN BANKRUPTCY

SECTION A: APPOINTMENT AND ASSOCIATED FORMALITIESE+W
Appointment by creditors' meetingE+W

6.120.—(1) This Rule applies where a person has been appointed trustee by resolution of a creditors' meeting.

(2) [[FORM 6.40] or [FORM 6.41]] The chairman of the meeting shall certify the appointment, but not unless and until the person to be appointed has provided him with a written statement to the effect that he is an insolvency practitioner, duly qualified under the Act to act as trustee in relation to the bankrupt, and that he consents so to act.

(3) The chairman (if not himself the official receiver) shall send the certificate to the official receiver.

(4) The official receiver shall in any case file a copy of the certificate in court; and the trustee's appointment is effective as from the date on which the official receiver files the copy certificate in court, that date to be endorsed on the copy certificate.

The certificate, so endorsed, shall be sent by the official receiver to the trustee.

Commencement Information

I509Rule 6.120 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Appointment by the courtE+W

6.121.—(1) [[FORM 6.42] or [FORM 6.43]] This Rule applies where the court under section 297(3), (4) or (5) appoints the trustee.

(2) The court's order shall not issue unless and until the person appointed has filed in court a statement to the effect that he is an insolvency practitioner, duly qualified under the Act to be the trustee, and that he consents so to act.

(3) Thereafter, the court shall send 2 copies of the order to the official receiver. One of the copies shall be sealed, and this shall be sent by him to the person appointed as trustee.

(4) The trustee's appointment takes effect from the date of the order.

Commencement Information

I510Rule 6.121 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Appointment by Secretary of StateE+W

6.122.—(1) This Rule applies where the official receiver—

(a)under section 295 or 300, refers to the Secretary of State the need for an appointment of a trustee, or

(b)under section 296, applies to the Secretary of State to make the appointment.

(2) If the Secretary of State makes an appointment he shall send two copies of the certificate of appointment to the official receiver, who shall transmit one such copy to the person appointed, and file the other copy in court.

The certificate shall specify the date from which the trustee's appointment is to be effective.

Commencement Information

I511Rule 6.122 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Authentication of trustee's appointmentE+W

6.123.  Where a trustee is appointed under any of the 3 preceding Rules, a sealed copy of the order of appointment or (as the case may be) a copy of the certificate of his appointment may in any proceedings be adduced as proof that he is duly authorised to exercise the powers and perform the duties of trustee of the bankrupt's estate.

Commencement Information

I512Rule 6.123 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Advertisement of appointmentE+W

6.124.—(1) Where the trustee is appointed by a creditors' meeting, he shall, forthwith after receiving his certificate of appointment, give notice of his appointment in such newspaper as he thinks most appropriate for ensuring that it comes to the notice of the bankrupt's creditors.

(2) The expense of giving the notice shall be borne in the first instance by the trustee; but he is entitled to be reimbursed by the estate, as an expense of the bankruptcy.

The same applies also in the case of the notice or advertisement under section 296(4) (appointment of trustee by Secretary of State), and of the notice or advertisement under section 297(7) (appointment by the court).

Commencement Information

I513Rule 6.124 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Hand-over of estate to trusteeE+W

6.125.—(1) This Rule applies only where—

(a)the bankrupt's estate vests in the trustee under Chapter IV of Part IX of the Act, following a period in which the official receiver is the receiver and manager of the estate according to section 287, or

(b)the trustee is appointed in succession to the official receiver acting as trustee.

(2) When the trustee's appointment takes effect, the official receiver shall forthwith do all that is required for putting him into possession of the estate.

(3) On taking possession of the estate, the trustee shall discharge any balance due to the official receiver on account of—

(a)expenses properly incurred by him and payable under the Act or the Rules, and

(b)any advances made by him in respect of the estate, together with interest on such advances at the rate specified in section 17 of the Judgments Act 1838 on the date of the bankruptcy order.

(4) Alternatively, the trustee may (before taking office) give to the official receiver a written undertaking to discharge any such balance out of the first realisation of assets.

(5) The official receiver has a charge on the estate in respect of any sums due to him under paragraph (3). But, where the trustee has realised assets with a view to making those payments, the official receiver's charge does not extend in respect of sums deductible by the trustee from the proceeds of realisation, as being expenses properly incurred therein.

(6) The trustee shall from time to time out of the realisation of assets discharge all guarantees properly given by the official receiver for the benefit of the estate, and shall pay all the official receiver's expenses.

(7) The official receiver shall give to the trustee all such information, relating to the affairs of the bankrupt and the course of the bankruptcy, as he (the official receiver) considers to be reasonably required for the effective discharge by the trustee of his duties in relation to the estate.

(8) The trustee shall also be furnished with any report of the official receiver under Chapter 6 of this Part of the Rules.

Commencement Information

I514Rule 6.125 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

SECTION B: RESIGNATION AND REMOVAL; VACATION OF OFFICEE+W
Creditors' meeting to receive trustee's resignationE+W

6.126.—(1) Before resigning his office, the trustee must call a meeting of creditors for the purpose of receiving his resignation. Notice of the meeting shall be sent to the official receiver at the same time as it is sent to creditors.

(2) The notice to creditors must be accompanied by an account of the trustee's administration of the bankrupt's estate, including—

(a)a summary of his receipts and payments and

(b)a statement by him that he has reconciled his account with that which is held by the Secretary of State in respect of the bankruptcy.

(3) Subject as follows, the trustee may only proceed under this Rule on grounds of ill health or because—

(a)he intends ceasing to be in practice as an insolvency practitioner, or

(b)there is some conflict of interest or change of personal circumstances which precludes or makes impracticable the further discharge by him of the duties of trustee.

(4) Where two or more persons are acting as trustee jointly, any one of them may proceed under this Rule (without prejudice to the continuation in office of the other or others) on the ground that, in his opinion and that of the other or others, it is no longer expedient that there should continue to be the present number of joint trustees.

Commencement Information

I515Rule 6.126 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Action following acceptance of resignationE+W

6.127.—(1) [[FORM 6.35]] Where a meeting of creditors is summoned for the purpose of receiving the trustee's resignation, the notice summoning it shall indicate that this is the purpose, or one of the purposes, of the meeting; and the notice shall draw the attention of creditors to Rule 6.135 with respect to the trustee's release.

(2) A copy of the notice shall at the same time also be sent to the official receiver.

(3) Where the chairman of the meeting is other than the official receiver, and there is passed at the meeting any of the following resolutions—

(a)that the trustee's resignation be accepted,

(b)that a new trustee be appointed,

(c)that the resigning trustee be not given his release,

the chairman shall, within 3 days, send to the official receiver a copy of the resolution.

[[FORM 6.44]] If it has been resolved to accept the trustee's resignation, the chairman shall send to the official receiver a certificate to that effect.

(4) If the creditors have resolved to appoint a new trustee, the certificate of his appointment shall also be sent to the official receiver within that time; and Rule 6.120 above shall be complied with in respect of it.

(5) If the trustee's resignation is accepted, the notice of it required by section 298(7) shall be given by him forthwith after the meeting; and he shall send a copy of the notice to the official receiver.

The notice shall be accompanied by a copy of the account sent to creditors under Rule 6.126(2).

(6) The official receiver shall file a copy of the notice in court.

(7) The trustee's resignation is effective as from the date on which the official receiver files the copy notice in court, that date to be endorsed on the copy notice.

Commencement Information

I516Rule 6.127 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Leave to resign granted by the courtE+W

6.128.—(1) [[FORM 6.45]] If at a creditors' meeting summoned to accept the trustee's resignation it is resolved that it be not accepted, the court may, on the trustee's application, make an order giving him leave to resign.

(2) The court's order under this Rule may include such provision as it thinks fit with respect to matters arising in connection with the resignation, and shall determine the date from which the trustee's release is effective.

(3) The court shall send two sealed copies of the order to the trustee, who shall send one of the copies forthwith to the official receiver.

(4) [[FORM 6.46]] On sending notice of his resignation to the court, as required by section 298(7), the trustee shall send a copy of it to the official receiver.

Commencement Information

I517Rule 6.128 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Meeting of creditors to remove trusteeE+W

6.129.—(1) [[FORM 6.35]] Where a meeting of creditors is summoned for the purpose of removing the trustee, the notice summoning it shall indicate that this is the purpose, or one of the purposes, of the meeting; and the notice shall draw the attention of creditors to section 299(3) with respect to the trustee's release.

(2) A copy of the notice shall at the same time also be sent to the official receiver.

(3) At the meeting, a person other than the trustee or his nominee may be elected to act as chairman; but if the trustee or his nominee is chairman and a resolution has been proposed for the trustee's removal, the chairman shall not adjourn the meeting without the consent of at least one-half (in value) of the creditors present (in person or by proxy) and entitled to vote.

(4) Where the chairman of the meeting is other than the official receiver, and there is passed at the meeting any of the following resolutions—

(a)that the trustee be removed,

(b)that a new trustee be appointed,

(c)that the removed trustee be not given his release,

the chairman shall, within 3 days, send to the official receiver a copy of the resolution.

[[FORM 6.47]] If it has been resolved to remove the trustee, the chairman shall send to the official receiver a certificate to that effect.

(5) If the creditors have resolved to appoint a new trustee, the certificate of his appointment shall also be sent to the official receiver within that time; and Rule 6.120 shall be complied with in respect of it.

Commencement Information

I518Rule 6.129 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Court's power to regulate meeting under Rule 6.129E+W

6.130.  Where a meeting under Rule 6.129 is to be held, or is proposed to be summoned, the court may on the application of any creditor give directions as to the mode of summoning it, the sending out and return of forms of proxy, the conduct of the meeting, and any other matter which appears to the court to require regulation or control.

Commencement Information

I519Rule 6.130 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Procedure on removalE+W

6.131.—(1) Where the creditors have resolved that the trustee be removed, the official receiver shall file the certificate of removal in court.

(2) The resolution is effective as from the date on which the official receiver files the certificate of removal in court, and that date shall be endorsed on the certificate.

(3) A copy of the certificate, so endorsed, shall be sent by the official receiver to the trustee who has been removed and, if a new trustee has been appointed, to him.

(4) The official receiver shall not file the certificate in court until the Secretary of State has certified to him that the removed trustee has reconciled his account with that held by the Secretary of State in respect of the bankruptcy.

Commencement Information

I520Rule 6.131 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Removal of trustee by the courtE+W

6.132.—(1) [[FORM 6.48]] This Rule applies where application is made to the court for the removal of the trustee, or for an order directing the trustee to summon a meeting of creditors for the purpose of removing him.

(2) The court may, if it thinks that no sufficient cause is shown for the application, dismiss it; but it shall not do so unless the applicant has had an opportunity to attend the court for an ex parte hearing, of which he has been given at least 7 days' notice.

If the application is not dismissed under this paragraph, the court shall fix a venue for it to be heard.

(3) The applicant shall, at least 14 days before the hearing, send to the trustee and the official receiver notice stating the venue so fixed; and the notice shall be accompanied by a copy of the application, and of any evidence which the applicant intends to adduce in support of it.

(4) Subject to any contrary order of the court, the costs of the application do not fall on the estate.

(5) Where the court removes the trustee—

(a)it shall send copies of the order of removal to him and to the official receiver;

(b)the order may include such provision as the court thinks fit with respect to matters arising in connection with the removal; and

(c)if the court appoints a new trustee, Rule 6.121 applies.

Commencement Information

I521Rule 6.132 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Removal of trustee by Secretary of StateE+W

6.133.—(1) If the Secretary of State decides to remove the trustee, he shall before doing so notify the trustee and the official receiver of his decision and the grounds of it, and specify a period within which the trustee may make representations against implementation of the decision.

(2) If the Secretary of State directs the removal of the trustee, he shall forthwith—

(a)file notice of his decision in court, and

(b)send notice to the trustee and the official receiver.

(3) If the trustee is removed by direction of the Secretary of State, the court may make any such order in his case as it would have power to make if he had been removed by itself.

Commencement Information

I522Rule 6.133 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Advertisement of resignation or removalE+W

6.134.  Where a new trustee is appointed in place of one who has resigned or been removed, the new trustee shall, in the advertisement of his appointment, state that his predecessor has resigned or, as the case may be, been removed and (if it be the case) that he has been given his release.

Commencement Information

I523Rule 6.134 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Release of resigning or removed trusteeE+W

6.135.—(1) Where the trustee's resignation is accepted by a meeting of creditors which has not resolved against his release, he has his release from when his resignation is effective under Rule 6.127.

(2) Where the trustee is removed by a meeting of creditors which has not resolved against his release, the fact of his release shall be stated in the certificate of removal.

(3) Where—

(a)the trustee resigns, and the creditors' meeting called to receive his resignation has resolved against his release, or

(b)he is removed by a creditors' meeting which has so resolved, or is removed by the court,

[[FORM 6.49]] he must apply to the Secretary of State for his release.

(4) When the Secretary of State gives the release, he shall certify it accordingly, and send the certificate to the official receiver, to be filed in court.

(5) A copy of the certificate shall be sent by the Secretary of State to the former trustee, whose release is effective from the date of the certificate.

Commencement Information

I524Rule 6.135 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

SECTION C: RELEASE ON COMPLETION OF ADMINISTRATIONE+W
Release of official receiverE+W

6.136.—(1) The official receiver shall, before giving notice to the Secretary of State under section 299(2) (that the administration of the estate is for practical purposes complete), send out notice of his intention to do so to all creditors who have proved their debts, and to the bankrupt.

(2) The notice shall in each case be accompanied by a summary of the official receiver's receipts and payments as trustee.

(3) The Secretary of State, when he has under section 299(2) determined the date from which the official receiver is to have his release, shall give notice to the court that he has done so. The notice shall be accompanied by the summary referred to in paragraph (2).

Commencement Information

I525Rule 6.136 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Final meeting of creditorsE+W

6.137.—(1) [[FORM 6.35]] Where the trustee is other than the official receiver, he shall give at least 28 days' notice of the final meeting of creditors to be held under section 331. The notice shall be sent to all creditors who have proved their debts, and to the bankrupt.

(2) The trustee's report laid before the meeting under that section shall include—

(a)a summary of his receipts and payments, and

(b)a statement by him that he has reconciled his account with that which is held by the Secretary of State in respect of the bankruptcy.

(3) At the final meeting, the creditors may question the trustee with respect to any matter contained in his report, and may resolve against him having his release.

(4) [[FORM 6.50]] The trustee shall give notice to the court that the final meeting has been held; and the notice shall state whether or not he has been given his release, and be accompanied by a copy of the report laid before the final meeting. A copy of the notice shall be sent by the trustee to the official receiver.

(5) If there is no quorum present at the final meeting, the trustee shall report to the court that a final meeting was summoned in accordance with the Rules, but there was no quorum present; and the final meeting is then deemed to have been held, and the creditors not to have resolved against the trustee having his release.

(6) If the creditors at the final meeting have not so resolved, the trustee is released when the notice under paragraph (4) is filed in court. If they have so resolved, the trustee must obtain his release from the Secretary of State, as provided by Rule 6.135.

Commencement Information

I526Rule 6.137 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

SECTION D: REMUNERATIONE+W
Fixing of remunerationE+W

6.138.—(1) The trustee is entitled to receive remuneration for his services as such.

(2) The remuneration shall be fixed either—

(a)as a percentage of the value of the assets in the bankrupt's estate which are realised or distributed, or of the one value and the other in combination, or

(b)by reference to the time properly given by the insolvency practitioner (as trustee) and his staff in attending to matters arising in the bankruptcy.

(3) Where the trustee is other than the official receiver, it is for the creditors' committee (if there is one) to determine whether his remuneration is to be fixed under paragraph (2)(a) or (b) and, if under paragraph (2)(a), to determine any percentage to be applied as there mentioned.

(4) In arriving at that determination, the committee shall have regard to the following matters—

(a)the complexity (or otherwise) of the case,

(b)any respects in which, in connection with the administration of the estate, there falls on the insolvency practitioner (as trustee) any responsibility of an exceptional kind or degree,

(c)the effectiveness with which the insolvency practitioner appears to be carrying out, or to have carried out, his duties as trustee, and

(d)the value and nature of the assets in the estate with which the trustee has to deal.

(5) If there is no creditors' committee, or the committee does not make the requisite determination, the trustee's remuneration may be fixed (in accordance with paragraph (2)) by a resolution of a meeting of creditors; and paragraph (4) applies to them as it does to the creditors' committee.

(6) If not fixed as above, the trustee's remuneration shall be on the scale laid down for the official receiver by general regulations.

Commencement Information

I527Rule 6.138 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Other matters affecting remunerationE+W

6.139.—(1) Where the trustee sells assets on behalf of a secured creditor, he is entitled to take for himself, out of the proceeds of sale, a sum by way of remuneration equivalent to the remuneration chargeable in corresponding circumstances by the official receiver under general regulations.

(2) Where there are joint trustees, it is for them to agree between themselves as to how the remuneration payable should be apportioned. Any dispute arising between them may be referred—

(a)to the court, for settlement by order, or

(b)to the creditors' committee or a meeting of creditors, for settlement by resolution.

(3) If the trustee is a solicitor and employs his own firm, or any partner in it, to act on behalf of the estate, profit costs shall not be paid unless this is authorised by the creditors' committee, the creditors or the court.

Commencement Information

I528Rule 6.139 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Recourse of trustee to meeting of creditorsE+W

6.140.  If the trustee's remuneration has been fixed by the creditors' committee, and he considers the rate or amount to be insufficient, he may request that it be increased by resolution of the creditors.

Commencement Information

I529Rule 6.140 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Recourse to the courtE+W

6.141.—(1) If the trustee considers that the remuneration fixed for him by the creditors' committee, or by resolution of the creditors, or as under Rule 6.138(6), is insufficient, he may apply to the court for an order increasing its amount or rate.

(2) The trustee shall give at least 14 days' notice of his application to the members of the creditors' committee; and the committee may nominate one or more members to appear or be represented, and to be heard, on the application.

(3) If there is no creditors' committee, the trustee's notice of his application shall be sent to such one or more of the bankrupt's creditors as the court may direct, which creditors may nominate one or more of their number to appear or be represented.

(4) The court may, if it appears to be a proper case, order the costs of the trustee's application, including the costs of any member of the creditors' committee appearing on it, or any creditor so appearing, to be paid out of the estate.

Commencement Information

I530Rule 6.141 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Creditor's claim that remuneration is excessiveE+W

6.142.—(1) Any creditor of the bankrupt may, with the concurrence of at least 25 per cent. in value of the creditors (including himself), apply to the court for an order that the trustee's remuneration be reduced, on the grounds that it is, in all the circumstances, excessive.

(2) The court may, if it thinks that no sufficient cause is shown for the application, dismiss it; but it shall not do so unless the applicant has had an opportunity to attend the court for an ex parte hearing, of which he has been given at least 7 days' notice.

If the application is not dismissed under this paragraph, the court shall fix a venue for it to be heard.

(3) The applicant shall, at least 14 days before the hearing, send to the trustee a notice stating the venue so fixed; and the notice shall be accompanied by a copy of the application, and of any evidence which the applicant intends to adduce in support of it.

(4) If the court considers the application to be well-founded, it shall make an order fixing the remuneration at a reduced amount or rate.

(5) Unless the court orders otherwise, the costs of the application shall be paid by the applicant, and do not fall on the estate.

Commencement Information

I531Rule 6.142 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

SECTION E: SUPPLEMENTARY PROVISIONSE+W
Trustee deceasedE+W

6.143.—(1) Subject as follows, where the trustee (other than the official receiver) has died, it is the duty of his personal representatives to give notice of the fact to the official receiver, specifying the date of the death.

This does not apply if notice has been given under any of the following paragraphs of this Rule.

(2) If the deceased trustee was a partner in a firm, notice may be given to the official receiver by a partner in the firm who is qualified to act as an insolvency practitioner, or is a member of any body recognised by the Secretary of State for the authorisation of insolvency practitioners.

(3) Notice of the death may be given by any person producing to the official receiver the relevant death certificate or a copy of it.

(4) The official receiver shall give notice to the court, for the purpose of fixing the date of the deceased trustee's release in accordance with section 299(3)(a).

Commencement Information

I532Rule 6.143 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Loss of qualification as insolvency practitionerE+W

6.144.—(1) This Rule applies where the trustee vacates office, under section 298(6), on his ceasing to be qualified to act as an insolvency practitioner in relation to the bankrupt.

(2) [[FORM 6.51]] The trustee vacating office shall forthwith give notice of his doing so to the official receiver, who shall give notice to the Secretary of State.

The official receiver shall file in court a copy of his notice under this paragraph.

(3) Rule 6.135 applies as regards the trustee obtaining his release, as if he had been removed by the court.

Commencement Information

I533Rule 6.144 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Notice to official receiver of intention to vacate officeE+W

6.145.—(1) Where the trustee intends to vacate office, whether by resignation or otherwise, and there remain in the estate any unrealised assets, he shall give notice of his intention to the official receiver, informing him of the nature, value and whereabouts of the assets in question.

(2) Where there is to be a creditors' meeting to receive the trustee's resignation, or otherwise in respect of his vacation of office, the notice to the official receiver must be given at least 21 days before the meeting.

Commencement Information

I534Rule 6.145 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Trustee's duties on vacating officeE+W

6.146.—(1) Where the trustee ceases to be in office as such, in consequence of removal, resignation or cesser of qualification as an insolvency practitioner, he is under obligation forthwith to deliver up to the person succeeding him as trustee the assets of the estate (after deduction of any expenses properly incurred, and distributions made, by him) and further to deliver up to that person—

(a)the records of the bankruptcy, including correspondence, proofs and other related papers appertaining to the bankruptcy while it was within his responsibility, and

(b)the bankrupt's books, papers and other records.

(2) When the administration of the bankrupt's estate is for practical purposes complete, the trustee shall forthwith file in court all proofs remaining with him in the proceedings.

Commencement Information

I535Rule 6.146 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Power of court to set aside certain transactionsE+W

6.147.—(1) If in the administration of the estate the trustee enters into any transaction with a person who is an associate of his, the court may, on the application of any person interested, set the transaction aside and order the trustee to compensate the estate for any loss suffered in consequence of it.

(2) This does not apply if either—

(a)the transaction was entered into with the prior consent of the court, or

(b)it is shown to the court's satisfaction that the transaction was for value, and that it was entered into by the trustee without knowing, or having any reason to suppose, that the person concerned was an associate.

(3) Nothing in this Rule is to be taken as prejudicing the operation of any rule of law or equity with respect to a trustee's dealings with trust property, or the fiduciary obligations of any person.

Commencement Information

I536Rule 6.147 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Rule against solicitationE+W

6.148.—(1) Where the court is satisfied that any improper solicitation has been used by or on behalf of the trustee in obtaining proxies or procuring his appointment, it may order that no remuneration out of the estate be allowed to any person by whom, or on whose behalf, the solicitation was exercised.

(2) An order of the court under this Rule overrides any resolution of the creditors' committee or the creditors, or any other provision of the Rules relating to the trustee's remuneration.

Commencement Information

I537Rule 6.148 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Enforcement of trustee's obligations to official receiverE+W

6.149.—(1) The court may, on the application of the official receiver, make such orders as it thinks necessary for enforcement of the duties of the trustee under section 305(3) (information and assistance to be given; production and inspection of books and records relating to the bankruptcy).

(2) An order of the court under this Rule may provide that all costs of and incidental to the official receiver's application shall be borne by the trustee.

Commencement Information

I538Rule 6.149 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

CHAPTER 11E+WTHE CREDITORS' COMMITTEE

Membership of creditors' committeeE+W

6.150.—(1) The creditors' committee shall consist of at least 3, and not more than 5, members.

(2) All the members of the committee must be creditors of the bankrupt; and any creditor (other than one who is fully secured) may be a member, so long as—

(a)he has lodged a proof of his debt, and

(b)his proof has neither been wholly disallowed for voting purposes, nor wholly rejected for the purposes of distribution or dividend.

(3) A body corporate may be a member of the committee, but it cannot act as such otherwise than by a representative appointed under Rule 6.156.

Commencement Information

I539Rule 6.150 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Formalities of establishmentE+W

6.151.—(1) [[FORM 6.52]] The creditors' committee does not come into being, and accordingly cannot act, until the trustee has issued a certificate of its due constitution.

(2) If the chairman of the creditors' meeting which resolves to establish the committee is not the trustee, he shall forthwith give notice of the resolution to the trustee (or, as the case may be, the person appointed as trustee by that same meeting), and inform him of the names and addresses of the persons elected to be members of the committee.

(3) No person may act as a member of the committee unless and until he has agreed to do so; and the trustee's certificate of the committee's due constitution shall not issue before at least 3 persons elected to be members of it have agreed to act.

(4) [[FORM 6.52]] As and when the others (if any) agree to act, the trustee shall issue an amended certificate.

(5) The certificate, and any amended certificate, shall be filed in court by the trustee.

(6) [[FORM 6.53]] If after the first establishment of the committee there is any change in its membership, the trustee shall report the change to the court.

Commencement Information

I540Rule 6.151 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Obligations of trustee to committeeE+W

6.152.—(1) Subject as follows, it is the duty of the trustee to report to the members of the creditors' committee all such matters as appear to him to be, or as they have indicated to him as being, of concern to them with respect to the bankruptcy.

(2) In the case of matters so indicated to him by the committee, the trustee need not comply with any request for information where it appears to him that—

(a)the request is frivolous or unreasonable, or

(b)the cost of complying would be excessive, having regard to the relative importance of the information, or

(c)the estate is without funds sufficient for enabling him to comply.

(3) Where the committee has come into being more than 28 days after the appointment of the trustee, the latter shall report to them, in summary form, what actions he has taken since his appointment, and shall answer such questions as they may put to him regarding his conduct of the bankruptcy hitherto.

(4) A person who becomes a member of the committee at any time after its first establishment is not entitled to require a report to him by the trustee, otherwise than in summary form, of any matters previously arising.

(5) Nothing in this Rule disentitles the committee, or any member of it, from having access to the trustee's records of the bankruptcy, or from seeking an explanation of any matter within the committee's responsibility.

Commencement Information

I541Rule 6.152 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Meetings of the committeeE+W

6.153.—(1) Subject as follows, meetings of the creditors' committee shall be held when and where determined by the trustee.

(2) The trustee shall call a first meeting of the committee to take place within 3 months of his appointment or of the committee's establishment (whichever is the later); and thereafter he shall call a meeting—

(a)if so requested by a member of the committee or his representative (the meeting then to be held within 21 days of the request being received by the trustee), and

(b)for a specified date, if the committee has previously resolved that a meeting be held on that date.

(3) The trustee shall give 7 days' notice in writing of the venue of any meeting to every member of the committee (or his representative, if designated for that purpose), unless in any case the requirement of the notice has been waived by or on behalf of any member.

Waiver may be signified either at or before the meeting.

Commencement Information

I542Rule 6.153 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

The chairman at meetingsE+W

6.154.—(1) The chairman at any meeting of the creditors' committee shall be the trustee, or a person appointed by him in writing to act.

(2) A person so nominated must be either—

(a)one who is qualified to act as an insolvency practitioner in relation to the bankrupt, or

(b)an employee of the trustee or his firm who is experienced in insolvency matters.

Commencement Information

I543Rule 6.154 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

QuorumE+W

6.155.  A meeting of the committee is duly constituted if due notice of it has been given to all the members and at least 2 of the members are present or represented.

Commencement Information

I544Rule 6.155 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Committee-members' representativesE+W

6.156.—(1) A member of the creditors' committee may, in relation to the business of the committee, be represented by another person duly authorised by him for that purpose.

(2) A person acting as a committee-member's representative must hold a letter of authority entitling him so to act (either generally or specially). The letter must be signed by or on behalf of the committee-member.

(3) The chairman at any meeting of the committee may call on a person claiming to act as a committee-member's representative to produce his letter of authority, and may exclude him if it appears that his authority is deficient.

(4) No member may be represented by a body corporate, or by a person who is an undischarged bankrupt or is subject to a composition or arrangement with his creditors.

(5) No person shall—

(a)on the same committee, act at one and the same time as representative of more than one committee-member, or

(b)act both as a member of the committee and as representative of another member.

(6) Where the representative of a committee-member signs any document on the latter's behalf, the fact that he so signs must be stated below his signature.

Commencement Information

I545Rule 6.156 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

ResignationE+W

6.157.  A member of the creditors' committee may resign by notice in writing delivered to the trustee.

Commencement Information

I546Rule 6.157 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Termination of membershipE+W

6.158.—(1) A person's membership of the creditors' committee is automatically terminated if—

(a)he becomes bankrupt or compounds or arranges with his creditors, or

(b)at 3 consecutive meetings of the committee he is neither present nor represented (unless at the third of those meetings it is resolved that this Rule is not to apply in his case), or

(c)he ceases to be, or is found never to have been, a creditor.

(2) However, if the cause of termination is the member's bankruptcy, his trustee in bankruptcy replaces him as a member of the committee.

Commencement Information

I547Rule 6.158 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

RemovalE+W

6.159.  A member of the creditors' committee may be removed by resolution at a meeting of creditors, at least 14 days' notice having been given of the intention to move that resolution.

Commencement Information

I548Rule 6.159 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

VacanciesE+W

6.160.—(1) The following applies if there is a vacancy in the membership of the creditors' committee.

(2) The vacancy need not be filled if the trustee and a majority of the remaining committee-members so agree, provided that the number of members does not fall below the minimum required by Rule 6.150(1).

(3) The trustee may appoint any creditor (being qualified under the Rules to be a member of the committee) to fill the vacancy, if a majority of the other members of the committee agree to the appointment and the creditor concerned consents to act.

(4) Alternatively, a meeting of creditors may resolve that a creditor be appointed (with his consent) to fill the vacancy. In this case at least 14 days' notice must have been given of a resolution to make such an appointment (whether or not of a person named in the notice).

(5) Where the vacancy is filled by an appointment made by a creditors' meeting at which the trustee is not present, the chairman of the meeting shall report to the trustee the appointment which has been made.

Commencement Information

I549Rule 6.160 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Voting rights and resolutionsE+W

6.161.—(1) At any meeting of the committee, each member (whether present himself, or by his representative) has one vote; and a resolution is passed when a majority of the members present or represented have voted in favour of it.

(2) Every resolution passed shall be recorded in writing, either separately or as part of the minutes of the meeting. The record shall be signed by the chairman and kept with the records of the bankruptcy.

Commencement Information

I550Rule 6.161 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Resolutions by postE+W

6.162.—(1) In accordance with this Rule, the trustee may seek to obtain the agreement of members of the creditors' committee to a resolution by sending to every member (or his representative designated for the purpose) a copy of the proposed resolution.

(2) Where the trustee makes use of the procedure allowed by this Rule, he shall send out to members of the committee or their representatives (as the case may be) a statement incorporating the resolution to which their agreement is sought, each resolution (if more than one) being set out in a separate document.

(3) Any member of the committee may, within 7 days from the date of the trustee sending out a resolution, require the trustee to summon a meeting of the committee to consider the matters raised by the resolution.

(4) In the absence of such a request, the resolution is deemed to have been carried in the committee if and when the trustee is notified in writing by a majority of the members that they concur with it.

(5) A copy of every resolution passed under this Rule, and a note that the concurrence of the committee was obtained, shall be kept with the records of the bankruptcy.

Commencement Information

I551Rule 6.162 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Trustee's reportsE+W

6.163.—(1) The trustee shall, as and when directed by the creditors' committee (but not more often than once in any period of 2 months), send a written report to every member of the committee setting out the position generally as regards the progress of the bankruptcy and matters arising in connection with it, to which he (the trustee) considers the committee's attention should be drawn.

(2) In the absence of any such directions by the committee, the trustee shall send such a report not less often than once in every period of 6 months.

(3) The obligations of the trustee under this Rule are without prejudice to those imposed by Rule 6.152.

Commencement Information

I552Rule 6.163 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Expenses of members etcE+W

6.164.  The trustee shall defray out of the estate, in the prescribed order of priority, any reasonable travelling expenses directly incurred by members of the creditors' committee or their representatives in respect of their attendance at the committee's meetings, or otherwise on the committee's business.

Commencement Information

I553Rule 6.164 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Dealings by committee-members and othersE+W

6.165.—(1) This Rule applies to—

(a)any member of the creditors' committee,

(b)any committee-member's representative,

(c)any person who is an associate of a member of the committee or a committee-member's representative, and

(d)any person who has been a member of the committee at any time in the last 12 months.

(2) Subject as follows, a person to whom this Rule applies shall not enter into any transaction whereby he—

(a)receives out of the estate any payment for services given or goods supplied in connection with the estate's administration, or

(b)obtains any profit from the administration, or

(c)acquires any asset forming part of the estate.

(3) Such a transaction may be entered into by a person to whom this Rule applies—

(a)with the prior leave of the court, or

(b)if he does so as a matter of urgency, or by way of performance of a contract in force before the commencement of the bankruptcy, and obtains the court's leave for the transaction, having applied for it without undue delay, or

(c)with the prior sanction of the creditors' committee, where it is satisfied (after full disclosure of the circumstances) that the person will be giving full value in the transaction.

(4) Where in the committee a resolution is proposed that sanction be accorded for a transaction to be entered into which, without that sanction or the leave of the court, would be in contravention of this Rule, no member of the committee, and no representative of a member, shall vote if he is to participate directly or indirectly in the transaction.

(5) The court may, on the application of any person interested—

(a)set aside a transaction on the ground that it has been entered into in contravention of this Rule, and

(b)make with respect to it such other order as it thinks fit, including (subject to the following paragraph) an order requiring a person to whom this Rule applies to account for any profit obtained from the transaction and compensate the estate for any resultant loss.

(6) In the case of a person to whom this Rule applies as an associate of a member of the committee or of a committee-member's representative, the court shall not make any order under paragraph (5), if satisfied that he entered into the relevant transaction without having any reason to suppose that in doing so he would contravene this Rule.

(7) The costs of an application to the court for leave under this Rule do not fall on the estate, unless the court so orders.

Commencement Information

I554Rule 6.165 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Committee's functions vested in Secretary of StateE+W

6.166.—(1) At any time when the functions of the creditors' committee are vested in the Secretary of State under section 302(1) or (2), requirements of the Act or the Rules about notices to be given, or reports to be made, to the committee by the trustee do not apply, otherwise than as enabling the committee to require a report as to any matter.

(2) Where the committee's functions are so vested under section 302(2), they may be exercised by the official receiver.

Commencement Information

I555Rule 6.166 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

CHAPTER 12E+WSPECIAL MANAGER

Appointment and remunerationE+W

6.167.—(1) An application made by the official receiver or trustee under section 370 for the appointment of a person to be special manager shall be supported by a report setting out the reasons for the application.

The report shall include the applicant's estimate of the value of the estate, property or business in respect of which the special manager is to be appointed.

(2) [[FORM 6.54]] The court's order appointing the special manager shall specify the duration of his appointment, which may be for a period of time, or until the occurrence of a specified event. Alternatively, the order may specify that the duration of the appointment is to be subject to a further order of the court.

(3) The appointment of a special manager may be renewed by order of the court.

(4) The special manager's remuneration shall be fixed from time to time by the court.

Commencement Information

I556Rule 6.167 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

SecurityE+W

6.168.—(1) The appointment of the special manager does not take effect until the person appointed has given (or, being allowed by the court to do so, undertaken to give) security to the person who applies for him to be appointed.

(2) It is not necessary that security shall be given for each separate bankruptcy; but it may be given either specially for a particular bankruptcy, or generally for any bankruptcy in relation to which the special manager may be employed as such.

(3) The amount of the security shall be not less than the value of the estate, property or business in respect of which he is appointed, as estimated by the applicant in his report under Rule 6.167(1).

(4) When the special manager has given security to the person applying for his appointment, that person's certificate as to the adequacy of the security shall be filed in court.

(5) The cost of providing the security shall be paid in the first instance by the special manager; but—

(a)where a bankruptcy order is not made, he is entitled to be reimbursed out of the property of the debtor, and the court may make an order on the debtor accordingly, and

(b)where a bankruptcy order is made, he is entitled to be reimbursed out of the estate in the prescribed order of priority.

Commencement Information

I557Rule 6.168 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Failure to give or keep up securityE+W

6.169.—(1) If the special manager fails to give the required security within the time stated for that purpose by the order appointing him, or any extension of that time that may be allowed, the official receiver or trustee (as the case may be) shall report the failure to the court, which may thereupon discharge the order appointing the special manager.

(2) If the special manager fails to keep up his security, the official receiver or trustee shall report his failure to the court, which may thereupon remove the special manager, and make such order as it thinks fit as to costs.

(3) If an order is made under this Rule removing the special manager, or discharging the order appointing him, the court shall give directions as to whether any, and if so what, steps should be taken for the appointment of another special manager in his place.

Commencement Information

I558Rule 6.169 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

AccountingE+W

6.170.—(1) The special manager shall produce accounts, containing details of his receipts and payments, for the approval of the trustee.

(2) The accounts shall be in respect of 3-month periods for the duration of the special manager's appointment (or for a lesser period, if his appointment terminates less than 3 months from its date, or from the date to which the last accounts were made up).

(3) When the accounts have been approved, the special manager's receipts and payments shall be added to those of the trustee.

Commencement Information

I559Rule 6.170 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Termination of appointmentE+W

6.171.—(1) The special manager's appointment terminates if the bankruptcy petition is dismissed or if, an interim receiver having been appointed, the latter is discharged without a bankruptcy order having been made.

(2) If the official receiver or the trustee is of opinion that the employment of the special manager is no longer necessary or profitable for the estate, he shall apply to the court for directions, and the court may order the special manager's appointment to be terminated.

(3) The official receiver or the trustee shall make the same application if a resolution of the creditors is passed, requesting that the appointment be terminated.

Commencement Information

I560Rule 6.171 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

CHAPTER 13E+WPUBLIC EXAMINATION OF BANKRUPT

Order for public examinationE+W

6.172.—(1) [[FORM 6.55]] If the official receiver applies to the court, under section 290, for the public examination of the bankrupt, a copy of the court's order shall, forthwith after its making, be sent by the official receiver to the bankrupt.

(2) The order shall appoint a venue for the hearing, and direct the bankrupt's attendance thereat.

(3) The official receiver shall give at least 14 days' notice of the hearing—

(a)if a trustee has been nominated or appointed, to him;

(b)if a special manager has been appointed, to him; and

(c)subject to any contrary direction of the court, to every creditor of the bankrupt who is known to the official receiver or is identified in the bankrupt's statement of affairs.

(4) The official receiver may, if he thinks fit, cause notice of the order to be given, by public advertisement in one or more newspapers, at least 14 days before the day fixed for the hearing.

Commencement Information

I561Rule 6.172 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Order on request by creditorsE+W

6.173.—(1) [[FORM 6.56]] A request by a creditor to the official receiver, under section 290(2), for the bankrupt to be publicly examined shall be made in writing and be accompanied by—

(a)a list of the creditors concurring with the request and the amount of their respective claims in the bankruptcy,

(b)from each creditor concurring, written confirmation of his concurrence, and

(c)a statement of the reasons why the examination is requested.

Sub-paragraphs (a) and (b) do not apply if the requisitioning creditor's debt is alone sufficient, without the concurrence of others.

(2) Before an application to the court is made on the request, the requisitionist shall deposit with the official receiver such sum as the latter may determine to be appropriate by way of security for the expenses of the hearing of a public examination, if ordered.

(3) Subject as follows, the official receiver shall, within 28 days of receiving the request, make the application to the court required by section 290(2).

(4) If the official receiver is of opinion that the request is an unreasonable one in the circumstances, he may apply to the court for an order relieving him from the obligation to make the application otherwise required by that subsection.

(5) If the court so orders, and the application for the order was made ex parte, notice of the order shall be given forthwith by the official receiver to the requisitionist. If the application for an order is dismissed, the official receiver's application under section 290(2) shall be made forthwith on conclusion of the hearing of the application first mentioned.

Commencement Information

I562Rule 6.173 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Bankrupt unfit for examinationE+W

6.174.—(1) [[FORM 6.57]] Where the bankrupt is suffering from any mental disorder or physical affliction or disability rendering him unfit to undergo or attend for public examination, the court may, on application in that behalf, either stay the order for his public examination or direct that it shall be conducted in such manner and at such place as it thinks fit.

(2) Application under this Rule shall be made—

(a)by a person who has been appointed by a court in the United Kingdom or elsewhere to manage the affairs of, or to represent, the bankrupt, or

(b)by a relative or friend of the bankrupt whom the court considers to be a proper person to make the application, or

(c)by the official receiver.

(3) Where the application is made by a person other than the official receiver, then—

(a)it shall, unless the bankrupt is a patient within the meaning of the Mental Health Act 1983, be supported by the affidavit of a registered medical practitioner as to the bankrupt's mental and physical condition;

(b)at least 7 days' notice of the application shall be given to the official receiver and the trustee (if any); and

(c)before any order is made on the application, the applicant shall deposit with the official receiver such sum as the latter certifies to be necessary for the additional expenses of any examination that may be ordered on the application.

An order made on the application may provide that the expenses of the examination are to be payable, as to a specified proportion, out of the deposit under sub-paragraph (c), instead of out of the estate.

(4) Where the application is made by the official receiver, it may be made ex parte, and may be supported by evidence in the form of a report by the official receiver to the court.

Commencement Information

I563Rule 6.174 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Procedure at hearingE+W

6.175.—(1) The bankrupt shall at the hearing be examined on oath; and he shall answer all such questions as the court may put, or allow to be put, to him.

(2) Any of the persons allowed by section 290(4) to question the bankrupt may, with the approval of the court (made known either at the hearing or in advance of it), appear by solicitor or counsel; or he may in writing authorise another person to question the bankrupt on his behalf.

(3) The bankrupt may at his own expense employ a solicitor with or without counsel, who may put to him such questions as the court may allow for the purpose of enabling him to explain or qualify any answers given by him, and may make representations on his behalf.

(4) [[FORM 6.58]] There shall be made in writing such record of the examination as the court thinks proper. The record shall be read over either to or by the bankrupt, signed by him, and verified by affidavit at a venue fixed by the court.

(5) The written record may, in any proceedings (whether under the Act or otherwise) be used as evidence against the bankrupt of any statement made by him in the course of his public examination.

(6) If criminal proceedings have been instituted against the bankrupt, and the court is of opinion that the continuance of the hearing would be calculated to prejudice a fair trial of those proceedings, the hearing may be adjourned.

Commencement Information

I564Rule 6.175 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

AdjournmentE+W

6.176.—(1) [[FORM 6.59]] The public examination may be adjourned by the court from time to time, either to a fixed date or generally.

(2) Where the examination has been adjourned generally, the court may at any time on the application of the official receiver or of the bankrupt—

(a)[[FORM 6.60]] fix a venue for the resumption of the examination, and

(b)give directions as to the manner in which, and the time within which, notice of the resumed public examination is to be given to persons entitled to take part in it.

(3) Where application under paragraph (2) is made by the bankrupt, the court may grant it on terms that the expenses of giving the notices required by that paragraph shall be paid by him and that, before a venue for the resumed public examination is fixed, he shall deposit with the official receiver such sum as the latter considers necessary to cover those expenses.

(4) Where the examination is adjourned generally, the official receiver may, there and then, make application under section 279(3) (suspension of automatic discharge).

Commencement Information

I565Rule 6.176 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Expenses of examinationE+W

6.177.—(1) Where a public examination of the bankrupt has been ordered by the court on a creditors' requisition under Rule 6.173, the court may order that the expenses of the examination are to be paid, as to a specified proportion, out of the deposit under Rule 6.173(2), instead of out of the estate.

(2) In no case do the costs and expenses of a public examination fall on the official receiver personally.

Commencement Information

I566Rule 6.177 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

CHAPTER 14E+WDISCLAIMER

Trustee's notice of disclaimerE+W

6.178.—(1) [[FORM 6.61]] Where the trustee disclaims property under section 315, the notice of disclaimer shall contain such particulars of the property disclaimed as enable it to be easily identified.

(2) The notice shall be signed by the trustee and filed in court, with a copy. The court shall secure that both the notice and the copy are sealed and endorsed with the date of filing.

(3) The copy notice, so sealed and endorsed, shall be returned by the court to the trustee as follows—

(a)if the notice has been delivered at the offices of the court by the trustee in person, it shall be handed to him,

(b)if it has been delivered by some person acting on the trustee's behalf, it shall be handed to that person, for immediate transmission to the trustee, and

(c)otherwise, it shall be sent to the trustee by first class post.

The court shall cause to be endorsed on the original notice, or otherwise recorded on the file, the manner in which the copy notice was returned to the trustee.

(4) For the purposes of section 315, the date of the prescribed notice is that which is endorsed on it, and on the copy, in accordance with this Rule.

Commencement Information

I567Rule 6.178 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Communication of disclaimer to persons interestedE+W

6.179.—(1) Within 7 days after the day on which a copy of the notice of disclaimer is returned to him, the trustee shall send or give copies of the notice (showing the date endorsed as required by Rule 6.178) to the persons mentioned in paragraphs (2) to (5) below.

(2) Where the property disclaimed is of a leasehold nature, he shall send or give a copy to every person who (to his knowledge) claims under the bankrupt as underlessee or mortgagee.

(3) Where the disclaimer is of property in a dwelling-house, he shall send or give a copy to every person who (to his knowledge) is in occupation of, or claims a right to occupy, the house.

(4) He shall in any case send or give a copy of the notice to every person who (to his knowledge)—

(a)claims an interest in the disclaimed property, or

(b)is under any liability in respect of the property, not being a liability discharged by the disclaimer.

(5) If the disclaimer is of an unprofitable contract, he shall send or give copies of the notice to all such persons as, to his knowledge, are parties to the contract or have interests under it.

(6) If subsequently it comes to the trustee's knowledge, in the case of any person, that he has such an interest in the disclaimed property as would have entitled him to receive a copy of the notice of disclaimer in pursuance of paragraphs (2) to (5), the trustee shall then forthwith send or give to that person a copy of the notice.

But compliance with this paragraph is not required if—

(a)the trustee is satisfied that the person has already been made aware of the disclaimer and its date, or

(b)the court, on the trustee's application, orders that compliance is not required in that particular case.

Commencement Information

I568Rule 6.179 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Additional noticesE+W

6.180.  The trustee disclaiming property may, without prejudice to his obligations under sections 315 to 319 and Rules 6.178 and 6.179, at any time give notice of the disclaimer to any persons who in his opinion ought, in the public interest or otherwise, to be informed of it.

Commencement Information

I569Rule 6.180 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Duty to keep court informedE+W

6.181.  The trustee shall notify the court from time to time as to the persons to whom he has sent or given copies of the notice of disclaimer under the two preceding Rules, giving their names and addresses, and the nature of their respective interests.

Commencement Information

I570Rule 6.181 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Application for leave to disclaimE+W

6.182.—(1) Where under section 315(4) the trustee requires the leave of the court to disclaim property claimed for the bankrupt's estate under section 307 or 308, he may apply for that leave ex parte.

(2) The application must be accompanied by a report—

(a)giving such particulars of the property proposed to be disclaimed as enable it to be easily identified,

(b)setting out the reasons why, the property having been claimed for the estate, the court's leave to disclaim is now applied for, and

(c)specifying the persons (if any) who have been informed of the trustee's intention to make the application.

(3) If it is stated in the report that any person's consent to the disclaimer has been signified, a copy of that consent must be annexed to the report.

(4) The court may, on consideration of the application, grant the leave applied for; and it may, before granting leave—

(a)order that notice of the application be given to all such persons who, if the property is disclaimed, will be entitled to apply for a vesting or other order under section 320, and

(b)fix a venue for the hearing of the application under section 315(4).

Commencement Information

I571Rule 6.182 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Application by interested party under s. 316E+W

6.183.—(1) The following applies where, in the case of any property, application is made to the trustee by an interested party under section 316 (request for decision whether the property is to be disclaimed or not).

(2) The application—

(a)shall be delivered to the trustee personally or by registered post, and

(b)[[FORM 6.62]] shall be made in the form known as “notice to elect”, or a substantially similar form.

(3) This paragraph applies in a case where the property concerned cannot be disclaimed by the trustee without the leave of the court.

If within the period of 28 days mentioned in section 316(1) the trustee applies to the court for leave to disclaim, the court shall extend the time allowed by that section for giving notice of disclaimer to a date not earlier than the date fixed for the hearing of the application.

Commencement Information

I572Rule 6.183 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Interest in property to be declared on requestE+W

6.184.—(1) [[FORM 6.63]] If, in the case of property which the trustee has the right to disclaim, it appears to him that there is some person who claims, or may claim, to have an interest in the property, he may give notice to that person calling on him to declare within 14 days whether he claims any such interest and, if so, the nature and extent of it.

(2) Failing compliance with the notice, the trustee is entitled to assume that the person concerned has no such interest in the property as will prevent or impede its disclaimer.

Commencement Information

I573Rule 6.184 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Disclaimer presumed valid and effectiveE+W

6.185.  Any disclaimer of property by the trustee is presumed valid and effective, unless it is proved that he has been in breach of his duty with respect to the giving of notice of disclaimer, or otherwise under sections 315 to 319, or under this Chapter of the Rules.

Commencement Information

I574Rule 6.185 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Application for exercise of court's powers under s.320E+W

6.186.—(1) This Rule applies with respect to an application by any person under section 320 for an order of the court to vest or deliver disclaimed property.

(2) The application must be made within 3 months of the applicant becoming aware of the disclaimer, or of his receiving a copy of the trustee's notice of disclaimer sent under Rule 6.179, whichever is the earlier.

(3) The applicant shall with his application file an affidavit—

(a)stating whether he applies under paragraph (a) of section 320(2) (claim of interest in the property), under paragraph (b) (liability not discharged) or under paragraph (c) (occupation of dwelling-house);

(b)specifying the date on which he received a copy of the trustee's notice of disclaimer, or otherwise became aware of the disclaimer; and

(c)specifying the grounds of his application and the order which he desires the court to make under section 320.

(4) The court shall fix a venue for the hearing of the application; and the applicant shall, not later than 7 days before the date fixed, give to the trustee notice of the venue, accompanied by copies of the application and the affidavit under paragraph (3).

(5) On the hearing of the application, the court may give directions as to other persons (if any) who should be sent or given notice of the application and the grounds on which it is made.

(6) Sealed copies of any order made on the application shall be sent by the court to the applicant and the trustee.

(7) In a case where the property disclaimed is of a leasehold nature, or is property in a dwelling-house, and section 317 or (as the case may be) section 318 applies to suspend the effect of the disclaimer, there shall be included in the court's order a direction giving effect to the disclaimer.

This paragraph does not apply if, at the time when the order is issued, other applications under section 320 are pending in respect of the same property.

Commencement Information

I575Rule 6.186 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

CHAPTER 15E+WREPLACEMENT OF EXEMPT PROPERTY

Purchase of replacement propertyE+W

6.187.—(1) A purchase of replacement property under section 308(3) may be made either before or after the realisation by the trustee of the value of the property vesting in him under the section.

(2) The trustee is under no obligation, by virtue of the section, to apply funds to the purchase of a replacement for property vested in him, unless and until he has sufficient funds in the estate for that purpose.

Commencement Information

I576Rule 6.187 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Money provided in lieu of saleE+W

6.188.—(1) The following applies where a third party proposes to the trustee that he (the former) should provide the estate with a sum of money enabling the bankrupt to be left in possession of property which would otherwise be made to vest in the trustee under section 308.

(2) The trustee may accept that proposal, if satisfied that it is a reasonable one, and that the estate will benefit to the extent of the value of the property in question less the cost of a reasonable replacement.

Commencement Information

I577Rule 6.188 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

CHAPTER 16E+WINCOME PAYMENTS ORDERS

Application for orderE+W

6.189.—(1) Where the trustee applies for an income payments order under section 310, the court shall fix a venue for the hearing of the application.

(2) [[FORM 6.64]] Notice of the application, and of the venue, shall be sent by the trustee to the bankrupt at least 28 days before the day fixed for the hearing, together with a copy of the trustee's application and a short statement of the grounds on which it is made.

(3) The notice shall inform the bankrupt that—

(a)unless at least 7 days before the date fixed for the hearing he sends to the court and to the trustee written consent to an order being made in the terms of the application, he is required to attend the hearing, and

(b)if he attends, he will be given an opportunity to show cause why the order should not be made, or an order should be made otherwise than as applied for by the trustee.

Commencement Information

I578Rule 6.189 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Action to follow making of orderE+W

6.190.—(1) [[FORM 6.65] or [FORM 6.66]] Where the court makes an income payments order, a sealed copy of the order shall, forthwith after it is made, be sent by the trustee to the bankrupt.

(2) If the order is made under section 310(3)(b), a sealed copy of the order shall also be sent by the trustee to the person to whom the order is directed.

Commencement Information

I579Rule 6.190 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Variation of orderE+W

6.191.—(1) [[FORM 6.67]] If an income payments order is made under section 310(3)(a), and the bankrupt does not comply with it, the trustee may apply to the court for the order to be varied, so as to take effect under section 310(3)(b) as an order to the payor of the relevant income.

(2) The trustee's application under this Rule may be made ex parte.

(3) Sealed copies of any order made on the application shall, forthwith after it is made, be sent by the court to the trustee and the bankrupt.

(4) In the case of an order varying or discharging an income payments order made under section 310(3)(b), an additional sealed copy shall be sent to the trustee, for transmission forthwith to the payor of the relevant income.

Commencement Information

I580Rule 6.191 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Order to payor of income: administrationE+W

6.192.—(1) Where a person receives notice of an income payments order under section 310(3)(b), with reference to income otherwise payable by him to the bankrupt, he shall make the arrangements requisite for immediate compliance with the order.

(2) When making any payment to the trustee, he may deduct the appropriate fee towards the clerical and administrative costs of compliance with the income payments order.

He shall give to the bankrupt a written statement of any amount deducted by him under this paragraph.

(3) Where a person receives notice of an income payments order imposing on him a requirement under section 310(3)(b), and either—

(a)he is then no longer liable to make to the bankrupt any payment of income, or

(b)having made payments in compliance with the order, he ceases to be so liable,

he shall forthwith give notice of that fact to the trustee.

Commencement Information

I581Rule 6.192 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Review of orderE+W

6.193.—(1) Where an income payments order is in force, either the trustee or the bankrupt may apply to the court for the order to be varied or discharged.

(2) If the application is made by the trustee, Rule 6.189 applies (with any necessary modification) as in the case of an application for an income payments order.

(3) If the application is made by the bankrupt, it shall be accompanied by a short statement of the grounds on which it is made.

(4) The court may, if it thinks that no sufficient cause is shown for the application, dismiss it; but it shall not do so unless the applicant has had an opportunity to attend the court for an ex parte hearing, of which he has been given at least 7 days' notice.

If the application is not dismissed under this paragraph, the court shall fix a venue for it to be heard.

(5) At least 28 days before the date fixed for the hearing, the applicant shall send to the trustee or the bankrupt (whichever of them is not himself the applicant) notice of the venue, accompanied by a copy of the application.

Where the applicant is the bankrupt, the notice shall be accompanied by a copy of the statement of grounds under paragraph (3).

(6) The trustee may, if he thinks fit, appear and be heard on the application; and, whether or not he intends to appear, he may, not less than 7 days before the date fixed for the hearing, file a written report of any matters which he considers ought to be drawn to the court's attention.

If such a report is filed, a copy of it shall be sent by the trustee to the bankrupt.

(7) [[FORM 6.66]] Sealed copies of any order made on the application shall, forthwith after the order is made, be sent by the court to the trustee, the bankrupt and the payor (if other than the bankrupt).

Commencement Information

I582Rule 6.193 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

CHAPTER 17E+WACTION BY COURT UNDER SECTION 369 ORDER TO INLAND REVENUE OFFICIAL

Application for orderE+W

6.194.—(1) An application by the official receiver or the trustee for an order under section 369 (order to inland revenue official to produce documents) shall specify (with such particularity as will enable the order, if made, to be most easily complied with) the documents whose production to the court is desired, naming the official to whom the order is to be addressed.

(2) The court shall fix a venue for the hearing of the application.

(3) Notice of the venue, accompanied by a copy of the application, shall be sent by the applicant to the Commissioners of Inland Revenue (“the Commissioners”) at least 28 days before the hearing.

(4) The notice shall require the Commissioners, not later than 7 days before the date fixed for the hearing of the application, to inform the court whether they consent or object to the making of an order under the section.

(5) If the Commissioners consent to the making of an order, they shall inform the court of the name of the official to whom it should be addressed, if other than the one named in the application.

(6) If the Commissioners object to the making of an order, they shall secure that an officer of theirs attends the hearing of the application and, not less than 7 days before it, deliver to the court a statement in writing of their grounds of objection.

A copy of the statement shall be sent forthwith to the applicant.

Commencement Information

I583Rule 6.194 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Making and service of the orderE+W

6.195.—(1) [[FORM 6.69]] If on the hearing of the application it appears to the court to be a proper case, the court may make the order applied for, with such modifications (if any) as appear appropriate having regard to any representations made on behalf of the Commissioners.

(2) The order—

(a)may be addressed to an inland revenue official other than the one named in the application,

(b)shall specify a time, not less than 28 days after service on the official to whom the order is addressed, within which compliance is required, and

(c)may include requirements as to the manner in which documents to which the order relates are to be produced.

(3) A sealed copy of the order shall be served by the applicant on the official to whom it is addressed.

(4) If the official is unable to comply with the order because he has not the relevant documents in his possession, and has been unable to obtain possession of them, he shall deliver to the court a statement in writing as to the reasons for his non-compliance.

A copy of the statement shall be sent forthwith by the official to the applicant.

Commencement Information

I584Rule 6.195 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Custody of documentsE+W

6.196.  Where in compliance with an order under section 369 original documents are produced, and not copies, any person who, by order of the court under section 369(2) (authorised disclosure to persons with right of inspection), has them in his possession or custody is responsible to the court for their safe keeping and return as and when directed.

Commencement Information

I585Rule 6.196 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

CHAPTER 18E+WMORTGAGED PROPERTY

Claim by mortgagee of landE+W

6.197.—(1) Any person claiming to be the legal or equitable mortgagee of land belonging to the bankrupt may apply to the court for an order directing that the land be sold.

Landincludes any interest in, or right over, land.

(2) The court, if satisfied as to the applicant's title, may direct accounts to be taken and enquiries made to ascertain—

(a)the principal, interest and costs due under the mortgage, and

(b)where the mortgagee has been in possession of the land or any part of it, the rents and profits, dividends, interest, or other proceeds received by him or on his behalf.

Directions may be given by the court under this paragraph with respect to any mortgage (whether prior or subsequent) on the same property, other than that of the applicant.

(3) For the purpose of those accounts and enquiries, and of making title to the purchaser, any of the parties may be examined by the court, and shall produce on oath before the court all such documents in their custody or under their control relating to the estate of the bankrupt as the court may direct.

The court may under this paragraph authorise the service of interrogatories on any party.

(4) In any proceedings between a mortgagor and mortgagee, or the trustee of either of them, the court may order accounts to be taken and enquiries made in like manner as in the Chancery Division of the High Court.

Commencement Information

I586Rule 6.197 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Power of court to order saleE+W

6.198.—(1) The court may order that the land, or any specified part of it, be sold; and any party bound by the order and in possession of the land or part, or in receipt of the rents and profits from it, may be ordered to deliver up possession or receipt to the purchaser or to such other person as the court may direct.

(2) The court may permit the person having the conduct of the sale to sell the land in such manner as he thinks fit. Alternatively, the court may direct that the land be sold as directed by the order.

(3) The court's order may contain directions—

(a)appointing the persons to have the conduct of the sale;

(b)fixing the manner of sale (whether by contract conditional on the court's approval, private treaty, public auction, or otherwise);

(c)settling the particulars and conditions of sale;

(d)obtaining evidence of the value of the property, and fixing a reserve or minimum price;

(e)requiring particular persons to join in the sale and conveyance;

(f)requiring the payment of the purchase money into court, or to trustees or others;

(g)if the sale is to be by public auction, fixing the security (if any) to be given by the auctioneer, and his remuneration.

(4) The court may direct that, if the sale is to be by public auction, the mortgagee may appear and bid on his own behalf.

Commencement Information

I587Rule 6.198 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Proceeds of saleE+W

6.199.—(1) The proceeds of sale shall be applied—

(a)first, in payment of the expenses of the trustee, of and occasioned by the application to the court, of the sale and attendance threat, and of any costs arising from the taking of accounts, and making of enquiries, as directed by the court under Rule 6.197; and

(b)secondly, in payment of the amount found due to any mortgagee, for principal, interest and costs;

and the balance (if any) shall be retained by or paid to the trustee.

(2) Where the proceeds of the sale are insufficient to pay in full the amount found due to any mortgagee, he is entitled to prove as a creditor for any deficiency, and to receive dividends rateably with other creditors, but not so as to disturb any dividend already declared.

Commencement Information

I588Rule 6.199 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

CHAPTER 19E+WAFTER-ACQUIRED PROPERTY

Duties of bankrupt in respect of after-acquired propertyE+W

6.200.—(1) The notice to be given by the bankrupt to the trustee, under section 333(2), of property acquired by, or devolving upon, him, or of any increase of his income, shall be given within 21 days of his becoming aware of the relevant facts.

(2) Having served notice in respect of property acquired by or devolving upon him, the bankrupt shall not, without the trustee's consent in writing, dispose of it within the period of 42 days beginning with the date of the notice.

(3) If the bankrupt disposes of property before giving the notice required by this Rule or in contravention of paragraph (2), it is his duty forthwith to disclose to the trustee the name and address of the disponee, and to provide any other information which may be necessary to enable the trustee to trace the property and recover it for the estate.

(4) Subject as follows, paragraphs (1) to (3) do not apply to property acquired by the bankrupt in the ordinary course of a business carried on by him.

(5) If the bankrupt carries on a business, he shall, not less often than 6-monthly, furnish to the trustee information with respect to it, showing the total of goods bought and sold (or, as the case may be, services supplied) and the profit or loss arising from the business.

The trustee may require the bankrupt to furnish fuller details (including accounts) of the business carried on by him.

Commencement Information

I589Rule 6.200 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Trustee's recourse to disponee of propertyE+W

6.201.—(1) Where property has been disposed of by the bankrupt, before giving the notice required by Rule 6.200 or otherwise in contravention of that Rule, the trustee may serve notice on the disponee, claiming the property as part of the estate by virtue of section 307(3).

(2) The trustee's notice under this Rule must be served within 28 days of his becoming aware of the disponee's identity and an address at which he can be served.

Commencement Information

I590Rule 6.201 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Expenses of getting in property for the estateE+W

6.202.  Any expenses incurred by the trustee in acquiring title to after-acquired property shall be paid out of the estate, in the prescribed order of priority.

Commencement Information

I591Rule 6.202 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

CHAPTER 20E+WLEAVE TO ACT AS DIRECTOR, ETC

Application for leaveE+W

6.203.—(1) An application by the bankrupt for leave, under section 11 of the Company Directors Disqualification Act 1986, to act as director of, or to take part or be concerned in the promotion, formation or management of a company, shall be supported by an affidavit complying with this Rule.

(2) The affidavit must identify the company and specify—

(a)the nature of its business or intended business, and the place or places where that business is, or is to be, carried on,

(b)whether it is, or is to be, a private or a public company,

(c)the persons who are, or are to be, principally responsible for the conduct of its affairs (whether as directors, shadow directors, managers or otherwise),

(d)the manner and capacity in which the applicant proposes to take part or be concerned in the promotion or formation of the company or, as the case may be, its management, and

(e)the emoluments and other benefits to be obtained from the directorship.

(3) If the company is already in existence, the affidavit must specify the date of its incorporation and the amount of its nominal and issued share capital; and if not, it must specify the amount, or approximate amount, of its proposed commencing share capital, and the sources from which that capital is to be obtained.

(4) Where the bankrupt intends to take part or be concerned in the promotion or formation of a company, the affidavit must contain an undertaking by him that he will, within not less than 7 days of the company being incorporated, file in court a copy of its memorandum of association and certificate of incorporation under section 13 of the Companies Act.

(5) The court shall fix a venue for the hearing of the bankrupt's application, and give notice to him accordingly.

Commencement Information

I592Rule 6.203 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Report of official receiverE+W

6.204.—(1) The bankrupt shall, not less than 28 days before the date fixed for the hearing, give to the official receiver and the trustee notice of the venue, accompanied by copies of the application and the affidavit under Rule 6.203.

(2) The official receiver may, not less than 14 days before the date fixed for the hearing, file in court a report of any matters which he considers ought to be drawn to the court's attention. A copy of the report shall be sent by him, forthwith after it is filed, to the bankrupt and to the trustee.

(3) The bankrupt may, not later than 7 days before the date of the hearing, file in court a notice specifying any statements in the official receiver's report which he intends to deny or dispute.

If he gives notice under this paragraph, he shall send copies of it, not less than 4 days before the date of the hearing, to the official receiver and the trustee.

(4) The official receiver and the trustee may appear on the hearing of the application, and may make representations and put to the bankrupt such questions as the court may allow.

Commencement Information

I593Rule 6.204 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Court's order on applicationE+W

6.205.—(1) If the court grants the bankrupt's application for leave under section 11 of the Company Directors Disqualification Act 1986, its order shall specify that which by virtue of the order the bankrupt has leave to do.

(2) The court may at the same time, having regard to any representations made by the trustee on the hearing of the application—

(a)include in the order provision varying an income payments order already in force in respect of the bankrupt, or

(b)if no income payments order is in force, make one.

(3) Whether or not the application is granted, copies of the order shall be sent by the court to the bankrupt, the trustee and the official receiver.

Commencement Information

I594Rule 6.205 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

CHAPTER 21E+WANNULMENT OF BANKRUPTCY ORDER

Application for annulmentE+W

6.206.—(1) An application to the court under section 282(1) for the annulment of a bankruptcy order shall specify whether it is made—

(a)under subsection (1)(a) of the section (claim that the order ought not to have been made), or

(b)under subsection (1)(b) (debts and expenses of the bankruptcy all paid or secured).

(2) The application shall, in either case, be supported by an affidavit stating the grounds on which it is made; and, where it is made under section 282(1)(b), there shall be set out in the affidavit all the facts by reference to which the court is, under the Act and the Rules, required to be satisfied before annulling the bankruptcy order.

(3) A copy of the application and supporting affidavit shall be filed in court; and the court shall give to the applicant notice of the venue fixed for the hearing.

(4) The applicant shall, not less than 28 days before the hearing, give to the official receiver and (if other) the trustee notice of the venue, accompanied by copies of the application and the affidavit under paragraph (2).

Commencement Information

I595Rule 6.206 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Report by trusteeE+W

6.207.—(1) The following applies where the application is made under section 282(1)(b) (debts and expenses of the bankruptcy all paid or secured).

(2) Not less than 21 days before the date fixed for the hearing, the trustee or, if no trustee has been appointed, the official receiver shall file in court a report with respect to the following matters—

(a)the circumstances leading to the bankruptcy;

(b)(in summarised form) the extent of the bankrupt's assets and liabilities at the date of the bankruptcy order and at the date of the present application;

(c)details of creditors (if any) who are known to him to have claims, but have not proved; and

(d)such other matters as the person making the report considers to be, in the circumstances, necessary for the information of the court.

(3) The report shall include particulars of the extent (if any) to which, and the manner in which, the debts and expenses of the bankruptcy have been paid or secured.

In so far as debts and expenses are unpaid but secured, the person making the report shall state in it whether and to what extent he considers the security to be satisfactory.

(4) A copy of the report shall be sent to the applicant at least 14 days before the date fixed for the hearing; and he may, if he wishes, file further affidavits in answer to statements made in the report.

Copies of any such affidavits shall be sent by the applicant to the official receiver and (if other) the trustee.

(5) If the trustee is other than the official receiver, a copy of his report shall be sent to the official receiver at least 21 days before the hearing. The official receiver may then file an additional report, a copy of which shall be sent to the applicant at least 7 days before the hearing.

Commencement Information

I596Rule 6.207 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Power of court to stay proceedingsE+W

6.208.—(1) The court may, in advance of the hearing, make an interim order staying any proceedings which it thinks ought, in the circumstances of the application, to be stayed.

(2) Application for an interim order under this Rule may be made ex parte.

Commencement Information

I597Rule 6.208 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Notice to creditors who have not provedE+W

6.209.  Where the application for annulment is made under section 282(1)(b) and it has been reported to the court under Rule 6.207 that there are known creditors of the bankrupt who have not proved, the court may—

(a)direct the trustee to send notice of the application to such of those creditors as the court thinks ought to be informed of it, with a view to their proving their debts (if they so wish) within 21 days, and

(b)direct the trustee to advertise the fact that the application has been made, so that creditors who have not proved may do so within a specified time, and

(c)adjourn the application meanwhile, for any period not less than 35 days.

Commencement Information

I598Rule 6.209 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

The hearingE+W

6.210.—(1) The trustee shall attend the hearing of the application.

(2) The official receiver, if he is not the trustee, may attend, but is not required to do so unless he has filed a report under Rule 6.207.

(3) [[FORM 6.71]] If the court makes an order on the application, it shall send copies of the order to the applicant, the official receiver and (if other) the trustee.

Commencement Information

I599Rule 6.210 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Matters to be proved under s.282(1)(b)E+W

6.211.—(1) This rule applies with regard to the matters which must, in an application under section 282(1)(b), be proved to the satisfaction of the court.

(2) Subject to the following paragraph, all bankruptcy debts which have been proved must have been paid in full.

(3) If a debt is disputed, or a creditor who has proved can no longer be traced, the bankrupt must have given such security (in the form of money paid into court, or a bond entered into with approved sureties) as the court considers adequate to satisfy any sum that may subsequently be proved to be due to the creditor concerned and (if the court thinks fit) costs.

(4) Where under paragraph (3) security has been given in the case of an untraced creditor, the court may direct that particulars of the alleged debt, and the security, be advertised in such manner as it thinks fit.

If advertisement is ordered under this paragraph, and no claim on the security is made within 12 months from the date of the advertisement (or the first advertisement, if more than one), the court shall, on application in that behalf, order the security to be released.

Commencement Information

I600Rule 6.211 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Notice to creditorsE+W

6.212.—(1) Where the official receiver has notified creditors of the debtor's bankruptcy, and the bankruptcy order is annulled, he shall forthwith notify them of the annulment.

(2) Expenses incurred by the official receiver in giving notice under this Rule are a charge in his favour on the property of the former bankrupt, whether or not actually in his hands.

(3) Where any property is in the hands of a trustee or any person other than the former bankrupt himself, the official receiver's charge is valid subject only to any costs that may be incurred by the trustee or that other person in effecting realisation of the property for the purpose of satisfying the charge.

Commencement Information

I601Rule 6.212 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Other matters arising on annulmentE+W

6.213.—(1) In an order under section 282 the court shall include provision permitting vacation of the registration of the bankruptcy petition as a pending action, and of the bankruptcy order, in the register of writs and orders affecting land.

(2) The court shall forthwith give notice of the making of the order to the Secretary of State.

(3) The former bankrupt may require the Secretary of State to give notice of the making of the order—

(a)in the Gazette, or

(b)in any newspaper in which the bankruptcy order was advertised, or

(c)in both.

(4) Any requirement by the former bankrupt under paragraph (3) shall be addressed to the Secretary of State in writing. The Secretary of State shall notify him forthwith as to the cost of the advertisement, and is under no obligation to advertise until that sum has been paid.

(5) Where the former bankrupt has died, or is a person incapable of managing his affairs (within the meaning of Chapter 7 in Part 7 of the Rules), the references to him in paragraphs (3) and (4) are to be read as referring to his personal representative or, as the case may be, a person appointed by the court to represent or act for him.

Commencement Information

I602Rule 6.213 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Trustee's final accountE+W

6.214.—(1) Where a bankruptcy order is annulled under section 282, this does not of itself release the trustee from any duty or obligation, imposed on him by or under the Act or the Rules, to account for all his transactions in connection with the former bankrupt's estate.

(2) The trustee shall submit a copy of his final account to the Secretary of State, as soon as practicable after the court's order annulling the bankruptcy order; and he shall file a copy of the final account in court.

(3) The final account must include a summary of the trustee's receipts and payments in the administration, and contain a statement to the effect that he has reconciled his account with that which is held by the Secretary of State in respect of the bankruptcy.

(4) The trustee is released from such time as the court may determine, having regard to whether—

(a)paragraph (2) of this Rule has been complied with, and

(b)any security given under Rule 6.211(3) has been, or will be, released.

Commencement Information

I603Rule 6.214 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

CHAPTER 22E+WDISCHARGE

Application for suspension of dischargeE+W

6.215.—(1) The following applies where the official receiver applies to the court for an order under section 279(3) (suspension of automatic discharge), but not where he makes that application, pursuant to Rule 6.176(4), on the adjournment of the bankrupt's public examination.

(2) The official receiver shall with his application file a report setting out the reasons why it appears to him that such an order should be made.

(3) The court shall fix a venue for the hearing of the application, and give notice of it to the official receiver, the trustee and the bankrupt.

(4) Copies of the official receiver's report under this Rule shall be sent by him to the trustee and the bankrupt, so as to reach them at least 21 days before the date fixed for the hearing.

(5) The bankrupt may, not later than 7 days before the date of the hearing, file in court a notice specifying any statements in the official receiver's report which he intends to deny or dispute.

If he gives notice under this paragraph, he shall send copies of it, not less than 4 days before the date of the hearing, to the official receiver and the trustee.

(6) [[FORM 6.72]] If on the hearing the court makes an order suspending the bankrupt's discharge, copies of the order shall be sent by the court to the official receiver, the trustee and the bankrupt.

Commencement Information

I604Rule 6.215 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Lifting of suspension of dischargeE+W

6.216.—(1) Where the court has made an order under section 279(3) that the relevant period (that is to say, the period after which the bankrupt may under that section have his discharge) shall cease to run, the bankrupt may apply to it for the order to be discharged.

(2) The court shall fix a venue for the hearing of the application; and the bankrupt shall, not less than 28 days before the date fixed for hearing, give notice of the venue to the official receiver and the trustee, accompanied in each case by a copy of the application.

(3) The official receiver and the trustee may appear and be heard on the bankrupt's application; and, whether or not he appears, the official receiver may file in court a report of any matters which he considers ought to be drawn to the court's attention.

(4) If the court's order under section 279(3) was for the relevant period to cease to run until the fulfilment of specified conditions, the court may request a report from the official receiver as to whether those conditions have or have not been fulfilled.

(5) If a report is filed under paragraph (3) or (4), copies of it shall be sent by the official receiver to the bankrupt and the trustee, not later than 14 days before the hearing.

(6) The bankrupt may, not later than 7 days before the date of the hearing, file in court a notice specifying any statements in the official receiver's report which he intends to deny or dispute.

If he gives notice under this paragraph, he shall send copies of it, not less than 4 days before the date of the hearing, to the official receiver and the trustee.

(7) [[FORM 6.73] [FORM 6.74]] If on the bankrupt's application the court discharges the order under section 279(3) (being satisfied that the relevant period should begin to run again), it shall issue to the bankrupt a certificate that it has done so, with effect from a specified date.

Commencement Information

I605Rule 6.216 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Application by bankrupt for dischargeE+W

6.217.—(1) If the bankrupt applies under section 280 for an order discharging him from bankruptcy, he shall give to the official receiver notice of the application, and deposit with him such sum as the latter may require to cover his costs of the application.

(2) The court, if satisfied that paragraph (1) has been complied with, shall fix a venue for the hearing of the application, and give at least 42 days' notice of it to the official receiver and the bankrupt.

(3) The official receiver shall give notice accordingly—

(a)to the trustee, and

(b)to every creditor who, to the official receiver's knowledge, has a claim outstanding against the estate which has not been satisfied.

(4) Notices under paragraph (3) shall be given not later than 14 days before the date fixed for the hearing of the bankrupt's application.

Commencement Information

I606Rule 6.217 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Report of official receiverE+W

6.218.—(1) Where the bankrupt makes an application under section 280, the official receiver shall, at least 21 days before the date fixed for the hearing of the application, file in court a report containing the following information with respect to the bankrupt—

(a)any failure by him to comply with his obligations under Parts VIII to XI of the Act;

(b)the circumstances surrounding the present bankruptcy, and those surrounding any previous bankruptcy of his;

(c)the extent to which, in the present and in any previous bankruptcy, his liabilities have exceeded his assets; and

(d)particulars of any distribution which has been, or is expected to be, made to creditors in the present bankruptcy or, if such is the case, that there has been and is to be no distribution;

and the official receiver shall include in his report any other matters which in his opinion ought to be brought to the court's attention.

(2) The official receiver shall send a copy of the report to the bankrupt and the trustee, so as to reach them at least 14 days before the date of the hearing of the application under section 280.

(3) [[FORM 6.75]] The bankrupt may, not later than 7 days before the date of the hearing, file in court a notice specifying any statements in the official receiver's report which he intends to deny or dispute.

If he gives notice under this paragraph, he shall send copies of it, not less than 4 days before the date of the hearing, to the official receiver and the trustee.

(4) The official receiver, the trustee and any creditor may appear on the hearing of the bankrupt's application, and may make representations and put to the bankrupt such questions as the court may allow.

Commencement Information

I607Rule 6.218 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Order of discharge on applicationE+W

6.219.—(1) [[FORM 6.76]] An order of the court under section 280(2)(b)(discharge absolutely) or (c) (discharge subject to conditions with respect to income or property) shall bear the date on which it is made, but does not take effect until such time as it is drawn up by the court.

(2) The order then has effect retrospectively to the date on which it was made.

(3) Copies of any order made by the court on an application by the bankrupt for discharge under section 280 shall be sent by the court to the bankrupt, the trustee and the official receiver.

Commencement Information

I608Rule 6.219 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Certificate of dischargeE+W

6.220.—(1) [[FORM 6.77]] Where it appears to the court that a bankrupt is discharged, whether by expiration of time or otherwise, the court shall, on his application, issue to him a certificate of his discharge, and the date from which it is effective.

(2) The discharged bankrupt may require the Secretary of State to give notice of the discharge—

(a)in the Gazette, or

(b)in any newspaper in which the bankruptcy was advertised, or

(c)in both.

(3) Any requirement by the former bankrupt under paragraph (2) shall be addressed to the Secretary of State in writing. The Secretary of State shall notify him forthwith as to the cost of the advertisement, and is under no obligation to advertise until that sum has been paid.

(4) Where the former bankrupt has died, or is a person incapable of managing his affairs (within the meaning of Chapter 7 in Part 7 of the Rules), the references to him in paragraphs (2) and (3) are to be read as referring to his personal representative or, as the case may be, a person appointed by the court to represent or act for him.

Commencement Information

I609Rule 6.220 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Deferment of issue of order pending appealE+W

6.221.  An order made by the court on an application by the bankrupt for discharge under section 280 shall not be issued or gazetted until the time allowed for appealing has expired or, if an appeal is entered, until the appeal has been determined.

Commencement Information

I610Rule 6.221 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Costs under this ChapterE+W

6.222.  In no case do any costs or expenses arising under this Chapter fall on the official receiver personally.

Commencement Information

I611Rule 6.222 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Bankrupt's debts surviving dischargeE+W

6.223.  Discharge does not release the bankrupt from any obligation arising under a confiscation order made under section 1 of the Drug Trafficking Offences Act 1986

Commencement Information

I612Rule 6.223 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

CHAPTER 23E+WORDER OF PAYMENT OF COSTS, ETC., OUT OF ESTATE

General rule as to priorityE+W

6.224.—(1) The expenses of the bankruptcy are payable out of the estate in the following order of priority—

(a)expenses properly chargeable or incurred by the official receiver or the trustee in preserving, realising or getting in any of the assets of the bankrupt, including those incurred in acquiring title to after-acquired property;

(b)any other expenses incurred or disbursements made by the official receiver or under his authority, including those incurred or made in carrying on the business of a debtor or bankrupt;

(c)(i)the fee payable under any order made under section 415 for the performance by the official receiver of his general duties as official receiver;

(ii)any repayable deposit lodged by the petitioner under any such order as security for the fee mentioned in sub-paragraph (i) (except where the deposit is applied to the payment of the remuneration of an insolvency practitioner appointed under section 273 (debtor's petition));

(d)any other fees payable under any order made under section 415, including those payable to the official receiver, and any remuneration payable to him under general regulations;

(e)the cost of any security provided by an interim receiver, trustee or special manager in accordance with the Act or the Rules;

(f)the remuneration of the interim receiver (if any);

(g)any deposit lodged on an application for the appointment of an interim receiver;

(h)the costs of the petitioner, and of any person appearing on the petition whose costs are allowed by the court;

(j)the remuneration of the special manager (if any);

(k)any amount payable to a person employed or authorised, under Chapter 5 of this Part of the Rules, to assist in the preparation of a statement of affairs or of accounts;

(l)any allowance made, by order of the court, towards costs on an application for release from the obligation to submit a statement of affairs, or for an extension of time for submitting such a statement;

(m)any necessary disbursements by the trustee in the course of his administration (including any expenses incurred by members of the creditors' committee or their representatives and allowed by the trustee under Rule 6.164, but not including any payment of capital gains tax in circumstances referred to in sub-paragraph (p) below);

(n)the remuneration or emoluments of any person (including the bankrupt) who has been employed by the trustee to perform any services for the estate, as required or authorised by or under the Act or the Rules;

(o)the remuneration of the trustee, up to any amount not exceeding that which is payable to the official receiver under general regulations;

(p)the amount of any capital gains tax on chargeable gains accruing on the realisation of any asset of the bankrupt (without regard to whether the realisation is effected by the trustee, a secured creditor, or a receiver or manager appointed to deal with a security);

(q)the balance, after payment of any sums due under sub-paragraph (o) above, of any remuneration due to the trustee.

(2) The costs of employing a shorthand writer, if appointed by an order of the court made at the instance of the official receiver in connection with an examination, rank in priority with those specified in paragraph (1)(a). The costs of employing a shorthand writer so appointed in any other case rank after the allowance mentioned in paragraph (1)(l) and before the disbursements mentioned in paragraph (1)(m).

(3) Any expenses incurred in holding an examination under Rule 6.174 (examinee unfit), where the application for it is made by the official receiver, rank in priority with those specified in paragraph (1)(a).

Commencement Information

I613Rule 6.224 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

CHAPTER 24E+WSECOND BANKRUPTCY

Scope of this ChapterE+W

6.225.—(1) The Rules in this Chapter relate to the manner in which, in the case of a second bankruptcy, the trustee in the earlier bankruptcy is to deal with property and money to which section 334(3) applies, until there is a trustee of the estate in the later bankruptcy.

(2) “The earlier bankruptcy”, “the later bankruptcy” and “the existing trusteehave the meanings given by section 334(1).

Commencement Information

I614Rule 6.225 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

General duty of existing trusteeE+W

6.226.—(1) Subject as follows, the existing trustee shall take into his custody or under his control all such property and money, in so far as he has not already done so as part of his duties as trustee in the earlier bankruptcy.

(2) Where any of that property consists of perishable goods, or goods the value of which is likely to diminish if they are not disposed of, the existing trustee has power to sell or otherwise dispose of those goods.

(3) The proceeds of any such sale or disposal shall be held, under the existing trustee's control, with the other property and money comprised in the bankrupt's estate.

Commencement Information

I615Rule 6.226 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Delivery up to later trusteeE+W

6.227.  The existing trustee shall, as and when requested by the trustee for the purposes of the later bankruptcy, deliver up to the latter all such property and money as is in his custody or under his control in pursuance of Rule 6.226.

Commencement Information

I616Rule 6.227 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Existing trustee's expensesE+W

6.228.  Any expenses incurred by the existing trustee in compliance with section 335(1) and this Chapter of the Rules shall be defrayed out of, and are a charge on, all such property and money as is referred to in section 334(3), whether in the hands of the existing trustee or of the trustee for the purposes of the later bankruptcy.

Commencement Information

I617Rule 6.228 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

CHAPTER 25E+WCRIMINAL BANKRUPTCY

Presentation of petitionE+W

6.229.—(1) [[FORM 6.79]] In criminal bankruptcy, the petition under section 264(1)(d) shall be presented to the High Court, and accordingly Rule 6.9 in Chapter 2 (court in which other petitions to be presented) does not apply.

(2) This does not affect the High Court's power to order that the proceedings be transferred.

Commencement Information

I618Rule 6.229 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Status and functions of Official PetitionerE+W

6.230.—(1) Subject as follows, the Official Petitioner is to be regarded for all purposes of the Act and the Rules as a creditor of the bankrupt.

(2) He may attend or be represented at any meeting of creditors, and is to be given any notice under the Act or the Rules which is required or authorised to be given to creditors; and the requirements of the Rules as to the lodging or use of proxies do not apply.

Commencement Information

I619Rule 6.230 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Interim receivershipE+W

6.231.  Chapter 4 of this Part of the Rules applies in criminal bankruptcy only in so far as it provides for the appointment of the official receiver as interim receiver.

Commencement Information

I620Rule 6.231 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Proof of bankruptcy debts and notice of orderE+W

6.232.—(1) The making of a bankruptcy order on a criminal bankruptcy petition does not affect the right of creditors to prove for their debts arising otherwise than in consequence of the criminal proceedings.

(2) A person specified in a criminal bankruptcy order as having suffered loss or damage shall be treated as a creditor of the bankrupt; and a copy of the order is sufficient evidence of his claim, subject to its being shown by any party to the bankruptcy proceedings that the loss or damage actually suffered was more or (as the case may be) less than the amount specified in the order.

(3) The requirements of the Rules with respect to the proof of debts do not apply to the Official Petitioner.

(4) In criminal bankruptcy, the forms to be used by any person for the purpose of proving bankruptcy debts shall be sent out by the official receiver, not less than 12 weeks from the making of the bankruptcy order, to every creditor who is known to him, or is identified in the bankrupt's statement of affairs.

(5) The official receiver shall, within those 12 weeks, send to every such creditor notice of the making of the bankruptcy order.

Commencement Information

I621Rule 6.232 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Meetings under the RulesE+W

6.233.—(1) The following Rules in Chapter 6 of this Part do not apply in criminal bankruptcy—

  • Rules 6.79 and 6.80 (first meeting of creditors, and business thereat);

  • Rule 6.82(2) (the chairman, if other than the official receiver);

  • Rule 6.88(2) and (3) (resolution for appointment of trustee).

(2) Rule 6.97 (supply of forms for proof of debts) does not apply.

Commencement Information

I622Rule 6.233 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Trustee in bankruptcy; creditors' committee; annulment of bankruptcy orderE+W

6.234.—(1) Chapter 11 of this Part of the Rules does not apply in criminal bankruptcy, except Rules 6.136 (release of official receiver) and 6.147 (power of court to set aside transactions).

(2) Chapter 12 (creditors' committee) does not apply.

(3) Chapter 21 (annulment of bankruptcy order) applies to an application to the court under section 282(2) as it applies to an application under section 282(1), with any necessary modifications.

Commencement Information

I623Rule 6.234 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

CHAPTER 26E+WMISCELLANEOUS RULES IN BANKRUPTCY

Bankruptcy of solicitorsE+W

6.235.  Where a bankruptcy order is made against a solicitor, or such an order made against a solicitor is rescinded or annulled, the court shall forthwith give notice to the Secretary of the Law Society of the order that it has made.

Commencement Information

I624Rule 6.235 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Consolidation of petitionsE+W

6.236.  Where two or more bankruptcy petitions are presented against the same debtor, the court may order the consolidation of the proceedings, on such terms as it thinks fit.

Commencement Information

I625Rule 6.236 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Bankrupt's dwelling-house and homeE+W

6.237.—(1) This Rule applies where the trustee applies to the court under section 313 for an order imposing a charge on property consisting of an interest in a dwelling-house.

(2) The bankrupt's spouse or former spouse shall be made respondent to the application; and the court may, if it thinks fit, direct other persons to be made respondents also, in respect of any interest which they may have in the property.

(3) The trustee shall make a report to the court, containing the following particulars—

(a)the extent of the bankrupt's interest in the property which is the subject of the application; and

(b)the amount which, at the date of the application, remains owing to unsecured creditors of the bankrupt.

(4) The terms of the charge to be imposed shall be agreed between the trustee and the bankrupt or, failing agreement, shall be settled by the court.

(5) The rate of interest applicable under section 313(2) is the rate specified in section 17 of the Judgments Act 1838 on the day on which the charge is imposed, and the rate so applicable shall be stated in the court's order imposing the charge.

(6) The court's order shall also—

(a)describe the property to be charged;

(b)state whether the title to the property is registered and, if it is, specify the title number;

(c)set out the extent of the bankrupt's interest in the property which has vested in the trustee;

(d)indicate, by reference to the amount which remains owing to unsecured creditors of the bankrupt, the amount of the charge to be imposed;

(e)set out the conditions (if any) imposed by the court under section 3(1) of the Charging Orders Act 1979;

(f)provide for any property comprised in the charge to vest again in the bankrupt as from a specified date.

(7) Unless the court is of the opinion that a different date is appropriate, the date under paragraph (6)(f) shall be that of the registration of the charge in accordance with section 3(2) of the Charging Orders Act 1979.

(8) The trustee shall, forthwith after the making of the court's order, send notice of it and its effect to the Chief Land Registrar.

Commencement Information

I626Rule 6.237 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

THE THIRD GROUP OF PARTSE+W

PART 7E+WCOURT PROCEDURE AND PRACTICE

CHAPTER 1E+WAPPLICATIONS

PreliminaryE+W

7.1.  This Chapter applies to any application made to the court under the Act or Rules except a petition for—

(a)an administration order under Part II,

(b)a winding-up order under Part IV, or

(c)a bankruptcy order under Part IX

of the Act.

Commencement Information

I627Rule 7.1 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

InterpretationE+W

7.2.—(1) [[FORM 7.1]] In this Chapter, except in so far as the context otherwise requires—

originating application” means an application to the court which is not an application in pending proceedings before the court; and

ordinary application” means any other application to the court.

(2) [[FORM 7.2]] Every application shall be in the form appropriate to the application concerned.

Commencement Information

I628Rule 7.2 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Form and contents of applicationE+W

7.3.—(1) Each application shall be in writing and shall state—

(a)the names of the parties;

(b)the nature of the relief or order applied for or the directions sought from the court;

(c)the names and addresses of the persons (if any) on whom it is intended to serve the application or that no person is intended to be served;

(d)where the Act or Rules require that notice of the application is to be given to specified persons, the names and addresses of all those persons (so far as known to the applicant); and

(e)the applicant's address for service.

(2) An originating application shall set out the grounds on which the applicant claims to be entitled to the relief or order sought.

(3) The application must be signed by the applicant if he is acting in person or, when he is not so acting, by or on behalf of his solicitor.

Commencement Information

I629Rule 7.3 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Filing and service of applicationE+W

7.4.—(1) The application shall be filed in court, accompanied by one copy and a number of additional copies equal to the number of persons who are to be served with the application.

(2) Subject as follows in this Rule and the next, or unless the Rule under which the application is brought provides otherwise, or the court otherwise orders, upon the presentation of the documents mentioned in paragraph (1) above, the court shall fix a venue for the application to be heard.

(3) Unless the court otherwise directs, the applicant shall serve a sealed copy of the application, endorsed with the venue for the hearing, on the respondent named in the application (or on each respondent if more than one).

(4) The court may give any of the following directions—

(a)that the application be served upon persons other than those specified by the relevant provision of the Act or Rules;

(b)that the giving of notice to any person may be dispensed with;

(c)that notice be given in some way other than that specified in paragraph (3).

(5) Unless the provision of the Act or Rules under which the application is made provides otherwise, and subject to the next paragraph, the application must be served at least 14 days before the date fixed for the hearing.

(6) Where the case is one of urgency, the court may (without prejudice to its general power to extend or abridge time limits)—

(a)hear the application immediately, either with or without notice to, or the attendance of, other parties, or

(b)authorise a shorter period of service than that provided for by paragraph (5);

and any such application may be heard on terms providing for the filing or service of documents, or the carrying out of other formalities, as the court thinks fit.

Commencement Information

I630Rule 7.4 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Other hearings ex parteE+W

7.5.—(1) Where the relevant provisions of the Act or Rules do not require service of the application on, or notice of it to be given to, any person, the court may hear the application ex parte.

(2) Where the application is properly made ex parte, the court may hear it forthwith, without fixing a venue as required by Rule 7.4(2).

(3) Alternatively, the court may fix a venue for the application to be heard, in which case Rule 7.4 applies (so far as relevant).

Commencement Information

I631Rule 7.5 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Hearing of applicationE+W

7.6.—(1) Unless allowed or authorised to be made otherwise, every application before the registrar shall, and every application before the judge may, be heard in chambers.

(2) Unless either—

(a)the judge has given a general or special direction to the contrary, or

(b)it is not within the registrar's power to make the order required,

the jurisdiction of the court to hear and determine the application may be exercised by the registrar, and the application shall be made to the registrar in the first instance.

(3) Where the application is made to the registrar he may refer to the judge any matter which he thinks should properly be decided by the judge, and the judge may either dispose of the matter or refer it back to the registrar with such directions as he thinks fit.

(4) Nothing in this Rule precludes an application being made directly to the judge in a proper case.

Commencement Information

I632Rule 7.6 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Use of affidavit evidenceE+W

7.7.—(1) In any proceedings evidence may be given by affidavit unless by any provision of the Rules it is otherwise provided or the court otherwise directs; but the court may, on the application of any party, order the attendance for cross-examination of the person making the affidavit.

(2) Where, after such an order has been made, the person in question does not attend, his affidavit shall not be used in evidence without the leave of the court.

Commencement Information

I633Rule 7.7 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Filing and service of affidavitsE+W

7.8.—(1) Unless the provision of the Act or Rules under which the application is made provides otherwise, or the court otherwise allows—

(a)if the applicant intends to rely at the first hearing on affidavit evidence, he shall file the affidavit or affidavits (if more than one) in court and serve a copy or copies on the respondent, not less than 14 days before the date fixed for the hearing, and

(b)where a respondent to an application intends to oppose it and to rely for that purpose on affidavit evidence, he shall file the affidavit or affidavits (if more than one) in court and serve a copy or copies on the applicant, not less than 7 days before the date fixed for the hearing.

(2) Any affidavit may be sworn by the applicant or by the respondent or by some other person possessing direct knowledge of the subject matter of the application.

Commencement Information

I634Rule 7.8 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Use of reportsE+W

7.9.—(1) A report may be filed in court instead of an affidavit—

(a)in any case, by the official receiver (whether or not he is acting in any capacity mentioned in sub-paragraph (b)), or a deputy official receiver, or

(b)unless the application involves other parties or the court otherwise orders, by—

(i)an administrator, a liquidator or a trustee in bankruptcy,

(ii)a provisional liquidator or an interim receiver,

(iii)a special manager, or

(iv)an insolvency practitioner appointed under section 273(2).

(2) In any case where a report is filed instead of an affidavit, the report shall be treated for the purposes of Rule 7.8(1) and any hearing before the court as if it were an affidavit.

(3) Any report filed by the official receiver in accordance with the Act or the Rules is prima facie evidence of any matter contained in it.

Commencement Information

I635Rule 7.9 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Adjournment of hearing; directionsE+W

7.10.—(1) The court may adjourn the hearing of an application on such terms (if any) as it thinks fit.

(2) The court may at any time give such directions as it thinks fit as to—

(a)service or notice of the application on or to any person, whether in connection with the venue of a resumed hearing or for any other purpose;

(b)whether particulars of claim and defence are to be delivered and generally as to the procedure on the application;

(c)the manner in which any evidence is to be adduced at a resumed hearing and in particular (but without prejudice to the generality of this sub-paragraph) as to—

(i)the taking of evidence wholly or in part by affidavit or orally;

(ii)the cross-examination either before the judge or registrar on the hearing in court or in chambers, of any deponents to affidavits;

(iii)any report to be given by the official receiver or any person mentioned in Rule 7.9(1)(b);

(d)the matters to be dealt with in evidence.

Commencement Information

I636Rule 7.10 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

CHAPTER 2E+WTRANSFER OF PROCEEDINGS BETWEEN COURTS

General power of transferE+W

7.11.—(1) Where winding-up or bankruptcy proceedings are pending in the High Court, the court may order them to be transferred to a specified county court.

(2) Where winding-up or bankruptcy proceedings are pending in a county court, the court may order them to be transferred either to the High Court or to another county court.

(3) In any case where proceedings are transferred to a county court, the transfer must be to a court which has jurisdiction to wind up companies or, as the case may be, jurisdiction in bankruptcy.

(4) Where winding-up or bankruptcy proceedings are pending in a county court, a judge of the High Court may order them to be transferred to that Court.

(5) A transfer of proceedings under this Rule may be ordered—

(a)by the court of its own motion, or

(b)on the application of the official receiver, or

(c)on the application of a person appearing to the court to have an interest in the proceedings.

(6) A transfer of proceedings under this Rule may be ordered notwithstanding that the proceedings commenced before the coming into force of the Rules.

Commencement Information

I637Rule 7.11 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Proceedings commenced in wrong courtE+W

7.12.  Where winding-up or bankruptcy proceedings are commenced in a court which is, in relation to those proceedings, the wrong court, that court may—

(a)order the transfer of the proceedings to the court in which they ought to have been commenced;

(b)order that the proceedings be continued in the court in which they have been commenced; or

(c)order the proceedings to be struck out.

Commencement Information

I638Rule 7.12 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Applications for transferE+W

7.13.—(1) An application by the official receiver for proceedings to be transferred shall be made with a report by him—

(a)setting out the reasons for the transfer, and

(b)including a statement either that the petitioner consents to the transfer, or that he has been given at least 14 days' notice of the official receiver's application.

(2) If the court is satisfied from the official receiver's report that the proceedings can be conducted more conveniently in another court, the proceedings shall be transferred to that court.

(3) Where an application for the transfer of proceedings is made otherwise than by the official receiver, at least 14 days' notice of the application shall be given by the applicant—

(a)to the official receiver attached to the court in which the proceedings are pending, and

(b)to the official receiver attached to the court to which it is proposed that they should be transferred.

Commencement Information

I639Rule 7.13 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Procedure following order for transferE+W

7.14.—(1) Subject as follows, the court making an order under Rule 7.11 shall forthwith send to the transferee court a sealed copy of the order, and the file of the proceedings.

(2) On receipt of these, the transferee court shall forthwith send notice of the transfer to the official receivers attached to that court and the transferor court respectively.

(3) Paragraph (1) does not apply where the order is made by the High Court under Rule 7.11(4). In that case—

(a)the High Court shall send sealed copies of the order to the county court from which the proceedings are to be transferred, and to the official receivers attached to that court and the High Court respectively, and

(b)that county court shall send the file of the proceedings to the High Court.

(4) Following compliance with this Rule, if the official receiver attached to the court to which the proceedings are ordered to be transferred is not already, by virtue of directions given by the Secretary of State under section 399(6)(a), the official receiver in relation to those proceedings, he becomes, in relation to those proceedings, the official receiver in place of the official receiver attached to the other court concerned.

Commencement Information

I640Rule 7.14 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Consequential transfer of other proceedingsE+W

7.15.—(1) This Rule applies where—

(a)an order for the winding up of a company, or a bankruptcy order in the case of an individual, has been made by the High Court, or

(b)in either such case, a provisional liquidator or (as the case may be) an interim receiver has been appointed, or

(c)winding-up or bankruptcy proceedings have been transferred to that Court from a county court.

(2) A judge of any Division of the High Court may, of his own motion, order the transfer to that Division of any such proceedings as are mentioned below and are pending against the company or individual concerned (“the insolvent”) either in another Division of the High Court or in a court in England and Wales other than the High Court.

(3) Proceedings which may be so transferred are those brought by or against the insolvent for the purpose of enforcing a claim against the insolvent estate, or brought by a person other than the insolvent for the purpose of enforcing any such claim (including in either case proceedings of any description by a debenture-holder or mortgagee).

(4) Where proceedings are transferred under this Rule, the registrar may (subject to general or special directions of the judge) dispose of any matter arising in the proceedings which would, but for the transfer, have been disposed of in chambers or, in the case of proceedings transferred from a county court, by the registrar of that court.

Commencement Information

I641Rule 7.15 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

CHAPTER 3E+WSHORTHAND WRITERS

Nomination and appointment of shorthand writersE+W

7.16.—(1) [[FORM 7.3]] In the High Court the judge and, in a county court, the registrar may in writing nominate one or more persons to be official shorthand writers to the court.

(2) [[FORM 7.4]] The court may, at any time in the course of insolvency proceedings, appoint a shorthand writer to take down the evidence of a person examined under section 133, 236, 290 or 366.

(3) Where the official receiver applies to the court for an order appointing a shorthand writer, he shall name the person he proposes for appointment; and that appointment shall be made, unless the court otherwise orders.

Commencement Information

I642Rule 7.16 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

RemunerationE+W

7.17.—(1) The remuneration of a shorthand writer appointed in insolvency proceedings shall be paid by the party at whose instance the appointment was made, or out of the insolvent estate, or otherwise, as the court may direct.

(2) The remuneration payable shall be calculated in accordance with Schedule 3 to the Rules.

Commencement Information

I643Rule 7.17 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Cost of shorthand noteE+W

7.18.  Where in insolvency proceedings the court appoints a shorthand writer on the application of the official receiver, in order that a written record may be taken of the evidence of a person to be examined, the cost of the written record is deemed an expense of the official receiver in the proceedings.

Commencement Information

I644Rule 7.18 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

CHAPTER 4E+WENFORCEMENT PROCEDURES

Enforcement of court ordersE+W

7.19.—(1) In any insolvency proceedings, orders of the court may be enforced in the same manner as a judgment to the same effect.

(2) Where an order in insolvency proceedings is made, or any process is issued, by a county court (“the primary court”), the order or process may be enforced, executed and dealt with by any other county court (“the secondary court”), as if it had been made or issued for the enforcement of a judgment or order to the same effect made by the secondary court.

This applies whether or not the secondary court has jurisdiction to take insolvency proceedings.

Commencement Information

I645Rule 7.19 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Orders enforcing compliance with the RulesE+W

7.20.—(1) The court may, on application by the competent person, make such orders as it thinks necessary for the enforcement of obligations falling on any person in accordance with—

(a)section 22, 47 or 131 (duty to submit statement of affairs in administration, administrative receivership or winding up),

(b)section 143(2) (liquidator to furnish information, books, papers, etc.), or

(c)section 235 (duty of various persons to co-operate with office-holder).

(2) The competent person for this purpose is—

(a)under section 22, the administrator,

(b)under section 47, the administrative receiver,

(c)under section 131 or 143(2), the official receiver, and

(d)under section 235, the official receiver, the administrator, the administrative receiver, the liquidator or the provisional liquidator, as the case may be.

(3) An order of the court under this Rule may provide that all costs of and incidental to the application for it shall be borne by the person against whom the order is made.

Commencement Information

I646Rule 7.20 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Warrants (general provisions)E+W

7.21.—(1) A warrant issued by the court under any provision of the Act shall be addressed to such officer of the High Court or of a county court (whether or not having jurisdiction in insolvency proceedings) as the warrant specifies, or to any constable.

(2) The persons referred to in sections 134(2), 236(5), 364(1), 365(3) and 366(3) (court's powers of enforcement) as the prescribed officer of the court are—

(a)in the case of the High Court, the tipstaff and his assistants of the court, and

(b)in the case of a county court, the registrar and the bailiffs.

(3) In this Chapter references to property include books, papers and records.

Commencement Information

I647Rule 7.21 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Warrants under ss.134, 364E+W

7.22.  [[FORM 7.6] [FORM 7.7]] When a person is arrested under a warrant issued by the court under section 134 (officer of company failing to attend for public examination), or section 364 (arrest of debtor or bankrupt)—

(a)the officer apprehending him shall give him into the custody of the governor of the prison named in the warrant, who shall keep him in custody until such time as the court otherwise orders and shall produce him before the court as it may from time to time direct; and

(b)any property in the arrested person's possession which may be seized shall be—

(i)lodged with, or otherwise dealt with as instructed by, whoever is specified in the warrant as authorised to receive it, or

(ii)kept by the officer seizing it pending the receipt of written orders from the court as to its disposal,

as may be directed by the court in the warrant.

Commencement Information

I648Rule 7.22 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Warrants under ss.236, 366E+W

7.23.—(1) [[FORM 7.8]] When a person is arrested under a warrant issued under section 236 (inquiry into insolvent company's dealings) or 366 (the equivalent in bankruptcy), the officer arresting him shall forthwith bring him before the court issuing the warrant in order that he may be examined.

(2) [[FORM 7.9]] If he cannot immediately be brought up for examination, the officer shall deliver him into the custody of the governor of the prison named in the warrant, who shall keep him in custody and produce him before the court as it may from time to time direct.

(3) After arresting the person named in the warrant, the officer shall forthwith report to the court the arrest or delivery into custody (as the case may be) and apply to the court to fix a venue for the person's examination.

(4) The court shall appoint the earliest practicable time for the examination, and shall—

(a)[[FORM 7.9]] direct the governor of the prison to produce the person for examination at the time and place appointed, and

(b)forthwith give notice of the venue to the person who applied for the warrant.

(5) Any property in the arrested person's possession which may be seized shall be—

(a)lodged with, or otherwise dealt with as instructed by, whoever is specified in the warrant as authorised to receive it, or

(b)kept by the officer seizing it pending the receipt of written orders from the court as to its disposal,

as may be directed by the court.

Commencement Information

I649Rule 7.23 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Execution of warrants outside court's districtE+W

7.24.—(1) [[FORM 7.10]] This Rule applies where a warrant for a person's arrest has been issued in insolvency proceedings by a county court (“the primary court”) and is addressed to another county court (“the secondary court”) for execution in its district.

(2) The secondary court may send the warrant to the registrar of any other county court (whether or not having jurisdiction to take insolvency proceedings) in whose district the person to be arrested is or is believed to be, with a notice to the effect that the warrant is transmitted to that court under this Rule for execution in its district at the request of the primary court.

(3) The court receiving a warrant transmitted by the secondary court under this Rule shall apply its seal to the warrant, and secure that all such steps are taken for its execution as would be appropriate in the case of a warrant issued by itself.

Commencement Information

I650Rule 7.24 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Warrants under s.365E+W

7.25.—(1) A warrant issued under section 365(3) (search of premises not belonging to the bankrupt) shall authorise any person executing it to seize any property of the bankrupt found as a result of the execution of the warrant.

(2) [[FORM 7.12] [[FORM 7.13]] Any property seized under a warrant issued under section 365(2) or (3) shall be—

(a)lodged with, or otherwise dealt with as instructed by, whoever is specified in the warrant as authorised to receive it, or

(b)kept by the officer seizing it pending the receipt of written orders from the court as to its disposal,

as may be directed by the warrant.

Commencement Information

I651Rule 7.25 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

CHAPTER 5E+WCOURT RECORDS AND RETURNS

Title of proceedingsE+W

7.26.—(1) Every proceeding under Parts I to VII of the Act shall, with any necessary additions, be intituled “IN THE MATTER OF ... (naming the company to which the proceedings relate) AND IN THE MATTER OF THE INSOLVENCY ACT 1986”.

(2) Every proceeding under Parts IX to XI of the Act shall be intituled “IN BANKRUPTCY”.

Commencement Information

I652Rule 7.26 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Court recordsE+W

7.27.  The court shall keep records of all insolvency proceedings, and shall cause to be entered in the records the taking of any step in the proceedings, and such decisions of the court in relation thereto, as the court thinks fit.

Commencement Information

I653Rule 7.27 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Inspection of recordsE+W

7.28.—(1) Subject as follows, the court's records of insolvency proceedings shall be open to inspection by any person.

(2) If in the case of a person applying to inspect the records the registrar is not satisfied as to the propriety of the purpose for which inspection is required, he may refuse to allow it. The person may then apply forthwith and ex parte to the judge, who may refuse the inspection, or allow it on such terms as he thinks fit.

(3) The judge's decision under paragraph (2) is final.

Commencement Information

I654Rule 7.28 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Returns to Secretary of StateE+W

7.29.—(1) The court shall from time to time send to the Secretary of State the following particulars relating to winding-up and bankruptcy proceedings—

(a)the full title of the proceedings, including the number assigned to each case;

(b)where a winding-up or bankruptcy order has been made, the date of the order.

(2) The Secretary of State may, on the request of any person, furnish him with particulars sent by the court under this Rule.

Commencement Information

I655Rule 7.29 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

File of court proceedingsE+W

7.30.—(1) In respect of all insolvency proceedings, the court shall open and maintain a file for each case; and (subject to directions of the registrar) all documents relating to such proceedings shall be placed on the relevant file.

(2) No proceedings shall be filed in the Central Office of the High Court.

Commencement Information

I656Rule 7.30 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Right to inspect the fileE+W

7.31.—(1) In the case of any insolvency proceedings, the following have the right, at all reasonable times, to inspect the court's file of the proceedings—

(a)the person who, in relation to those proceedings, is the responsible insolvency practitioner;

(b)any duly authorised officer of the Department; and

(c)any person stating himself in writing to be a creditor of the company to which, or the individual to whom, the proceedings relate.

(2) The same right of inspection is exercisable—

(a)in proceedings under Parts I to VII of the Act, by every person who is, or at any time has been, a director or officer of the company to which the proceedings relate, or who is a member of the company or a contributory in its winding up;

(b)in proceedings with respect to a voluntary arrangement proposed by a debtor under Part VIII of the Act, by the debtor;

(c)in bankruptcy proceedings, by—

(i)the bankrupt,

(ii)any person against whom, or by whom, a bankruptcy petition has been presented, and

(iii)any person who has been served, in accordance with Chapter 1 of Part 6 of the Rules, with a statutory demand.

(3) The right of inspection conferred as above on any person may be exercised on his behalf by a person properly authorised by him.

(4) Any person may, by special leave of the court, inspect the file.

(5) The right of inspection conferred by this Rule is not exercisable in the case of documents, or parts of documents, as to which the court directs (either generally or specially) that they are not to be made open to inspection without the court's leave.

An application for a direction of the court under this paragraph may be made by the official receiver, by the person who in relation to any proceedings is the responsible insolvency practitioner, or by any party appearing to the court to have an interest.

(6) If, for the purpose of powers conferred by the Act or the Rules, the Secretary of State, the Department or the official receiver requires to inspect the file of any insolvency proceedings, and requests the transmission of the file, the court shall comply with the request (unless the file is for the time being in use for the court's own purposes).

(7) Paragraphs (2) and (3) of Rule 7.28 apply in respect of the court's file of any proceedings as they apply in respect of court records.

Commencement Information

I657Rule 7.31 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Filing of Gazette notices and advertisementsE+W

7.32.—(1) In any court in which insolvency proceedings are pending, an officer of the court shall file a copy of every issue of the Gazette which contains an advertisement relating to those proceedings.

(2) Where there appears in a newspaper an advertisement relating to insolvency proceedings pending in any court, the person inserting the advertisement shall file a copy of it in that court.

The copy of the advertisement shall be accompanied by, or have endorsed on it, such particulars as are necessary to identify the proceedings and the date of the advertisement's appearance.

(3) An officer of any court in which insolvency proceedings are pending shall from time to time file a memorandum giving the dates of, and other particulars relating to, any notice published in the Gazette, and any newspaper advertisements, which relate to proceedings so pending.

The officer's memorandum is prima facie evidence that any notice or advertisement mentioned in it was duly inserted in the issue of the newspaper or the Gazette which is specified in the memorandum.

Commencement Information

I658Rule 7.32 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

CHAPTER 6E+WCOSTS AND TAXATION

Application of Rules of Supreme Court and County Court RulesE+W

7.33.  Subject to provision to inconsistent effect made as follows in this Chapter—

(a)Order 62 of the Rules of the Supreme Court applies to insolvency proceedings in the High Court, and

(b)Order 38 of the County Court Rules applies to such proceedings in a county court,

in either case, with any necessary modifications.

Commencement Information

I659Rule 7.33 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Requirement to tax costsE+W

7.34.—(1) Subject as follows, where any costs, charges or expenses of any person are payable out of the insolvent estate, the responsible insolvency practitioner may agree them with the person entitled to payment or may require them to be taxed by the court to which the insolvency proceedings are allocated or, where in relation to a company there is no such court, by a court having jurisdiction to wind up the company.

(2) If a liquidation or creditors' committee established in insolvency proceedings (except administrative receivership) resolves that any such costs, charges or expenses be taxed, the insolvency practitioner shall require taxation.

(3) Where the costs, charges or expenses of any person employed by an insolvency practitioner in insolvency proceedings are required to be taxed, this does not preclude the insolvency practitioner from making payments on account to such person on the basis of an undertaking by that person to repay immediately any money which may, on taxation, prove to have been overpaid, with interest at the rate specified in section 17 of the Judgments Act 1838 on the date payment was made and for the period from the date of payment to that of repayment.

(4) In any proceedings before the court, including proceedings on a petition, the court may order costs to be taxed.

(5) Unless otherwise directed or authorised, the costs of a trustee in bankruptcy or a liquidator are to be allowed on the standard basis.

(6) This Rule applies additionally (with any necessary modifications) to winding-up and bankruptcy proceedings commenced before the coming into force of the Rules.

Commencement Information

I660Rule 7.34 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Procedure where taxation requiredE+W

7.35.—(1) Before taxing the costs of any person employed in insolvency proceedings by a responsible insolvency practitioner, the taxing officer shall require a certificate of employment, which shall be endorsed on the bill and signed by the insolvency practitioner.

(2) The certificate shall include—

(a)the name and address of the person employed,

(b)details of the functions to be carried out under the employment, and

(c)a note of any special terms of remuneration which have been agreed.

(3) Every person whose costs are required to be taxed in insolvency proceedings shall, on being required in writing to do so by the insolvency practitioner, deliver his bill of costs to the taxing officer for taxation.

(4) If that person does not so deliver his bill within 3 months of the requirement under paragraph (3), or within such further time as the court, on application, may grant, the insolvency practitioner may deal with the insolvent estate without regard to any claim by that person, whose claim is forfeited.

(5) Where in any such case such a claim lies additionally against an insolvency practitioner in his personal capacity, that claim is also forfeited.

Commencement Information

I661Rule 7.35 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Costs of sheriffE+W

7.36.—(1) Where a sheriff—

(a)is required under section 184(2) or 346(2) to deliver up goods or money, or

(b)has under section 184(3) or 346(3) deducted costs from the proceeds of an execution or money paid to him,

the responsible insolvency practitioner may require in writing that the sheriff's bill of costs be taxed.

(2) Where such a requirement is made, Rule 7.35(4) applies.

(3) Where, in the case of a deduction under paragraph (1)(b), any amount is disallowed on taxation, the sheriff shall forthwith pay a sum equal to that amount to the insolvency practitioner for the benefit of the insolvent estate.

Commencement Information

I662Rule 7.36 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Petitions presented by insolventsE+W

7.37.—(1) In any case where a petition is presented by a company or individual (“the insolvent”) against himself, any solicitor acting for the insolvent shall in his bill of costs give credit for any sum or security received from the insolvent as a deposit on account of the costs and expenses to be incurred in respect of the filing and prosecution of the petition; and the deposit shall be noted by the taxing officer on the taxing certificate.

(2) Paragraph (3) applies where a petition is presented by a person other than the insolvent to whom the petition relates and before it is heard the insolvent presents a petition for the same order, and that order is made.

(3) Unless the court considers that the insolvent estate has benefitted by the insolvent's conduct, or that there are otherwise special circumstances justifying the allowance of costs, no costs shall be allowed to the insolvent or his solicitor out of the insolvent estate.

Commencement Information

I663Rule 7.37 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Costs paid otherwise than out of the insolvent estateE+W

7.38.  Where a bill of costs is taxed under an order of the court directing that the costs are to be paid otherwise than out of the insolvent estate, the taxing officer shall note on the certificate of taxation by whom, or the manner in which, the costs are to be paid.

Commencement Information

I664Rule 7.38 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Award of costs against official receiver or responsible insolvency practitionerE+W

7.39.  Without prejudice to any provision of the Act or Rules by virtue of which the official receiver is not in any event to be liable for costs and expenses, where the official receiver or a responsible insolvency practitioner is made a party to any proceedings on the application of another party to the proceedings, he shall not be personally liable for costs unless the court otherwise directs.

Commencement Information

I665Rule 7.39 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Applications for costsE+W

7.40.—(1) This Rule applies where a party to, or person affected by, any proceedings in an insolvency—

(a)applies to the court for an order allowing his costs, or part of them, incidental to the proceedings, and

(b)that application is not made at the time of the proceedings.

(2) The person concerned shall serve a sealed copy of his application on the responsible insolvency practitioner, and, in a winding up by the court or bankruptcy, on the official receiver.

(3) The insolvency practitioner and, where appropriate, the official receiver may appear on the application.

(4) No costs of or incidental to the application shall be allowed to the applicant unless the court is satisfied that the application could not have been made at the time of the proceedings.

Commencement Information

I666Rule 7.40 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Costs and expenses of witnessesE+W

7.41.—(1) Except as directed by the court, no allowance as a witness in any examination or other proceedings before the court shall be made to the bankrupt or an officer of the insolvent company to which the proceedings relate.

(2) A person presenting any petition in insolvency proceedings shall not be regarded as a witness on the hearing of the petition, but the taxing officer may allow his expenses of travelling and subsistence.

Commencement Information

I667Rule 7.41 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Certificate of taxationE+W

7.42.—(1) A certificate of taxation of the taxing officer is final and conclusive as to all matters which have not been objected to in the manner provided for under the rules of the court.

(2) Where it is proved to the satisfaction of a taxing officer that a certificate of taxation has been lost or destroyed, he may issue a duplicate.

(3) “Certificate of taxationincludes, for the purposes of the Rules, an order of the registrar in a county court.

Commencement Information

I668Rule 7.42 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

CHAPTER 7E+WPERSONS INCAPABLE OF MANAGING THEIR AFFAIRS

IntroductoryE+W

7.43.—(1) The Rules in this Chapter apply where in insolvency proceedings it appears to the court that a person affected by the proceedings is one who is incapable of managing and administering his property and affairs either—

(a)by reason of mental disorder within the meaning of the Mental Health Act 1983, or

(b)due to physical affliction or disability.

(2) The person concerned is referred to as “the incapacitated person”.

Commencement Information

I669Rule 7.43 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Appointment of another person to actE+W

7.44.—(1) [[FORM 7.19]] The court may appoint such person as it thinks fit to appear for, represent or act for the incapacitated person.

(2) The appointment may be made either generally or for the purpose of any particular application or proceeding, or for the exercise of particular rights or powers which the incapacitated person might have exercised but for his incapacity.

(3) The court may make the appointment either of its own motion or on application by—

(a)a person who has been appointed by a court in the United Kingdom or elsewhere to manage the affairs of, or to represent, the incapacitated person, or

(b)any relative or friend of the incapacitated person who appears to the court to be a proper person to make the application, or

(c)the official receiver, or

(d)the person who, in relation to the proceedings, is the responsible insolvency practitioner.

(4) Application under paragraph (3) may be made ex parte; but the court may require such notice of the application as it thinks necessary to be given to the person alleged to be incapacitated, or any other person, and may adjourn the hearing of the application to enable the notice to be given.

Commencement Information

I670Rule 7.44 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Affidavit in support of applicationE+W

7.45.—(1) Except where made by the official receiver, an application under Rule 7.44(3) shall be supported by an affidavit of a registered medical practitioner as to the mental or physical condition of the incapacitated person.

(2) In the excepted case, a report made by the official receiver is sufficient.

Commencement Information

I671Rule 7.45 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Service of notices following appointmentE+W

7.46.  Any notice served on, or sent to, a person appointed under Rule 7.44 has the same effect as if it had been served on, or given to, the incapacitated person.

Commencement Information

I672Rule 7.46 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

CHAPTER 8E+WAPPEALS IN INSOLVENCY PROCEEDINGS

Appeals and reviews of court orders (winding up)E+W

7.47.—(1) Every court having jurisdiction under the Act to wind up companies may review, rescind or vary any order made by it in the exercise of that jurisdiction.

(2) An appeal from a decision made in the exercise of that jurisdiction by a county court or by a registrar of the High Court lies to a single judge of the High Court; and an appeal from a decision of that judge on such an appeal lies, with the leave of that judge or the Court of Appeal, to the Court of Appeal.

(3) A county court is not, in the exercise of its jurisdiction to wind up companies, subject to be restrained by the order of any other court, and no appeal lies from its decision in the exercise of that jurisdiction except as provided by this Rule.

(4) Any application for the rescission of a winding-up order shall be made within 7 days after the date on which the order was made.

Commencement Information

I673Rule 7.47 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Appeals in bankruptcyE+W

7.48.—(1) In bankruptcy proceedings, an appeal lies at the instance of the Secretary of State from any order of the court made on an application for the rescission or annulment of a bankruptcy order, or for a bankrupt's discharge.

(2) In the case of an order made by a county court or by a registrar of the High Court, the appeal lies to a single judge of the High Court; and an appeal from a decision of that judge on such an appeal lies, with the leave of that judge or the Court of Appeal, to the Court of Appeal.

Commencement Information

I674Rule 7.48 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Procedure on appealE+W

7.49.—(1) Subject as follows, the procedure and practice of the Supreme Court relating to appeals to the Court of Appeal apply to appeals in insolvency proceedings.

(2) In relation to any appeal to a single judge of the High Court under section 375(2) (individual insolvency) or Rule 7.47(2) above (company insolvency), any reference in the Rules of the Supreme Court to the Court of Appeal is replaced by a reference to that judge.

(3) In insolvency proceedings, the procedure under Order 59 of the Rules of the Supreme Court (appeal to the Court of Appeal) is by application, and not by summons.

Commencement Information

I675Rule 7.49 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Appeal against decision of Secretary of State or official receiverE+W

7.50.  An appeal under the Act or the Rules against a decision of the Secretary of State or the official receiver shall be brought within 28 days of the notification of the decision.

Commencement Information

I676Rule 7.50 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

CHAPTER 9E+WGENERAL

Principal court rules and practice to applyE+W

7.51.  Except so far as inconsistent with the Insolvency Rules, the Rules of the Supreme Court and the practice of the High Court apply to insolvency proceedings in the High Court, and the County Court Rules and the practice of the county court apply to insolvency proceedings in a county court, in either case with any necessary modifications.

Commencement Information

I677Rule 7.51 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Right of audienceE+W

7.52.—(1) Official receivers and deputy official receivers have right of audience in insolvency proceedings, whether in the High Court or a county court.

(2) Subject as above, rights of audience in insolvency proceedings are the same as obtained before the coming into force of the Rules.

Commencement Information

I678Rule 7.52 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Right of attendance (company insolvency)E+W

7.53.—(1) Subject as follows, in company insolvency proceedings any person stating himself in writing, in records kept by the court for that purpose, to be a creditor or member of the company or, where the company is being wound up, a contributory, is entitled, at his own cost, to attend in court or in chambers at any stage of the proceedings.

(2) Attendance may be by the person himself, or his solicitor.

(3) A person so entitled may request the court in writing to give him notice of any step in the proceedings; and, subject to his paying the costs involved and keeping the court informed as to his address, the court shall comply with the request.

(4) If the court is satisfied that the exercise by a person of his rights under this Rule has given rise to costs for the insolvent estate which would not otherwise have been incurred and ought not, in the circumstances, to fall on that estate, it may direct that the costs be paid by the person concerned, to an amount specified.

The person's rights under this Rule are in abeyance so long as those costs are not paid.

(5) The court may appoint one or more persons to represent the creditors, the members or the contributories of an insolvent company, or any class of them, to have the rights conferred by this Rule, instead of the rights being exercisable by any or all of them individually.

If two or more persons are appointed under this paragraph to represent the same interest they must (if at all) instruct the same solicitor.

Commencement Information

I679Rule 7.53 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Insolvency practitioner's solicitorE+W

7.54.  Where in any proceedings the attendance of the responsible insolvency practitioner's solicitor is required, whether in court or in chambers, the insolvency practitioner himself need not attend, unless directed by the court.

Commencement Information

I680Rule 7.54 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Formal defectsE+W

7.55.  No insolvency proceedings shall be invalidated by any formal defect or by any irregularity, unless the court before which objection is made considers that substantial injustice has been caused by the defect or irregularity, and that the injustice cannot be remedied by any order of the court.

Commencement Information

I681Rule 7.55 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Restriction on concurrent proceedings and remediesE+W

7.56.  Where in insolvency proceedings the court makes an order staying any action, execution or other legal process against the property of a company, or against the property or person of an individual debtor or bankrupt, service of the order may be effected by sending a sealed copy of the order to whatever is the address for service of the plaintiff or other party having the carriage of the proceedings to be stayed.

Commencement Information

I682Rule 7.56 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

AffidavitsE+W

7.57.—(1) Subject as follows, the rules and practice obtaining in the High Court with regard to affidavits, their form and contents, and the procedure governing their use, are to be taken as applicable in all insolvency proceedings in any court.

(2) In applying RSC Order 41 (which relates to affidavits generally), there are to be disregarded provisions which are inconsistent with, or necessarily excluded by, the following paragraphs of this Rule.

(3) Where in insolvency proceedings an affidavit is made by the official receiver or the responsible insolvency practitioner, the deponent shall state the capacity in which he makes it, the position which he holds, and the address at which he works.

(4) Notwithstanding RSC Order 41 Rule 8 (affidavit not to be sworn before party's own solicitor), a creditor's affidavit of debt may be sworn before his own solicitor.

(5) The official receiver, any deputy official receiver, or any officer of the court duly authorised in that behalf, may take affidavits and declarations.

Commencement Information

I683Rule 7.57 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Security in courtE+W

7.58.—(1) Where security has to be given to the court (otherwise than in relation to costs), it may be given by guarantee, bond or the payment of money into court.

(2) A person proposing to give a bond as security shall give notice to the party in whose favour the security is required, and to the court, naming those who are to be sureties to the bond.

(3) The court shall forthwith give notice to both the parties concerned of a venue for the execution of the bond and the making of any objection to the sureties.

(4) The sureties shall make an affidavit of their sufficiency (unless dispensed with by the party in whose favour the security is required) and shall, if required by the court, attend the court to be cross-examined.

Commencement Information

I684Rule 7.58 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Payment into courtE+W

7.59.  The Rules of the Supreme Court and the County Court Rules relating to payment into and out of court of money lodged in court as security for costs apply, in the High Court and a county court respectively, to money lodged in court under the Rules.

Commencement Information

I685Rule 7.59 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

DiscoveryE+W

7.60.—(1) Any party to insolvency proceedings may, with the leave of the court, administer interrogatories to, or obtain discovery from, any other party to those proceedings.

(2) Application under this Rule may be made ex parte.

Commencement Information

I686Rule 7.60 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Office copies of documentsE+W

7.61.—(1) Any person who has under the Rules the right to inspect the court file of insolvency proceedings may require the court to provide him with an office copy of any document from the file.

(2) A person's rights under this Rule may be exercised on his behalf by his solicitor.

(3) An office copy provided by the court under this Rule shall be in such form as the registrar thinks appropriate, and shall bear the court's seal.

Commencement Information

I687Rule 7.61 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

PART 8E+WPROXIES AND COMPANY REPRESENTATION

Definition of “proxy”E+W

8.1.—(1) [[FORMS 8.1 to 8.5]] For the purposes of the Rules, a proxy is an authority given by a person (“the principal”) to another person (“the proxy-holder”) to attend a meeting and speak and vote as his representative.

(2) Proxies are for use at creditors', company or contributories' meetings under the Act or the Rules.

(3) Only one proxy may be given by a person for any one meeting at which he desires to be represented; and it may only be given to one person, being an individual aged 18 or over. But the principal may specify one or more other such individuals to be proxy-holder in the alternative, in the order in which they are named in the proxy.

(4) Without prejudice to the generality of paragraph (3), a proxy for a particular meeting may be given to whoever is to be the chairman of the meeting; and for a meeting held as part of the proceedings in a winding up by the court, or in a bankruptcy, it may be given to the official receiver.

(5) A proxy requires the holder to give the principal's vote on matters arising for determination at the meeting, or to abstain, either as directed or in accordance with the holder's own discretion; and it may authorise or require the holder to propose, in the principal's name, a resolution to be voted on by the meeting.

Commencement Information

I688Rule 8.1 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Issue and use of formsE+W

8.2.—(1) When notice is given of a meeting to be held in insolvency proceedings, and forms of proxy are sent out with the notice, no form so sent out shall have inserted in it the name or description of any person.

(2) No form of proxy shall be used at any meeting except that which is sent out with the notice summoning the meeting, or a substantially similar form.

(3) A form of proxy shall be signed by the principal, or by some person authorised by him (either generally or with reference to a particular meeting). If the form is signed by a person other than the principal, the nature of the person's authority shall be stated.

Commencement Information

I689Rule 8.2 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Use of proxies at meetingsE+W

8.3.—(1) A proxy given for a particular meeting may be used at any adjournment of that meeting.

(2) Where the official receiver holds proxies for use at any meeting, his deputy, or any other official receiver, may act as proxy-holder in his place.

Alternatively, the official receiver may in writing authorise another officer of the Department to act for him at the meeting and use the proxies as if that other officer were himself proxy-holder.

(3) Where the responsible insolvency practitioner holds proxies to be used by him as chairman of a meeting, and some other person acts as chairman, the other person may use the insolvency practitioner's proxies as if he were himself proxy-holder.

Commencement Information

I690Rule 8.3 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Retention of proxiesE+W

8.4.—(1) Subject as follows, proxies used for voting at any meeting shall be retained by the chairman of the meeting.

(2) The chairman shall deliver the proxies, forthwith after the meeting, to the responsible insolvency practitioner (where that is someone other than himself).

Commencement Information

I691Rule 8.4 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Right of inspectionE+W

8.5.—(1) The responsible insolvency practitioner shall, so long as proxies lodged with him are in his hands, allow them to be inspected, at all reasonable times on any business day, by—

(a)the creditors, in the case of proxies used at a meeting of creditors, and

(b)a company's members or contributories, in the case of proxies used at a meeting of the company or of its contributories.

(2) The reference in paragraph (1) to creditors is—

(a)in the case of a company in liquidation or of an individual's bankruptcy, those creditors who have proved their debts, and

(b)in any other case, persons who have submitted in writing a claim to be creditors of the company or individual concerned;

but in neither case does it include a person whose proof or claim has been wholly rejected for purposes of voting, dividend or otherwise.

(3) The right of inspection given by this Rule is also exercisable—

(a)in the case of an insolvent company, by its directors, and

(b)in the case of an insolvent individual, by him.

(4) Any person attending a meeting in insolvency proceedings is entitled, immediately before or in the course of the meeting, to inspect proxies and associated documents to be used in connection with that meeting.

Commencement Information

I692Rule 8.5 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Proxy-holder with financial interestE+W

8.6.—(1) A proxy-holder shall not vote in favour of any resolution which would directly or indirectly place him, or any associate of his, in a position to receive any remuneration out of the insolvent estate, unless the proxy specifically directs him to vote in that way.

(2) This Rule applies also to any person acting as chairman of a meeting and using proxies in that capacity; and in its application to him, the proxy-holder is deemed an associate of his.

Commencement Information

I693Rule 8.6 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Company representationE+W

8.7.—(1) Where a person is authorised under section 375 of the Companies Act to represent a corporation at a meeting of creditors or of the company or its contributories, he shall produce to the chairman of the meeting a copy of the resolution from which he derives his authority.

(2) The copy resolution must be under the seal of the corporation, or certified by the secretary or a director of the corporation to be a true copy.

Commencement Information

I694Rule 8.7 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

PART 9E+WEXAMINATION OF PERSONS CONCERNED IN COMPANY AND INDIVIDUAL INSOLVENCY

PreliminaryE+W

9.1.—(1) The Rules in this Part relate to applications to the court for an order under—

(a)[[FORM 9.1]] section 236 (inquiry into company's dealings when it is, or is alleged to be, insolvent), or

(b)[[FORM 9.1]] section 366 (inquiry in bankruptcy, with respect to the bankrupt's dealings).

(2) The following definitions apply—

(a)the person in respect of whom an order is applied for is “the respondent;

(b)the applicable sectionis section 236 or section 366, according to whether the affairs of a company or those of a bankrupt or (where the application under section 366 is made by virtue of section 368 a debtor are in question;

(c)the company or, as the case may be, the bankrupt or debtor concerned is “the insolvent.

Commencement Information

I695Rule 9.1 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Form and contents of applicationE+W

9.2.—(1) The application shall be in writing, and be accompanied by a brief statement of the grounds on which it is made.

(2) The respondent must be sufficiently identified in the application.

(3) It shall be stated whether the application is for the respondent—

(a)to be ordered to appear before the court, or

(b)to answer interrogatories (if so, particulars to be given of the matters in respect of which answers are required), or

(c)to submit affidavits (if so, particulars to be given of the matters to which he is required to swear), or

(d)to produce books, papers or other records (if so, the items in question to be specified),

or for any two or more of those purposes.

(4) The application may be made ex parte.

Commencement Information

I696Rule 9.2 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Order for examination, etcE+W

9.3.—(1) The court may, whatever the purpose of the application, make any order which it has power to make under the applicable section.

(2) The court, if it orders the respondent to appear before it, shall specify a venue for his appearance, which shall be not less than 14 days from the date of the order.

(3) If he is ordered to submit affidavits, the order shall specify—

(a)the matters which are to be dealt with in his affidavits, and

(b)the time within which they are to be submitted to the court.

(4) If the order is to produce books, papers or other records, the time and manner of compliance shall be specified.

(5) The order must be served forthwith on the respondent; and it must be served personally, unless the court otherwise orders.

Commencement Information

I697Rule 9.3 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Procedure for examinationE+W

9.4.—(1) At any examination of the respondent, the applicant may attend in person, or be represented by a solicitor with or without counsel, and may put such questions to the respondent as the court may allow.

(2) Any other person who could have applied for an order under the applicable section in respect of the insolvent's affairs may, with the leave of the court and if the applicant does not object, attend the examination and put questions to the respondent (but only through the applicant).

(3) If the respondent is ordered to answer interrogatories, the court shall direct him as to the questions which he is required to answer, and as to whether his answers (if any) are to be made on affidavit.

(4) Where application has been made under the applicable section on information provided by a creditor of the insolvent, that creditor may, with the leave of the court and if the applicant does not object, attend the examination and put questions to the respondent (but only through the applicant).

(5) The respondent may at his own expense employ a solicitor with or without counsel, who may put to him such questions as the court may allow for the purpose of enabling him to explain or qualify any answers given by him, and may make representations on his behalf.

(6) There shall be made in writing such record of the examination as the court thinks proper. The record shall be read over either to or by the respondent and signed by him at a venue fixed by the court.

(7) The written record may, in any proceedings (whether under the Act or otherwise) be used as evidence against the respondent of any statement made by him in the course of his examination.

Commencement Information

I698Rule 9.4 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Record of examinationE+W

9.5.—(1) Unless the court otherwise directs, the written record of the respondent's examination, and any answer given by him to interrogatories, and any affidavits submitted by him in compliance with an order of the court under the applicable section, shall not be filed in court.

(2) The written record, answers and affidavits shall not be open to inspection, without an order of the court, by any person other than—

(a)the applicant for an order under the applicable section, or

(b)any person who could have applied for such an order in respect of the affairs of the same insolvent.

(3) Paragraph (2) applies also to so much of the court file as shows the grounds of the application for an order under the applicable section and to any copy of proposed interrogatories.

(4) The court may from time to time give directions as to the custody and inspection of any documents to which this Rule applies, and as to the furnishing of copies of, or extracts from, such documents.

Commencement Information

I699Rule 9.5 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Costs of proceedings under ss.236, 366E+W

9.6.—(1) Where the court has ordered an examination of any person under the applicable section, and it appears to it that the examination was made necessary because information had been unjustifiably refused by the respondent, it may order that the costs of the examination be paid by him.

(2) Where the court makes an order against a person under—

(a)section 237(1) or 367(1) (to deliver up property in his possession which belongs to the insolvent), or

(b)section 237(2) or 367(2) (to pay any amount in discharge of a debt due to the insolvent),

the costs of the application for the order may be ordered by the court to be paid by the respondent.

(3) Subject to paragraphs (1) and (2) above, the applicant's costs shall, unless the court otherwise orders, be paid out of the insolvent estate.

(4) A person summoned to attend for examination under this Chapter shall be tendered a reasonable sum in respect of travelling expenses incurred in connection with his attendance. Other costs falling on him are at the court's discretion.

(5) Where the examination is on the application of the official receiver otherwise than in the capacity of liquidator or trustee, no order shall be made for the payment of costs by him.

Commencement Information

I700Rule 9.6 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

PART 10E+WOFFICIAL RECEIVERS

Appointment of official receiversE+W

10.1.  Judicial notice shall be taken of the appointment under sections 399 to 401 of official receivers and deputy official receivers.

Commencement Information

I701Rule 10.1 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Persons entitled to act on official receiver's behalfE+W

10.2.—(1) In the absence of the official receiver authorised to act in a particular case, an officer authorised in writing for the purpose by the Secretary of State, or by the official receiver himself, may, with the leave of the court, act on the official receiver's behalf and in his place—

(a)in any examination under section 133, 236, 290 or 366, and

(b)in respect of any application to the court.

(2) In case of emergency, where there is no official receiver capable of acting, anything to be done by, to or before the official receiver may be done by, to or before the registrar of the court.

Commencement Information

I702Rule 10.2 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Application for directionsE+W

10.3.  The official receiver may apply to the court for directions in relation to any matter arising in insolvency proceedings.

Commencement Information

I703Rule 10.3 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Official receiver's expensesE+W

10.4.—(1) Any expenses incurred by the official receiver (in whatever capacity he may be acting) in connection with proceedings taken against him in insolvency proceedings are to be treated as expenses of the insolvency proceedings.

Expensesincludes damages.

(2) In respect of any sums due to him under paragraph (1), the official receiver has a charge on the insolvent estate.

Commencement Information

I704Rule 10.4 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

PART 11E+WDECLARATION AND PAYMENT OF DIVIDEND (WINDING UP AND BANKRUPTCY)

PreliminaryE+W

11.1.—(1) The Rules in this Part relate to the declaration and payment of dividends in companies winding up and in bankruptcy.

(2) The following definitions apply—

(a)the insolvent” means the company in liquidation or, as the case may be, the bankrupt; and

(b)creditors” means those creditors of the insolvent of whom the responsible insolvency practitioner is aware, or who are identified in the insolvent's statement of affairs.

Commencement Information

I705Rule 11.1 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Notice of intended dividendE+W

11.2.—(1) Before declaring a dividend, the responsible insolvency practitioner shall give notice of his intention to do so to all creditors who have not proved their debts.

(2) The notice shall specify a date (“the last date for proving”) up to which proofs may be lodged. The date shall be the same for all creditors, and not less than 21 days from that of the notice.

(3) The insolvency practitioner shall in the notice state his intention to declare a dividend (specified as interim or final, as the case may be) within the period of 4 months from the last date for proving.

Commencement Information

I706Rule 11.2 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Final admission/rejection of proofsE+W

11.3.—(1) The responsible insolvency practitioner shall, within 7 days from the last date for proving, deal with every creditor's proof (in so far as not already dealt with) by admitting or rejecting it in whole or in part, or by making such provision as he thinks fit in respect of it.

(2) The insolvency practitioner is not obliged to deal with proofs lodged after the last date for proving; but he may do so, if he thinks fit.

Commencement Information

I707Rule 11.3 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Postponement or cancellation of dividendE+W

11.4.  If in the period of 4 months referred to in Rule 11.2(3)—

(a)the responsible insolvency practitioner has rejected a proof in whole or in part and application is made to the court for his decision to be reversed or varied, or

(b)application is made to the court for the insolvency practitioner's decision on a proof to be reversed or varied, or for a proof to be expunged, or for a reduction of the amount claimed,

the insolvency practitioner may postpone or cancel the dividend.

Commencement Information

I708Rule 11.4 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Decision to declare dividendE+W

11.5.—(1) If the responsible insolvency practitioner has not, in the 4-month period referred to in Rule 11.2(3), had cause to postpone or cancel the dividend, he shall within that period proceed to declare the dividend of which he gave notice under that Rule.

(2) Except with the leave of the court, the insolvency practitioner shall not declare the dividend so long as there is pending any application to the court to reverse or vary a decision of his on a proof, or to expunge a proof or to reduce the amount claimed.

If the court gives leave under this paragraph, the insolvency practitioner shall make such provision in respect of the proof in question as the court directs.

Commencement Information

I709Rule 11.5 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Notice of declarationE+W

11.6.—(1) The responsible insolvency practitioner shall give notice of the dividend to all creditors who have proved their debts.

(2) The notice shall include the following particulars relating to the insolvency and the administration of the insolvent estate—

(a)amounts realised from the sale of assets, indicating (so far as practicable) amounts raised by the sale of particular assets;

(b)payments made by the insolvency practitioner in the administration of the insolvent estate;

(c)provision (if any) made for unsettled claims, and funds (if any) retained for particular purposes;

(d)the total amount to be distributed, and the rate of dividend;

(e)whether, and if so when, any further dividend is expected to be declared.

(3) The dividend may be distributed simultaneously with the notice declaring it.

(4) Payment of dividend may be made by post, or arrangements may be made with any creditor for it to be paid to him in another way, or held for his collection.

(5) Where a dividend is paid on a bill of exchange or other negotiable instrument, the amount of the dividend shall be endorsed on the instrument, or on a certified copy of it, if required to be produced by the holder for that purpose.

Commencement Information

I710Rule 11.6 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Notice of no, or no further, dividendE+W

11.7.  If the responsible insolvency practitioner gives notice to creditors that he is unable to declare any dividend or (as the case may be) any further dividend, the notice shall contain a statement to the effect either—

(a)that no funds have been realised, or

(b)that the funds realised have already been distributed or used or allocated for defraying the expenses of administration.

Commencement Information

I711Rule 11.7 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Proof altered after payment of dividendE+W

11.8.—(1) If after payment of dividend the amount claimed by a creditor in his proof is increased, the creditor is not entitled to disturb the distribution of the dividend; but he is entitled to be paid, out of any money for the time being available for the payment of any further dividend, any dividend or dividends which he has failed to receive.

(2) Any dividend or dividends payable under paragraph (1) shall be paid before the money there referred to is applied to the payment of any such further dividend.

(3) If, after a creditor's proof has been admitted, the proof is withdrawn or expunged, or the amount of it is reduced, the creditor is liable to repay to the responsible insolvency practitioner, for the credit of the insolvent estate, any amount over paid by way of dividend.

Commencement Information

I712Rule 11.8 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Secured creditorsE+W

11.9.—(1) The following applies where a creditor re-values his security at a time when a dividend has been declared.

(2) If the revaluation results in a reduction of his unsecured claim ranking for dividend, the creditor shall forthwith repay to the responsible insolvency practitioner, for the credit of the insolvent estate, any amount received by him as dividend in excess of that to which he would be entitled having regard to the revaluation of the security.

(3) If the revaluation results in an increase of his unsecured claim, the creditor is entitled to receive from the insolvency practitioner, out of any money for the time being available for the payment of a further dividend, before any such further dividend is paid, any dividend or dividends which he has failed to receive, having regard to the revaluation of the security.

However, the creditor is not entitled to disturb any dividend declared (whether or not distributed) before the date of the revaluation.

Commencement Information

I713Rule 11.9 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Disqualification from dividendE+W

11.10.  If a creditor contravenes any provision of the Act or the Rules relating to the valuation of securities, the court may, on the application of the responsible insolvency practitioner, order that the creditor be wholly or partly disqualified from participation in any dividend.

Commencement Information

I714Rule 11.10 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Assignment of right to dividendE+W

11.11.—(1) If a person entitled to a dividend gives notice to the responsible insolvency practitioner that he wishes the dividend to be paid to another person, or that he has assigned his entitlement to another person, the insolvency practitioner shall pay the dividend to that other accordingly.

(2) A notice given under this Rule must specify the name and address of the person to whom payment is to be made.

Commencement Information

I715Rule 11.11 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Preferential creditorsE+W

11.12.—(1) Subject as follows, the Rules in this Part apply with respect to any distribution made in the insolvency to preferential creditors, with such adaptations as are appropriate considering that such creditors are of a limited class.

(2) The notice by the responsible insolvency practitioner under Rule 11.2, where a dividend is to be declared for preferential creditors, need only be given to those creditors in whose case he has reason to believe that their debts are preferential.

Commencement Information

I716Rule 11.12 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Debt payable at future timeE+W

11.13.—(1) Where a creditor has proved for a debt of which payment is not due at the date of the declaration of dividend, he is entitled to dividend equally with other creditors, but subject as follows.

(2) For the purpose of dividend (and for no other purpose), the amount of the creditor's admitted proof (or, if a distribution has previously been made to him, the amount remaining outstanding in respect of his admitted proof) shall be reduced by an amount calculated as follows—

No math image to display

  • I is 5 per cent. and M is the number of months (expressed, if need be, as, or as including, fractions of months) between the declaration of dividend and the date when payment of the creditor's debt would otherwise be due.

(3) Other creditors are not entitled to interest out of surplus funds under section 189(2) or (as the case may be) 328(4) until any creditor to whom paragraph (1) and (2) apply has been paid the full amount of his debt.

Commencement Information

I717Rule 11.13 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

PART 12E+WMISCELLANEOUS AND GENERAL

Power of Secretary of State to regulate certain mattersE+W

12.1.—(1) Pursuant to paragraph 27 of Schedule 8 to the Act, and paragraph 30 of Schedule 9 to the Act, the Secretary of State may make regulations with respect to the following matters arising in companies winding up and individual bankruptcy—

(a)the preparation and keeping by liquidators, trustees, provisional liquidators, interim receivers and the official receiver, of books, accounts and other records, and their production to such persons as may be authorised or required to inspect them;

(b)the auditing of liquidators' and trustees' accounts;

(c)the manner in which liquidators and trustees are to act in relation to the insolvent company's or bankrupt's books, papers and other records, and the manner of their disposal by the responsible insolvency practitioner or others;

(d)the supply—

(i)in company insolvency, by the liquidator to creditors and members of the company, contributories in its winding up and the liquidation committee, and

(ii)in individual insolvency, by the trustee to creditors and the creditors' committee,

of copies of documents relating to the insolvency and the affairs of the insolvent company or individual (on payment, in such cases as may be specified by the regulations, of the specified fee);

(e)the manner in which insolvent estates are to be distributed by liquidators and trustees, including provision with respect to unclaimed funds and dividends;

(f)the manner in which moneys coming into the hands of a liquidator or trustee in the course of his administration are to be handled and, in the case of a liquidator, invested, and the payment of interest on sums which, in pursuance of regulations made by virtue of this sub-paragraph, have been paid into the Insolvency Service Account;

(g)the amount (or the manner of determining the amount) to be paid to the official receiver by way of remuneration when acting as provisional liquidator, liquidator, interim receiver or trustee.

(2) Any reference in paragraph (1) to a trustee includes a reference to the official receiver when acting as receiver and manager under section 287.

(3) Regulations made pursuant to paragraph (1) may—

(a)confer a discretion on the court;

(b)make non-compliance with any of the regulations a criminal offence;

(c)make different provision for different cases, including different provision for different areas.

Commencement Information

I718Rule 12.1 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Costs, expenses, etcE+W

12.2.  All fees, costs, charges and other expenses incurred in the course of winding up or bankruptcy proceedings are to be regarded as expenses of the winding up or, as the case may be, of the bankruptcy.

Commencement Information

I719Rule 12.2 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Provable debtsE+W

12.3.—(1) Subject as follows, in both winding up and bankruptcy, all claims by creditors are provable as debts against the company or, as the case may be, the bankrupt, whether they are present or future, certain or contingent, ascertained or sounding only in damages.

(2) The following are not provable—

(a)in bankruptcy, any fine imposed for an offence, and any obligation arising under an order made in family or domestic proceedings;

(b)in winding up or bankruptcy, any obligation arising under a confiscation order made under section 1 of the Drug Trafficking Offences Act 1986

Fine”, “domestic proceedings” and “family proceedingshave the meanings given by section 281(8) of the Act (which applies the Magistrates' Courts Act 1980 and the Matrimonial and Family Proceedings Act 1984).

(3) Nothing in this Rule prejudices any enactment or rule of law under which a particular kind of debt is not provable, whether on grounds of public policy or otherwise.

Commencement Information

I720Rule 12.3 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

NoticesE+W

12.4.—(1) All notices required or authorised by or under the Act or the Rules to be given must be in writing, unless it is otherwise provided, or the court allows the notice to be given in some other way.

(2) Where in any proceedings a notice is required to be sent or given by the official receiver or by the responsible insolvency practitioner, the sending or giving of it may be proved by means of a certificate—

(a)in the case of the official receiver, by him or a member of his staff, and

(b)in the case of the insolvency practitioner, by him, or his solicitor, or a partner or an employee of either of them,

that the notice was duly posted.

(3) In the case of a notice to be sent or given by a person other than the official receiver or insolvency practitioner, the sending or giving of it may be proved by means of a certificate by that person that he posted the notice, or instructed another person (naming him) to do so.

(4) A certificate under this Rule may be endorsed on a copy or specimen of the notice to which it relates.

Commencement Information

I721Rule 12.4 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Evidence of proceedings at meetingsE+W

12.5.—(1) A minute of proceedings at a meeting (held under the Act or the Rules) of a person's creditors, or of the members of a company, or of the contributories in a company's liquidation, signed by a person describing himself as, or appearing to be, the chairman of that meeting is admissible in insolvency proceedings without further proof.

(2) The minute is prima facie evidence that—

(a)the meeting was duly convened and held,

(b)all resolutions passed at the meeting were duly passed, and

(c)all proceedings at the meeting duly took place.

Commencement Information

I722Rule 12.5 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Documents issuing from Secretary of StateE+W

12.6.—(1) Any document purporting to be, or to contain, any order, directions or certificate issued by the Secretary of State shall be received in evidence and deemed to be or (as the case may be) contain that order or certificate, or those directions, without further proof, unless the contrary is shown.

(2) Paragraph (1) applies whether the document is signed by the Secretary of State himself or an officer on his behalf.

(3) Without prejudice to the foregoing, a certificate signed by the Secretary of State or an officer on his behalf and confirming—

(a)the making of any order,

(b)the issuing of any document, or

(c)the exercise of any discretion, power or obligation arising or imposed under the Act or the Rules,

is conclusive evidence of the matters dealt with in the certificate.

Commencement Information

I723Rule 12.6 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Forms for use in insolvency proceedingsE+W

12.7.—(1) The forms contained in Schedule 4 to the Rules shall be used in and in connection with, insolvency proceedings, whether in the High Court or a county court.

(2) The forms shall be used with such variations, if any, as the circumstances may require.

(3) Where any form contained in Schedule 4 is substantially the same as one used for a corresponding purpose under the law and practice obtaining before the coming into force of the Rules, the latter may continue to be used (with the necessary modifications) until the Lord Chancellor otherwise directs.

Commencement Information

I724Rule 12.7 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Insolvency practitioner's securityE+W

12.8.—(1) Wherever under the Rules any person has to appoint, or certify the appointment of, an insolvency practitioner to any office, he is under a duty to satisfy himself that the person appointed or to be appointed has security for the proper performance of his functions.

(2) It is the duty—

(a)of the creditors' committee in companies administration, administrative receivership and bankruptcy,

(b)of the liquidation committee in companies winding up, and

(c)of any committee of creditors established for the purposes of a voluntary arrangement under Part I or VIII of the Act,

to review from time to time the adequacy of the responsible insolvency practitioner's security.

(3) In any insolvency proceedings the cost of the responsible insolvency practitioner's security shall be defrayed as an expense of the proceedings.

Commencement Information

I725Rule 12.8 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Time-limitsE+W

12.9.  The provisions of Order 3 of the Rules of the Supreme Court, except Rules 3 and 6, apply as regards computation of time in respect of anything required or authorised by the Rules to be done.

Commencement Information

I726Rule 12.9 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Service by postE+W

12.10.—(1) For a document to be properly served by post, it must be contained in an envelope addressed to the person on whom service is to be effected, and pre-paid for either first or second class post.

(2) Where first class post is used, the document is treated as served on the second business day after the date of posting, unless the contrary is shown.

(3) Where second class post is used, the document is treated as served on the fourth business day after the date of posting, unless the contrary is shown.

(4) The date of posting is presumed, unless the contrary is shown, to be the date shown in the post-mark on the envelope in which the document is contained.

Commencement Information

I727Rule 12.10 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

General provisions as to serviceE+W

12.11.—(1) Subject as follows, Order 65 of the Rules of the Supreme Court applies as regards any matter relating to the service of documents and the giving of notice in insolvency proceedings.

(2) In Order 65 Rule 7, the expression “other originating processdoes not include any application in insolvency proceedings.

(3) Order 65 Rule 9 does not apply.

(4) In Order 65 Rule 10, the expression “processincludes any application in insolvency proceedings.

Commencement Information

I728Rule 12.11 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Service outside the jurisdictionE+W

12.12.—(1) Order 11 of the Rules of the Supreme Court, and the corresponding County Court Rules, do not apply in insolvency proceedings.

(2) A bankruptcy petition may, with the leave of the court, be served outside England and Wales in such manner as the court may direct.

(3) Where for the purposes of insolvency proceedings any process or order of the court, or other document, is required to be served on a person who is not in England and Wales, the court may order service to be effected within such time, on such person, at such place and in such manner as it thinks fit, and may also require such proof of service as it thinks fit.

(4) An application under this Rule shall be supported by an affidavit stating—

(a)the grounds on which the application is made, and

(b)in what place or country the person to be served is, or probably may be found.

Commencement Information

I729Rule 12.12 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Confidentiality of documentsE+W

12.13.—(1) Where in insolvency proceedings the responsible insolvency practitioner considers, in the case of a document forming part of the records of the insolvency, that—

(a)it should be treated as confidential, or

(b)it is of such a nature that its disclosure would be calculated to be injurious to the interests of the insolvent's creditors or, in the case of a company's insolvency, its members or the contributories in its winding up,

he may decline to allow it to be inspected by a person who would otherwise be entitled to inspect it.

(2) The persons to whom the insolvency practitioner may under this Rule refuse inspection include the members of a liquidation committee or a creditors' committee.

(3) Where under this Rule the insolvency practitioner determines to refuse inspection of a document, the person wishing to inspect it may apply to the court for that determination to be overruled; and the court may either overrule it altogether, or sustain it subject to such conditions (if any) as it thinks fit to impose.

Commencement Information

I730Rule 12.13 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Notices sent simultaneously to the same personE+W

12.14.  Where under the Act or the Rules a document of any description is to be sent to a person (whether or not as a member of a class of persons to whom that same document is to be sent), it may be sent as an accompaniment to any other document or information which the person is to receive, with or without modification or adaptation of the form applicable to that document.

Commencement Information

I731Rule 12.14 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Right to copy documentsE+W

12.15.  Where the Rules confer a right for any person to inspect documents, the right includes that of taking copies of those documents, on payment—

(a)in the case of documents on the court's file of proceedings, of the fee chargeable under any order made under section 130 of the Supreme Court Act 1981 or under section 128 of the County Courts Act 1984, and

(b)otherwise, of the appropriate fee.

Commencement Information

I732Rule 12.15 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Non-receipt of notice of meetingE+W

12.16.  Where in accordance with the Act or the Rules a meeting of creditors or other persons is summoned by notice, the meeting is presumed to have been duly summoned and held, notwithstanding that not all those to whom the notice is to be given have received it.

Commencement Information

I733Rule 12.16 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Right to have list of creditorsE+W

12.17.—(1) This Rule applies in any of the following proceedings—

(a)proceedings under Part II of the Act (company administration),

(b)a creditors' voluntary winding up, or a winding up by the court, and

(c)proceedings in bankruptcy.

(2) In any such proceedings a creditor who under the Rules has the right to inspect documents on the court file also has the right to require the responsible insolvency practitioner to furnish him with a list of the insolvent's creditors and the amounts of their respective debts.

This does not apply if a statement of the insolvent's affairs has been filed in court or, in the case of a creditors' voluntary winding up, been delivered to the registrar of companies.

(3) The insolvency practitioner, on being required by any person to furnish the list, shall send it to him, but is entitled to charge the appropriate fee for doing so.

Commencement Information

I734Rule 12.17 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

False claim of status as creditor, etcE+W

12.18.—(1) Where the Rules provide for creditors, members of a company or contributories in a company's winding up a right to inspect any documents, whether on the court's file or in the hands of a responsible insolvency practitioner or other person, it is an offence for a person, with the intention of obtaining a sight of documents which he has not under the Rules any right to inspect, falsely to claim a status which would entitle him to inspect them.

(2) A person guilty of an offence under this Rule is liable to imprisonment or a fine, or both.

Commencement Information

I735Rule 12.18 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Execution overtaken by judgment debtor's insolvencyE+W

12.19.—(1) This Rule applies where execution has been taken out against property of a judgment debtor, and notice is given to the sheriff or other officer charged with the execution—

(a)under section 184(1) (that a winding-up order has been made against the debtor, or that a provisional liquidator has been appointed, or that a resolution for voluntary winding up has been passed); or

(b)under section 184(4) (that a winding-up petition has been presented or a winding-up order made, or that a meeting has been called at which there is to be proposed a resolution for voluntary winding up, or that such a resolution has been passed); or

(c)under section 346(2) (that the judgment debtor has been adjudged bankrupt); or

(d)under section 346(3)(b) (that a bankruptcy petition has been presented in respect of him).

(2) Subject as follows, the notice shall be in writing and be delivered by hand at, or sent by recorded delivery to, the office of the under-sheriff or (as the case may be) of the officer charged with the execution.

(3) Where the execution is in a county court, and the officer in charge of it is the registrar of that court, then if—

(a)there is filed in that court in respect of the judgment debtor a winding-up or bankruptcy petition, or

(b)there is made by that court in respect of him a winding-up order or an order appointing a provisional liquidator, or a bankruptcy order or an order appointing an interim receiver,

section 184 or (as the case may be) 346 is deemed satisfied as regards the requirement of a notice to be served on, or given to, the officer in charge of the execution.

Commencement Information

I736Rule 12.19 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

The GazetteE+W

12.20.—(1) A copy of the Gazette containing any notice required by the Act or the Rules to be gazetted is evidence of any facts stated in the notice.

(2) In the case of an order of the court notice of which is required by the Act or the Rules to be gazetted, a copy of the Gazette containing the notice may in any proceedings be produced as conclusive evidence that the order was made on the date specified in the notice.

(3) Where an order of the court which is gazetted has been varied, and where any matter has been erroneously or inaccurately gazetted, the person whose responsibility it was to procure the requisite entry in the Gazette shall forthwith cause the variation of the order to be gazetted or, as the case may be, a further entry to be made in the Gazette for the purpose of correcting the error or inaccuracy.

Commencement Information

I737Rule 12.20 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Punishment of offencesE+W

12.21.—(1) Schedule 5 to the Rules has effect with respect to the way in which contraventions of the Rules are punishable on conviction.

(2) In relation to an offence under a provision of the Rules specified in the first column of the Schedule (the general nature of the offence being described in the second column), the third column shows whether the offence is punishable on conviction on indictment, or on summary conviction, or either in the one way or the other.

(3) The fourth column shows, in relation to an offence, the maximum punishment by way of fine or imprisonment which may be imposed on a person convicted of the offence in the way specified in relation to it in the third column (that is to say, on indictment or summarily), a reference to a period of years or months being to a term of imprisonment of that duration.

(4) The fifth column shows (in relation to an offence for which there is an entry in that column) that a person convicted of the offence after continued contravention is liable to a daily default fine; that is to say, he is liable on a second or subsequent conviction of the offence to the fine specified in that column for each day on which the contravention is continued (instead of the penalty specified for the offence in the fourth column of the Schedule).

(5) Section 431 (summary proceedings), as it applies to England and Wales, has effect in relation to offences under the Rules as to offences under the Act.

Commencement Information

I738Rule 12.21 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

PART 13E+WINTERPRETATION AND APPLICATION

IntroductoryE+W

13.1.  This Part of the Rules has effect for their interpretation and application; and any definition given in this Part applies except, and in so far as, the context otherwise requires.

Commencement Information

I739Rule 13.1 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

“The court”; “the registrar”E+W

13.2.—(1) Anything to be done under or by virtue of the Act or the Rules by, to or before the court may be done by, to or before a judge or the registrar.

(2) The registrar may authorise any act of a formal or administrative character which is not by statute his responsibility to be carried out by the chief clerk or any other officer of the court acting on his behalf, in accordance with directions given by the Lord Chancellor.

(3) In individual insolvency proceedings, “the registrar” means a Registrar in Bankruptcy of the High Court, or the registrar or deputy registrar of a county court.

(4) In company insolvency proceedings in the High Court, “the registrar” means

(a)subject to the following paragraph, a Registrar in Bankruptcy of the High Court;

(b)where the proceedings are in the District Registry of Birmingham, Bristol, Cardiff, Leeds, Liverpool, Manchester, Newcastle-upon-Tyne or Preston, the District Registrar.

(5) In company insolvency proceedings in a county court, “the registrar” means the officer of the court whose duty it is to exercise the functions which in the High Court are exercised by a registrar.

Commencement Information

I740Rule 13.2 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

“Give notice”, etcE+W

13.3.—(1) A reference in the Rules to giving notice, or to delivering, sending or serving any document, means that the notice or document may be sent by post, unless under a particular Rule personal service is expressly required.

(2) Any form of post may be used, unless under a particular Rule a specified form is expressly required.

(3) Personal service of a document is permissible in all cases.

(4) Notice of the venue fixed for an application may be given by service of the sealed copy of the application under Rule 7.4(3).

Commencement Information

I741Rule 13.3 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Notice, etc. to solicitorsE+W

13.4.  Where under the Act or the Rules a notice or other document is required or authorised to be given to a person, it may, if he has indicated that his solicitor is authorised to accept service on his behalf, be given instead to the solicitor.

Commencement Information

I742Rule 13.4 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Notice to joint liquidators, joint trustees, etcE+W

13.5.  Where two or more persons are acting jointly as the responsible insolvency practitioner in any proceedings, delivery of a document to one of them is to be treated as delivery to them all.

Commencement Information

I743Rule 13.5 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

“Venue”E+W

13.6.  References to the “venue” for any proceeding or attendance before the court, or for a meeting, are to the time, date and place for the proceeding, attendance or meeting.

Commencement Information

I744Rule 13.6 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

“Insolvency proceedings”E+W

13.7.  “Insolvency proceedings” means any proceedings under the Act or the Rules.

Commencement Information

I745Rule 13.7 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

“Insolvent estate”E+W

13.8.  References to “the insolvent estateare—

 (a)in relation to a company insolvency, the company's assets, and

13.8.

 (b)in relation to an individual insolvency, the bankrupt's estate or (as the case may be) the debtor's property.

Commencement Information

I746Rule 13.8 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

“Responsible insolvency practitioner”, etcE+W

13.9.—(1) In relation to any insolvency proceedings, “the responsible insolvency practitioner” means

(a)the person acting in a company insolvency, as supervisor of a voluntary arrangement under Part I of the Act, or as administrator, administrative receiver, liquidator or provisional liquidator;

(b)the person acting in an individual insolvency, as the supervisor of a voluntary arrangement under Part VIII of the Act, or as trustee or interim receiver;

(c)the official receiver acting as receiver and manager of a bankrupt's estate.

(2) Any reference to the liquidator, provisional liquidator, trustee or interim receiver includes the official receiver when acting in the relevant capacity.

Commencement Information

I747Rule 13.9 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

“Petitioner”E+W

13.10.  In winding up and bankruptcy, references to “the petitioner” or “the petitioning creditorinclude any person who has been substituted as such, or been given carriage of the petition.

Commencement Information

I748Rule 13.10 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

“The appropriate fee”E+W

13.11.  “The appropriate fee” means

 (a)in Rule 6.192(2) (payor under income payments order entitled to clerical etc. costs), 50 pence; and

13.11.

 (b)in other cases, 15 pence per A4 or A5 page, and 30 pence per A3 page.

Commencement Information

I749Rule 13.11 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

“Debt”, “liability” (winding up)E+W

13.12.—(1) “Debt”, in relation to the winding up of a company, means (subject to the next paragraph) any of the following—

(a)any debt or liability to which the company is subject at the date on which it goes into liquidation;

(b)any debt or liability to which the company may become subject after that date by reason of any obligation incurred before that date; and

(c)any interest provable as mentioned in Rule 4.93(1).

(2) In determining for the purposes of any provision of the Act or the Rules about winding up, whether any liability in tort is a debt provable in the winding up, the company is deemed to become subject to that liability by reason of an obligation incurred at the time when the cause of action accrued.

(3) For the purposes of references in any provision of the Act or the Rules about winding up to a debt or liability, it is immaterial whether the debt or liability is present or future, whether it is certain or contingent, or whether its amount is fixed or liquidated, or is capable of being ascertained by fixed rules or as a matter of opinion; and references in any such provision to owing a debt are to be read accordingly.

(4) In any provision of the Act or the Rules about winding up, except in so far as the context otherwise requires, “liability” means (subject to paragraph (3) above) a liability to pay money or money's worth, including any liability under an enactment, any liability for breach of trust, any liability in contract, tort or bailment, and any liability arising out of an obligation to make restitution.

Commencement Information

I750Rule 13.12 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Expressions used generallyE+W

13.13.—(1) “Business day

(a)in relation to the High Court has the same meaning as in Order 65, Rule 5(4), and

(b)in relation to a county court means any day on which the court office is open in accordance with Order 2, Rule 2 of the County Court Rules.

(2) “The Department” means the Department of Trade and Industry.

(3) “File in court” means deliver to the court for filing.

(4) “The Gazette” means the London Gazette.

(5) “General regulations” means regulations made by the Secretary of State under Rule 12.1.

(6) “Prescribed order of priority” means the order of priority of payments laid down by Chapter 20 of Part 4 of the Rules, or Chapter 23 of Part 6.

Commencement Information

I751Rule 13.13 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

ApplicationE+W

13.14.—(1) Subject to paragraph (2) of this Rule, and save where otherwise expressly provided, the Rules apply—

(a)to administrative receivers appointed on or after the day on which the Rules come into force,

(b)to bankruptcy proceedings where the bankruptcy petition is presented on or after the day on which the Rules come into force, and

(c)to all other insolvency proceedings commenced on or after that day.

(2) The Rules also apply to winding-up and bankruptcy proceedings commenced before that day to which provisions of the Act are applied by Schedule 11 to the Act, to the extent necessary to give effect to those provisions.

Commencement Information

I752Rule 13.14 in force at 29.12.1986, see rule 0.1

Hailsham of Marylebone, C

Dated 6th November 1986

I concur,

M. Howard

Parliamentary Under Secretary of State

Department of Trade and Industry

Dated 10th November 1986

Back to top

Options/Help

Print Options

You have chosen to open The Whole Instrument

The Whole Instrument you have selected contains over 200 provisions and might take some time to download. You may also experience some issues with your browser, such as an alert box that a script is taking a long time to run.

Would you like to continue?

You have chosen to open The Whole Instrument as a PDF

The Whole Instrument you have selected contains over 200 provisions and might take some time to download.

Would you like to continue?

You have chosen to open This Instrument without Schedules only

This Instrument without Schedules only you have selected contains over 200 provisions and might take some time to download. You may also experience some issues with your browser, such as an alert box that a script is taking a long time to run.

Would you like to continue?

You have chosen to open This Instrument without Schedules only as a PDF

This Instrument without Schedules only you have selected contains over 200 provisions and might take some time to download.

Would you like to continue?

You have chosen to open the Whole Instrument

The Whole Instrument you have selected contains over 200 provisions and might take some time to download. You may also experience some issues with your browser, such as an alert box that a script is taking a long time to run.

Would you like to continue?

You have chosen to open the Whole Instrument without Schedules

The Whole Instrument without Schedules you have selected contains over 200 provisions and might take some time to download. You may also experience some issues with your browser, such as an alert box that a script is taking a long time to run.

Would you like to continue?

Close

Legislation is available in different versions:

Latest Available (revised):The latest available updated version of the legislation incorporating changes made by subsequent legislation and applied by our editorial team. Changes we have not yet applied to the text, can be found in the ‘Changes to Legislation’ area.

Original (As Enacted or Made): The original version of the legislation as it stood when it was enacted or made. No changes have been applied to the text.

Close

See additional information alongside the content

Geographical Extent: Indicates the geographical area that this provision applies to. For further information see ‘Frequently Asked Questions’.

Show Timeline of Changes: See how this legislation has or could change over time. Turning this feature on will show extra navigation options to go to these specific points in time. Return to the latest available version by using the controls above in the What Version box.

Close

Opening Options

Different options to open legislation in order to view more content on screen at once

Close

More Resources

Access essential accompanying documents and information for this legislation item from this tab. Dependent on the legislation item being viewed this may include:

  • the original print PDF of the as enacted version that was used for the print copy
  • lists of changes made by and/or affecting this legislation item
  • confers power and blanket amendment details
  • all formats of all associated documents
  • correction slips
  • links to related legislation and further information resources
Close

Timeline of Changes

This timeline shows the different points in time where a change occurred. The dates will coincide with the earliest date on which the change (e.g an insertion, a repeal or a substitution) that was applied came into force. The first date in the timeline will usually be the earliest date when the provision came into force. In some cases the first date is 01/02/1991 (or for Northern Ireland legislation 01/01/2006). This date is our basedate. No versions before this date are available. For further information see the Editorial Practice Guide and Glossary under Help.

Close

More Resources

Use this menu to access essential accompanying documents and information for this legislation item. Dependent on the legislation item being viewed this may include:

  • the original print PDF of the as made version that was used for the print copy
  • correction slips

Click 'View More' or select 'More Resources' tab for additional information including:

  • lists of changes made by and/or affecting this legislation item
  • confers power and blanket amendment details
  • all formats of all associated documents
  • links to related legislation and further information resources